BOOK One
I
King Don Ferrando succeeded to the states of Castille after the death of his
father King Don Sancho el Mayor, in the aera 1072, which was the year of the
Incarnation 1034, and from the coming of the Patriarch Tubal to settle in Spain
3197, and from the general deluge 3339, and from the creation of the world 4995,
according to the computation of the Hebrews, and from the beginning of the false
sect of the Moors 413. And in the year 1037 Ferrando slew Bermudo the King of
Leon in battle, who was his wife's brother, and conquered his kingdom, and
succeeded to it in right of his wife Dona Sancha. So he was the first person who
united the states of Castille and Leon, and the first who was called King of
Castille; for till this time the lords of that country had been called Counts.
He was a good king, and one who judged justly and feared God, and was bold in
all his doings. Before he reigned he had by Dona Sancha his wife the Infanta
Dona Urraca, his eldest daughter, who was a right excellent lady, of good
customs and bounty and beauty; and after her he had the Infante Don Sancho, his
eldest son and heir; and then the Infanta Dona Elvira, whom after the death of
the King her father, her brother King Don Alfonso married to the Count Don
Garcia de Cabra. And after he became King he had the Infante Don Alfonso, and
the Infante Don Garcia, who was the youngest of all. And he put his sons to
read, that they might be of the better understanding, and he made them take
arms, and be shown how to demean themselves in battle, and to be huntsmen. And
he ordered that his daughters should be brought up in the studies beseeming
dames, so that they might be of good customs, and instructed in devotion and in
all things which it behoved them to know.
II
In those days arose Rodrigo of Bivar, who was a youth strong in arms and of good
customs; and the people rejoiced in him, for he bestirred himself to protect the
land from the Moors. Now it behoves that ye should know whence he came, and from
what men he was descended, because we have to proceed with his history. Ye are
to know therefore, that after the treason which King Don Ordono the Second
committed upon the Counts of Castille, that country remained without a chief:
the people therefore chose two judges, of whom the one was called Nuno Rasuera,
and the other Layn Calvo, who married Nuno's daughter, Elvira Nunez. From Nuno
Rasuera King Don Ferrando descended, and from Layn Calvo, Diego Laynez, who took
to wife Dona Teresa Rodriguez, the daughter of Don Rodrigo Alvarez, Count and
Governor of Asturias, and had by her this Rodrigo. In the year of the
Incarnation 1026 was Rodrigo born, of this noble lineage, in the city of Burgos,
and in the street of St. Martin, hard by the palace of the Counts of Castille,
where Diego Laynez had his dwelling. In the church of St. Martin was he
baptized, a good priest of Burgos, whose name was Don Pedro de Pernegas, being
his godfather: and to this church Rodrigo was always greatly affectionate, and
he built the belfry tower thereof. III
III
At this time it came to pass that there was strife between Count Don Gomez the
Lord of Gormaz, and Diego Laynez the father of Rodrigo; and the Count insulted
Diego and gave him a blow. Now Diego was a man in years, and his strength had
passed from him, so that he could not take vengeance, and he retired to his home
to dwell there in solitude and lament over his dishonour. And he took no
pleasure in his food, neither could he sleep by night, nor would he lift up his
eyes from the ground, nor stir out of his house, nor commune with his friends,
but turned from them in silence as if the breath of his shame would taint them.
Rodrigo was yet but a youth, and the Count was a mighty man in arms, one who
gave his voice first in the Cortes, and was held to be the best in the war, and
so powerful that he had a thousand friends among the mountains. Howbeit all
these things appeared as nothing to Rodrigo when he thought of the wrong done to
his father, the first which had ever been offered to the blood of Layn Calvo. He
asked nothing but justice of Heaven, and of man he asked only a fair field; and
his father seeing of how good heart he was, gave him his sword and his blessing.
The sword had been the sword of Mudarra in former times, and when Rodrigo held
its cross in his hand, he thought within himself that his arm was not weaker
than Mudarra's. And he went out and defied the Count and slew him, and smote off
his head and carried it home to his father. The old man was sitting at table,
the food lying before him untasted, when Rodrigo returned, and pointing to the
head which hung from the horse's collar, dropping blood, he bade him look up,
for there was the herb which should restore to him his appetite. The tongue,
quoth he, which insulted you is no longer a tongue, and the hand which wronged
you is no longer a hand. And the old man arose and embraced his son and placed
him above him at the table, saying, that he who had brought home that head
should be the head of the house of Layn Calvo.
IV
After this Diego being full of years fell asleep and was gathered to his
fathers. And the Moors entered Castille, in great power, for there came with
them five Kings, and they past above Burgos, and crost the mountains of Oca, and
plundered Carrion, and Vilforado, and Saint Domingo de la Calzada, and Logrono,
and Najara, and all that land; and they carried away many captives both male and
female, and brood mares, and flocks of all kinds. But as they were returning
with all speed, Rodrigo of Bivar raised the country, and came up with them in
the mountains of Oca, and fell upon them and discomfited them, and won back all
their booty, and took all the five Kings prisoners. Then he went back to his
mother, taking the Kings with him, and there he divided the whole spoil with the
hidalgos and his other companions, both the Moorish captives and all the spoil
of whatever kind, so that they departed right joyfully, being well pleased with
what he had done. And he gave thanks to God for the grace which had been
vouchsafed to him, and said to his mother, that he did not think it good to keep
the Kings in captivity, but to let them go freely; and he set them at liberty
and bade them depart. So they returned each to his own country, blessing him for
their deliverance, and magnifying his great bounty; and forthwith they sent him
tribute and acknowledged themselves to be his vassals.
V
King Don Ferrando was going through Leon, putting the Kingdom in order, when
tidings reached him of the good speed which Rodrigo had had against the Moors.
And at the same time there came before him Ximena Gomez, the daughter of the
Count, who fell on her knees before him and said, Sir, I am the daughter of
Count Don Gomez of Gormaz, and Rodrigo of Bivar has slain the Count my father,
and of three daughters whom he has left I am the youngest. And, Sir, I come to
crave of you a boon, that you will give me Rodrigo of Bivar to be my husband,
with whom I shall hold myself well married, and greatly honoured; for certain I
am that his possessions will one day be greater than those of any man in your
dominions. Certes, Sir, it behoves you to do this, because it is for God's
service, and because I may pardon Rodrigo with a good will. The King held it
good to accomplish her desire; and forthwith ordered letters to be drawn up to
Rodrigo of Bivar, wherein he enjoined and commanded him that he should come
incontinently to Palencia, for he had much to communicate to him, upon an affair
which was greatly to God's service, and his own welfare and great honour.
VI
When Rodrigo saw the letters of his Lord the King, he greatly rejoiced in them,
and said to the messengers that he would fulfil the King's pleasure, and go
incontinently at his command. And he dight himself full gallantly and well, and
took with him many knights, both his own and of his kindred and of his friends,
and he took also many new arms, and came to Palencia to the King with two
hundred of his peers in arms, in festival guise; and the King went out to meet
him, and received him right well, and did him honour; and at this were all the
Counts displeased. And when the King thought it a fit season, he spake to him
and said, that Dona Ximena Gomez, the daughter of the Count whom he had slain,
had come to ask him for her husband, and would forgive him her father's death;
wherefore he besought him to think it good to take her to be his wife, in which
case he would show him great favour. When Rodrigo heard this it pleased him
well, and he said to the King that he would do his bidding in this, and in all
other things which he might command; and the King thanked him much. And he sent
for the Bishop of Palencia, and took their vows and made them plight themselves
each to the other according as the law directs. And when they were espoused the
King did them great honour, and gave them many noble gifts, and added to
Rodrigo's lands more than he had till then possessed: and he loved him greatly
in his heart, because he saw that he was obedient to his commands, and for all
that he had heard him say. VII
VII
So Rodrigo departed from the King, and took his spouse with him to the house of
his mother, and gave her to his mother's keeping. And forthwith he made a vow in
her hands that he would never accompany with her, neither in the desert nor in
the inhabited place, till he had won five battles in the field. And he besought
his mother that she would love her even as she loved him himself, and that she
would do good to her and show her great honour, for which he should ever serve
her with the better good will. And his mother promised him so to do; and then he
departed from them and went out against the frontier of the Moors. VIII
VIII
Now the history relates that King Don Ferrando contended with King Don Ramiro of
Aragon for the city of Calahorra, which each claimed as his own; in such guise
that the King of Aragon placed it upon the trial by combat, confiding in the
prowess of Don Martin Gonzalez, who was at that time held to be the best knight
in all Spain. King Don Ferrando accepted the challenge, and said that Rodrigo of
Bivar should do battle on his part, but that he was not then present. And they
plighted homage on both parts to meet and bring each his knight, and the knight
who conquered should win Calahorra for his Lord. Having ratified this
engagement, they returned into their own lands. And immediately Ferrando sent
for Rodrigo of Bivar, and told him all the matter as it then stood, and that he
was to do battle. Well pleased was Rodrigo when he heard this, and he accorded
to all that the King had said that he should do battle for him upon that cause;
but till the day arrived he must needs, he said, go to Compostella, because he
had vowed a pilgrimage; and the King was content therewith, and gave him great
gifts.
IX
Rodrigo forthwith set out upon the road, and took with him twenty knights. And
as he went he did great good, and gave alms, feeding the poor and needy. And
upon the way they found a leper, struggling in a quagmire, who cried out to them
with a loud voice to help him for the love of God; and when Rodrigo heard this,
he alighted from his beast and helped him, and placed him upon the beast before
him, and carried him with him in this manner to the inn where he took up his
lodging that night. At this were his knights little pleased. And when supper was
ready he bade his knights take their seats, and he took the leper by the hand,
and seated him next himself, and ate with him out of the same dish. The knights
were greatly offended at this foul sight, insomuch that they rose up and left
the chamber. But Rodrigo ordered a bed to be made ready for himself and for the
leper, and they twain slept together. When it was midnight and Rodrigo was fast
asleep, the leper breathed against him between his shoulders, and that breath
was so strong that it passed through him, even through his breast; and he awoke,
being astounded, and felt for the leper by him, and found him not; and he began
to call him, but there was no reply. Then he arose in fear, and called for
light, and it was brought him; and he looked for the leper and could see
nothing; so he returned into the bed, leaving the light burning. And he began to
think within himself what had happened, and of that breath which had passed
through him, and how the leper was not there. After a while, as he was thus
musing, there appeared before him one in white garments, who said unto him,
Sleepest thou or wakest thou, Rodrigo? and he answered and said, I do not sleep:
but who art thou that bringest with thee such brightness and so sweet an odour?
Then said he, I am Saint Lazarus, and know that I was the leper to whom thou
didst so much good and so great honour for the love of God; and because thou
didst this for his sake hath God now granted thee a great gift; for whensoever
that breath which thou hast felt shall come upon thee, whatever thing thou
desirest to do, and shalt then begin, that shalt thou accomplish to thy heart's
desire, whether it be in battle or aught else, so that thy honour shall go on
increasing from day to day; and thou shalt be feared both by Moors and
Christians, and thy enemies shall never prevail against thee, and thou shalt die
an honourable death in thine own house, and in thy renown, for God hath blessed
thee;-therefore go thou on, and evermore persevere in doing good; and with that
he disappeared. And Rodrigo arose and prayed to our lady and intercessor St.
Mary, that she would pray to her blessed Son for him to watch over both his body
and soul in all his undertakings; and he continued in prayer till the day broke.
Then he proceeded on his way, and performed his pilgrimage, doing much good for
the love of God and of St. Mary.
X
Now the day came which had been appointed for the combat concerning Calahorra,
between Rodrigo and Don Martin Gonzalez, and Rodrigo was not arrived; therefore
his cousin Alvar Fanez Minaya undertook the battle in his stead, and ordered his
horse to be harnessed right well. While he was arming himself Rodrigo came up
and took the horse of Alvar Fanez, and entered the lists; Don Martin Gonzalez
did the same, and the judges placed them fairly, each in his place, so that
neither should have the sun in his eyes. They ran their career, one against the
other, and met so fiercely that their lances brake, and both were sorely
wounded; but Don Martin began to address Rodrigo, thinking to dismay him:
Greatly dost thou now repent, Don Rodrigo, said he, that thou hast entered into
these lists with me; for I shall so handle thee that never shalt thou marry Dona
Ximena thy spouse, whom thou lovest so well, nor ever return alive to Castille.
Rodrigo waxed angry at these words, and he replied, You are a good knight, Don
Martin Gonzalez, but these words are not suitable to this place, for in this
business we have to contend with hands and not with empty speeches; and the
power is in God who will give the honour as he thinketh best. And in his anger
he made at him, and smote him upon his helmet, and the sword cut through and
wounded as much of the head as it could reach, so that he was sorely hurt and
lost much blood. And Don Martin Gonzalez struck at Rodrigo, and the sword cut
into the shield, and he plucked it towards him that with main force he made
Rodrigo lose the shield; but Rodrigo did not forget himself, and wounded him
again in the face. And they both became greatly enraged, and cruel against each
other, striking without mercy, for both of them were men who knew how to demean
themselves. But while they thus struggled Don Martin Gonzalez lost much blood,
and for very weakness he could not hold himself upon his horse, but fell from
his horse upon the ground; and Rodrigo alighted and went to him and slew him:
and when he had slain him he asked the judges if there was anything more to be
done for the right of Calahorra: and they made answer that there was not. Then
came the King Don Ferrando to him, and alighted by him, and helped to disarm
him, and embraced him much; and when he was disarmed he went with him from the
field, he and all the Castillians greatly rejoicing; but as great as was the
pleasure of King Don Ferrando and his people, so great was the sorrow of King
Don Ramiro of Aragon and of his. And he ordered them to take up Don Martin
Gonzalez, and they carried the body into his own lands, and he went with it, and
Calahorra remained in the power of King Don Ferrando.
XI
But when the Counts of Castille saw how Rodrigo increased day by day in honour,
they took counsel together that they should plot with the Moors, and fix a day
of battle with them on the day of the Holy Cross in May, and that they should
invite Rodrigo to this battle, and contrive with the Moors that they should slay
him; by which means they should be revenged upon him, and remain masters of
Castille, which now because of him they could not be. This counsel they sent to
communicate to the Moors and to the Moorish Kings who were Rodrigo's vassals,
being those whom he had made prisoners and set at liberty. But they, when they
saw this counsel and the falsehood which was devised, took the letters of the
Counts, and sent them to Rodrigo their Lord, and sent to tell him all the secret
of the treason. Rodrigo thanked them greatly for their good faith, and took the
letters and carried them to the King, and showed him all the enmity of the
Counts, and especially of the Count Don Garcia, who was afterwards called of
Cabra. When the King saw this as it was, he was astonished at their great
falsehood, and he issued his letters in which he ordered them to leave his
dominions; then he went to Santiago on a pilgrimage, and ordered Rodrigo to cast
these Counts out of the land; and Rodrigo did as the King commanded him. Then
Dona Elvira his kinswoman, the wife of the Count Don Garcia, came and fell on
her knees before him; but Rodrigo took her by the hand and raised her up, and
would not hear her till she was arisen. And when he had raised her up she said,
I beseech you, cousin, since you have banished me and my husband, that you would
give us a letter to some King who is one of your vassals, enjoining him to
befriend us, and give us something for your sake whereon we may live. So he gave
her a letter to the King of Cordova, who received her and her husband well for
the love of Rodrigo, and gave Cabra to him, that he and his people might dwell
therein. This Count was afterwards so ungrateful to the King of Cordova that he
made war upon him from Cabra which the King had given him, till Rodrigo came and
took it. XII
XII
The history relateth that at this time while the King was in Galicia, the Moors
entered Estremadura, and the people called upon Rodrigo of Bivar to help them.
And when he heard the summons he made no delay, but gathered together his
kinsmen and his friends, and went against the misbelievers. And he came up with
them between Atienza and San Estevan de Gormaz, as they were carrying away a
great booty in captives and in flocks, and there he had a brave battle with them
in the field; and in fine Rodrigo conquered, smiting and slaying, and the
pursuit lasted for seven leagues, and he recovered all the spoil, which was so
great that two hundred horses were the fifth, for the whole spoil was worth a
hundred times a thousand maravedis. Rodrigo divided the whole among his people
without covetousness, and returned with great honour. XIII
XIII
Now the greater part of these Moors had been they of Merida, Badajoz, Beja and
Evora, and the King was minded to requite them in their own land according to
their deeds; and he entered into the heart of their country, carrying with him
fire and sword, and pressed them sorely so that they yielded vassalage. Then
turning through Portugal, he won the town of Sea, which was upon the western
slope of the Serra da Estrella; and also another town called Gamne, the site
whereof cannot now be known, for in course of years names change and are
forgotten. And proceeding with his conquests he laid siege to the city of Viseu,
that he might take vengeance for the death of King Don Alfonso, his wife's
father, who had been slain before that city. But the people of Viseu, as they
lived with this fear before their eyes, had fortified their city well, and
stored it abundantly with all things needful, and moreover, they put their trust
in their Alcayde, who was an African, by name Cid Alafum, a man tried in arms.
He encouraged them, saying that the city could not be taken in ten years, by a
greater power than the Christians; and there were many good arbalisters in the
city, who shot so strong that neither shield nor armour availed against their
quarrels. King Don Ferrando therefore ordered mantles to be made, and also
pavaises to protect his people; and moreover he enjoined them to fasten boards
upon their shields, so that the quarrels from the cross-bows might not pierce
through. And he continued for eighteen days to combat the city, keeping such
good watch, that neither could they within receive help from without, nor
themselves issue forth; and on the eighteenth day, which was the Vesper of St.
Peter's, he won the city by force of arms; and few were they who escaped from
the sword of the conquerors, except those who retreated with Alafum into the
castle. And on the following day at the hour of tierce they also came to terms,
and yielded themselves to his mercy, saving their lives. In this manner was
Viseu recovered by the Christians, and never after did that city fall into the
hands of the barbarians. And the Moor who had slain King Don Alfonso fell into
Ferrando's power, and the King took vengeance and punished him in all the parts
which had offended; he cut off the foot which had prest down the Armatost, and
lopt off the hands which had held the bow and fitted the quarrel, and plucked
out the eyes which had taken the mark; and the living trunk was then set up as a
butt for the archers. XIV
XIV
In all these wars there was not a man who bore greater part, or did better feats
in arms, than Rodrigo of Bivar. And the King went up against Lamego, and
besieged it. Now Zadan Aben Huim, son of Huim Alboazem, the King thereof, was
mightier than all the Kings who had reigned before him in Lamego, and he had
peopled many places from the Douro even to the rivers Tavora and Vouga. And
because he was well beloved and his city well stored and strong, all the chief
Moors in that district being dismayed by the fall of Viseu, retired into it, to
be under his protection. But maugre all their power, King Don Ferrando girt the
city round about, and brought against it so many engines, and so many bastilles,
that Zadan submitted, and opened his gates on the twenty-second of July, the day
of St. Mary Magdalene, being twenty-five days after the capture of Viseu. And
Zadan became tributary to the King, and the King took with him many of the
Moors, to be employed in building up the churches which had fallen to ruin since
the land was lost.
XV
All this while was Coimbra in the power of the misbelievers. And the Abbot of
Lorvam took counsel with his Monks, and they said, Let us go to King Ferrando
and tell him the state of the city. And they chose out two of the brethren for
this errand. When the Moors therefore who came to hunt among the mountains took
up their lodging in the Monastery as they were wont to do, these twain said unto
them, We would go to the holy Dominicum, to say prayers there for our sins. So
feigning this to be their errand they set forth, and came to the King in the
town of Carrion, and spake unto him in council, saying, Sir King, we come to you
through waters and over mountains and by bad ways, to tell you concerning
Coimbra in what plight it is, if you desire to know, and in what guise the Moors
dwell there, what they are and how many, and with how little heed they keep the
city. And he said unto them, I beseech ye, for the love of God, say on. Then
told they him what they knew: and the King took counsel upon this matter with
Rodrigo of Bivar, and Rodrigo said, that certes the Lord would help him to win
the city; and he said that he would fain be knighted by the King's hand, and
that it seemed to him now that he should receive knighthood at his hand in
Coimbra. A covenant was then made with the two Monks, that they should go with
the army against the city in the month of January without fail. Now this was in
October. Incontinently the King sent to summon his knights and people, and when
one part of them had assembled at Santa Maria, he bade them do all the damage
they could against Coimbra, and ravage the country, which accordingly they did.
In the meantime the King made a pilgrimage to Santiago, as Rodrigo had exhorted
him to do; and he remained there three days and nights in prayer, offering great
gifts, and taking upon himself great devotion, that it might please God to
fulfil his desire. And with the help of Santiago he gathered together a great
host, and went up against Coimbra in the month of January, even as he had
covenanted, and laid siege to it. And he fought against the city all February,
and March, and April, May and June, five months did he fight, and could not
prevail against it. And when July came the food of the besiegers failed them,
insomuch that they had only the dole for a few days left; then the baggage was
made ready, and the sumpter beasts and serving-men were ordered to depart for
Leon, and proclamation was made in the camp that the army should remain yet four
days, and on the fifth they might break up and depart every one to his own
house. But then the Monks of Lorvam and the Abbot consulted together and said,
Let us now go to the King and give him all the food which we have, both oxen and
cows, and sheep and goats and swine, wheat and barley and maize, bread and wine,
fish and fowl, even all that we have; for if the city, which God forbid, should
not be won by the Christians, we may no longer abide here. Then went they to the
King and gave him all their stores, both of flocks and herds, and pulse, and
wine beyond measure, which they had for a long time stored. Then was there
abundance in the camp; but they who were within the city waxed feeble for hunger
and long suffering, because the Christians beset them on all sides, and warred
upon them hotly, and brought their engines to bear on every part, and the walls
of the city were broken down. When the Moors saw this they came to the King, and
fell at his feet, and besought him of his mercy that he would let them depart,
leaving to him the city and all that they had therein, for they asked for
nothing but their lives. And the King had compassion upon them and granted their
prayer; and the city was yielded to him on a Sunday at the hour of tierce, which
was before a week had run out since the Monks of Lorvam had succoured the host.
XVI
XVI
Now it came to pass that while the King lay before Coimbra, there came a pilgrim
from the land of Greece on pilgrimage to Santiago; his name was Estiano, and he
was a Bishop. And as he was praying in the church he heard certain of the
townsmen and of the pilgrims saying that Santiago was wont to appear in battle
like a knight, in aid of the Christians. And when he heard this it nothing
pleased him, and he said unto them, Friends, call him not a knight, but rather a
fisherman. Upon this it pleased God that he should fall asleep, and in his sleep
Santiago appeared to him with a good and cheerful countenance, holding in his
hand a bunch of keys, and said unto him, Thou thinkest it a fable that they
should call me a knight, and sayest that I am not so: for this reason am I come
unto thee that thou never more mayest doubt concerning my knighthood; for a
knight of Jesus Christ I am and a helper of the Christians against the Moors.
While he was thus saying a horse was brought him the which was exceeding white,
and the Apostle Santiago mounted upon it, being well clad in bright and fair
armour, after the manner of a knight. And he said to Estiano, I go to help King
Don Ferrando who has lain these seven months before Coimbra, and tomorrow, with
these keys which thou seest, will I open the gates of the city unto him at the
hour of tierce, and deliver it into his hand. Having said this he departed. And
the Bishop when he awoke in the morning called together the clergy and people of
Compostella, and told them what he had seen and heard. And as he said, even so
did it come to pass; for tidings came that on that day, and at the hour of
tierce, the gates of the city had been opened. XVII
XVII
King Don Ferrando then assembled his Counts and chief captains, and told them
all that the Monks of Lorvam had done, in bringing him to besiege the city, and
in supplying his army in their time of need: and the Counts and chief captains
made answer and said, Certes, O King, if the Monks had not given us the stores
of their Monastery, thou couldest not have taken the city at this time. The King
then called for the Abbot and the brethren, for they were with him in the host,
and said the hours to him daily, and mass in St. Andre's, and buried there and
in their Monastery as many as had died during the siege, either of arrow-wounds
or by lances, or of their own infirmities. So they came before him and gave him
joy of his conquest; and he said unto them, Take ye now of this city as much as
ye desire, since by God's favour and your council I have won it. But they made
answer, Thanks be to God and to you, and to your forefathers, we have enough and
shall have, if so be that we have your favour and dwell among Christians. Only
for the love of God, and for the remedy of your own soul, give us one church
with its dwelling-houses within the city, and confirm unto us the gifts made to
us in old times by your forefathers, and the good men to whom God give a happy
rest. With that the King turned to his sons and his soldiers, and said, Of a
truth, by our Creator, these who desire so little are men of God. I would have
given them half the city, and they will have only single church! Now therefore,
since they require but this, on the part of God Almighty let us grant and
confirm unto them what they ask, to the honour of God and St. Mamede. And the
brethren brought him their charters of King Ramiro, and King Bermudo, and King
Alfonso, and of Gonzalo Moniz, who was a knight and married a daughter of King
Bermudo, and of other good men. And the King confirmed them, and he bade them
make a writing of all which had passed between him and them at the siege of
Coimbra; and when they brought him the writing, they brought him also a crown of
silver and of gold, which had been King Bermudo's, and which Gonzalo Moniz had
given to the Monastery in honour of God and St. Mamede. The King saw the crown,
how it was set with precious stones, and said to them, To what end bring ye
hither this crown? And they said, That you should take it, Sire, in return for
the good which you have done us. But he answered, Far be it from me that I
should take from your Monastery what the good men before me have given to it!
Take ye back the crown, and take also ten marks of silver, and make with the
money a good cross, to remain with you for ever. And he who shall befriend you,
may God befriend him; but he who shall disturb you or your Monastery, may he be
cursed by the living God and by his Saints. So the King signed the writing which
he had commanded to be made, and his sons and chief captains signed it also, and
in the writing he enjoined his children and his children's children, as many as
should come after him, to honour and protect the Monastery of Lorvam, upon his
blessing he charged them so to do, because he had found the brethren better than
all the other Monks in his dominions. XVIII
XVIII
Then King Ferrando knighted Rodrigo of Bivar in the great mosque of Coimbra,
which he dedicated to St. Mary. And the ceremony was after this manner: the King
girded on his sword, and gave him the kiss, but not the blow. To do him more
honour the Queen gave him his horse, and the Infanta Dona Urraca fastened on his
spurs; and from that day forth he was called Ruydiez. Then the King commanded
him to knight nine noble squires with his own hand; and he took his sword before
the altar, and knighted them. The King then gave Coimbra to the keeping of Don
Sisnando, Bishop of Iria; a man, who having more hardihood than religion, had by
reason of his misdeeds gone over to the Moors, and sorely infested the
Christians in Portugal. But during the siege he had come to the King's service,
and bestirred himself well against the Moors; and therefore the King took him
into his favour, and gave him the city to keep, which he kept, and did much evil
to the Moors till the day of his death. And the King departed and went to
Compostella to return thanks to Santiago. XIX
XIX
But then Benalfagi, who was the Lord of many lands in Estremadura, gathered
together a great power of the Moors and built up the walls of Montemor, and from
thence waged war against Coimbra, so that they of Coimbra called upon the King
for help. And the King came up against the town, and fought against it, and took
it. Great honour did Ruydiez win at that siege; for having to protect the
foragers, the enemy came out upon him, and thrice in one day was he beset by
them; but he, though sorely prest by them, and in great peril, nevertheless
would not send to the camp for succour, but put forth his manhood and defeated
them. And from that day the King gave more power into his hands, and made him
head over all his household.
XX
Now the men of Leon besought the King that he would repeople Zamora, which had
lain desolate since it was destroyed by Almanzor. And he went thither and
peopled the city, and gave to it good privileges. And while he was there came
messengers from the five Kings who were vassals to Ruydiez of Bivar, bringing
him their tribute; and they came to him, he being with the King, and called him
Cid, which signifyeth Lord, and would have kissed his hands, but he would not
give them his hand till they had kissed the hand of the King. And Ruydiez took
the tribute and offered the fifth thereof to the King, in token of his
sovereignty; and the King thanked him, but would not receive it, and from that
time he ordered that Ruydiez should be called the Cid, because the Moors had so
called him. XXI
XXI
In those days Pope Victor II held a council at Florence, and the Emperor Henry
there made his complaint against King Don Ferrando, that he did not acknowledge
his sovereignty, and pay him tribute like all other Kings; and he besought the
Pope to admonish him so to do. And the Pope being a German, and the friend of
Henry, sent to the King to admonish him, and told him that unless he obeyed he
would proclaim a crusade against him; and in like manner the Emperor, and the
King of France, and the other Kings, sent to exhort him to obedience, defying
him if he should refuse. When the King saw their letters he was troubled, for he
knew that if this thing were done, great evil would follow to Castille and Leon.
And he took counsel with his honourable men. They seeing on the one hand the
great power of the Church, and on the other the great evil that it would be if
Castille and Leon should be made tributary, knew not what counsel to give;
howbeit at length they said to him that he should do the Pope's bidding. At this
council the Cid was not present, for he had lately completed his marriage with
Dona Ximena Gomez, and was then with her; but at this time he arrived, and the
King showed him the letters, and told him the matter how it then stood, and what
had been the advice of his good men, and besought him to speak his advice, as a
good and true vassal to his Lord. When the Cid heard what had passed it grieved
him to the heart, more for the counsel which had been given to the King, than
because of the Pope's commands; and he turned to the King and said, In an ill
day, Sir, were you born in Spain, if it be in your time to be made tributary,
which it never was before; for all the honour which God hath given you, and
whatever good he hath done to you, is lost if it should be so. And, Sir, whoever
hath given you this counsel is not a true man, neither one who regardeth your
honour nor your power. But send to defy them since they will have it so, and let
us carry the war home to them. You shall take with you five thousand knights,
all of whom are hidalgos, and the Moorish Kings who are your vassals will give
you two thousand knights; and, Sir, you are such a one as God loves, and he will
not that your honour should perish. And the King thought that he was well
counselled by him, for the King was of a great heart. XXII
XXII
Then the King ordered letters to be written, in which he besought the Pope not
to proceed farther against him without just cause, for Spain had been conquered
by those who dwelt therein, by the blood of them and of their fathers, and they
had never been tributary, and never would be so, but would rather all die.
Moreover he sent his letters to the Emperor and to the other Kings, telling them
that they well knew the wrong which the Emperor did him, having no jurisdiction
over him, nor lawful claim; and he besought them to let him alone that he might
continue to wage war against the enemies of the faith; but if they persisted to
speak against him he then sent them back their friendship, and defied them, and
where they all were there would he go seek them. While this reply was on its way
he gathered together his people, as he and the Cid had advised, and set forward
with eight thousand and nine hundred knights, both of his own and of the Cid,
and the Cid led the advance guard. When they had passed the passes of Aspa they
found that the country was up, and the people would not sell them food; but the
Cid set his hand to, to burn all the country before him, and plunder from those
who would not sell, but to those who brought food he did no wrong. And after
such manner did he proceed, that wherever the King and his army arrived they
found all things of which they could stand in need; and the news went sounding
throughout all the land, so that all men trembled. XXIII
XXIII
Then Count Remon, Lord of Savoy, with the power of the King of France, gathered
together twenty thousand knights and came beyond Tolosa, to hold the road
against King Don Ferrando. And he met with his harbinger the Cid, who went
before him to prepare lodgings, and they had a hard battle; and the men of the
Count were discomfited, and he himself made prisoner and many with him, and many
were slain. And the Count besought the Cid of his mercy to set him free, saying
that he would give him a daughter he had, the which was right fair; and the Cid
did as he besought him, and the daughter was given to him, and he set the Count
free. And by this woman King Don Ferrando had his son the Cardinal Ferrando, who
was so honourable a man. XXIV
XXIV
After this the Cid had another battle with all the power of France, and
discomfited them, and at neither of these battles did the King and his main army
arrive. So the news went sounding before them to the council, of the fierceness
of the Cid; and as they all knew that he was the conqueror of battles, they knew
not what to advise; and they besought the Pope that he would send to them,
begging them to turn back, and saying that they did not require tribute. These
letters came to the King when he had past Tolosa, and he took counsel with the
Cid and with his good men, and they advised that he should send two of his good
men to the Pope, who should tell him to send a Cardinal with power to make a
covenant, that this demand should never again be made upon Spain; and that
persons from the Emperor and from the other Kings also should come to ratify
this, and meanwhile he would abide where he was. But if they did not come he
would go on to them. Count Don Rodrigo, and Alvar Fanez Minaya, and certain
learned men, were sent with this bidding. And when they came to the Pope and
gave him their letters, he was much dismayed, and he assembled the good and
honourable men of the council, and asked of them what he should do. And they
made answer that he must do as the King willed him, for none was so hardy as to
fight against the good fortune of his vassal the Cid. And the Pope sent Master
Roberto, the Cardinal of St. Sabina, with full powers, and the representatives
of the Emperor and of the other Kings came also and signed the covenant, that
this demand should never again be made upon the King of Spain. And the writings
which they made were confirmed by the Pope and by the Emperor and the other
Kings, and sealed with their seals. XXV
XXV
While this was doing the King abode where he was, beyond Tolosa; six months did
he abide there. And the Pope sent to ask of him the daughter of Count Remon; and
she was then five months gone with child; and by the advice of his vassal the
Cid the King sent her, and sent to tell the Pope the whole truth, requesting
that he would see she was taken care of; and the Pope ordered that she should be
taken care of till the event should be. And she was delivered of the Abbot Don
Ferrando; the Pope was his godfather, and brought him up right honourably, and
dispensed with his bastardy that he might hold any sacred dignity; and in
process of time he was made an honourable Cardinal. So the King returned with
great honour into his own land, and from that time he was called Don Ferrando
the Great, the Emperor's Peer; and it was said of him in songs that he had
passed the passes of Aspa in despite of the Frenchmen. XXVI
XXVI
Many other things did King Don Ferrando, which are written in the book of the
Chronicles of the Kings of Spain, enriching churches and monasteries, and
honouring the saints and martyrs, and making war upon the misbelievers. And it
came to pass when he was waxed old, that as he was one day saying his prayers,
the confessor St. Isidro appeared unto him, and told him the day and hour when
he should die, to the intent that he might make ready and confess his sins, and
make atonement for them, and take thought for his soul, that so he might appear
clean from offence before the face of God. From that day he, being certain that
his end was at hand, began to discharge his soul. And he devised within himself
how to dispose of the kingdoms which God had given him, that there might be no
contention between his sons after his death; and he thought it best to divide
his lands among them; but this which he thought best proved to be the worst, and
great evil came thereof, for better had it been that he had left all to the
eldest. Howbeit it was his pleasure to divide them: he had three sons, Don
Sancho who was the eldest, and Don Alfonso who was the second born, and Don
Garcia who was the youngest; and two daughters, Dona Urraca and Dona Elvira. The
manner in which he divided his lands was this: he gave to Don Sancho the kingdom
of Castille as far as to the river Pisuerga, on the side of Leon, with the
border, which included the dioceses of Osma, and Segovia, and Avila, and on the
side of Navarre as far as the Ebro, as he had won it from his nephew Don Sancho
Garcia, King of Navarre. To Don Alfonso he gave the kingdom of Leon, and in
Asturias as far as the river Deva, which runs by Oviedo, and part of Campos as
far as Carrion and the river Pisuerga, with the border, which contained the
dioceses of Zamora, Salamanca, and Ciudad Rodrigo, and the city of Astorga, and
other lands in Galicia, with the town of Zebreros. To Don Garcia he gave the
kingdom of Galicia, and all the lands which he had won in Portugal, with the
title of King of Galicia, which country had had no King of its own since the
kingdom of the Suevi had been overthrown by King Leovegildo. And to Dona Urraca
he gave the city of Zamora with all its dependencies, and with half the
Infantazgo; and the other half, with the city of Toro and its dependencies, to
Dona Elvira. XXVII
XXVII
When the Infante Don Sancho knew that the King his father had made this
allotment it displeased him, for he was the eldest son; and he said to his
father that he neither could nor ought to make this division; for the Gothic
Kings had in old time made a constitution for themselves, that the kingdom and
empire of Spain never should be divided, but remain one dominion under one Lord.
But the King replied that he would not for this forbear to do as he had
resolved, for he had won the kingdom: then the Infante made answer, Do as you
will, being my father and Lord; but I do not consent unto it. So the King made
the division against the right of the Infante Don Sancho, and it displeased many
in the kingdom, and many it pleased; but they who were of good understanding
perceived the evil which would arise. XXVIII
XXVIII
After this the King fell sick with the malady whereof he died. And he made
himself be carried to Leon, and there on his knees before the bodies of the
saints he besought mercy of them. And putting his crown upon his head before the
holy body of St. Isidro he called upon God, saying, O Lord Jesus Christ, thine
is the power over all, and thine is the kingdom, for thou art King of all
kingdoms, and of all Kings, and of all nations, and all are at thy command. And
now Lord I return unto thee the kingdom which thou hast given me, but I beseech
thee of thy mercy that my soul may be brought to the light which hath no end.
Having said thus, he stript himself of the royal robes adorned with gold in
which he was arrayed, and took the crown from his head and placed it upon the
altar; and he put sackcloth upon the carrion of his body, and prayed to God,
confessing all the sins which he had committed against him, and took his
acquittal from the Bishops, for they absolved him from his sins; and forthwith
he there received extreme unction, and strewed ashes upon himself. After this,
by his own order he was carried to St. Mary of Almazan in pilgrimage, and there
he remained thrice nine days, beseeching St. Mary that she would have mercy upon
him and intercede with her blessed Son for his soul. From thence they carried
him to Cabezon, and there the Abbot Don Ferrando came to him, an honourable man,
and many other honourable men of his realms, and the Cid Ruydiez, whom the King
commended to the Infante Don Sancho, his son. And after he had put all his
affairs in order he remained three days lamenting in pain, and on the fourth,
being the day of St. John the Evangelist, he called for the Cardinal Abbot, and
commended Spain and his other sons to him, and gave him his blessing, and then
at the hour of sexts he rendered up his soul without stain to God, being full of
years. So they carried him to Leon and buried him near his father, in the Church
of St. Isidro, which he had built. Thirty and one years did King Don Ferrando
the Great, who was peer with the Emperor, reign over Castille. The Queen his
wife lived two years after him, leading a holy life; a good Queen had she been
and of good understanding, and right loving to her husband: always had she
counselled him well, being in truth the mirror of his kingdoms, and the friend
of the widows and orphans. Her end was a good end, like that of the King her
husband: God give them Paradise for their reward. Amen.
BOOK TWO
I
The history relates how after the death of King Don Ferrando, the three Kings
his sons reigned each in his kingdom, according to the division made by their
father, who had divided that which should all by right have descended to the
King Don Sancho. Now the Kings of Spain were of the blood of the Goths, which
was a fierce blood, for it had many times come to pass among the Gothic Kings,
that brother had slain brother upon this quarrel; from this blood was King Don
Sancho descended, and he thought that it would be a reproach unto him if he did
not join together the three kingdoms under his own dominion, for he was not
pleased with what his father had given him, holding that the whole ought to have
been his. And he went through the land setting it in order, and what thing
soever his people asked at his hand that did he grant them freely, to the end
that he might win their hearts.
II
When King Don Sancho of Navarre saw that there was a new King in Castille, he
thought to recover the lands of Bureva and of Old Castille as far as Laredo,
which had been lost when the King his father was defeated and slain at Atapuerca
in the mountains of Oca. And now seeing that the kingdom of Ferrando was
divided, he asked help of his uncle Don Ramiro, King of Aragon; and the men of
Aragon and of Navarre entered Castille together. But King Don Sancho gathered
together his host, and put the Cid at their head; and such account did he give
of his enemies, that he of Navarre was glad to enjoy Rioja in peace, and lay no
farther claim to what his father had lost. Now the King of Castille was wroth
against the King of Aragon, that he should thus have joined against him without
cause; and in despite of him he marched against the Moors of Zaragoza, and
laying waste their country with fire and sword, he came before their city and
gave orders to assault it, and began to set up his engines. When the King of
Zaragoza saw the great will which the King had to do evil unto him, and that
there was none to help him, he thought it best to come to his mercy, paying
tribute, or serving him, or in any manner whatsoever. And he sent interpreters
to King Don Sancho saying, that he would give him much gold and silver, and many
gifts, and be his vassal, and pay him tribute yearly. The King received them
right honourably, and when he had heard their bidding he answered resolutely,
being of a great heart, All this which the King of Zaragoza sends to say unto me
is well, but he hath another thing in his heart. He sends to bid me break up the
siege and depart from his land, and as soon as I should have departed, he would
make friends unto himself among Christians and among Moors, and fail me in all
which he covenants. Nevertheless I will do this thing which your King requires
of me; but if in the end he lie, I will come back upon him and destroy him,
trusting in God that he cannot defend himself against me. And when the
interpreters heard this they were greatly dismayed, and they returned and told
their King all that he had said. And the Moors seeing that they could not help
themselves, made such terms with him as it pleased him to grant, and gave him
hostages that they might not be able to prove false. And they gave him gold and
silver and precious stones in abundance, so that with great riches and full
honourably did he and all his men depart from the siege. III
III
Greatly was the King of Aragon displeased at this which King Don Sancho had
done, thinking that it was to his great injury and abasement, for Zaragoza he
held to be within his conquest. And he came out with all his power to cut off
the King's return, and took possession of the way, and said unto him that he
should not pass till he had made amends for the great dishonour which he had
wrought him, in coming into his conquest and against his vassals: the amends
which he required was, that he should yield unto him all the spoil, and all
which the King of Zaragoza had given him, else should he not pass without
battle. When King Don Sancho heard this, being a man of great heart, he made
answer, that he was the head of the kingdoms of Castille and Leon, and all the
conquests in Spain were his, for the Kings of Aragon had no conquests
appertaining unto them, being by right his tributaries, and bound to appear at
his Cortes. Wherefore he counselled him to waive this demand, and let him pass
in peace. But the King of Aragon drew up his host for battle, and the onset was
made, and heavy blows were dealt on both sides, and many horses were left
without a master. And while the battle was yet upon the chance, King Don Sancho
riding right bravely through the battle, began to call out Castille! Castille!
and charged the main body so fiercely that by fine force he broke them; and when
they were thus broken, the Castillians began cruelly to slay them, so that King
Don Sancho had pity thereof, and called out unto his people not to kill them,
for they were Christians. Then King Don Ramiro being discomfited, retired to a
mountain, and King Don Sancho beset the mountain round about, and made a
covenant with him that he should depart, and that the King of Zaragoza should
remain tributary to Castille; and but for this covenant the King of Aragon would
then have been slain, or made prisoner. This was the battle whereof the Black
Book of Santiago speaketh, saying, that in this year, on the day of the
Conversion of St. Paul, was the great slaughter of the Christians in Porca. In
all these wars did my Cid demean himself after his wonted manner; and because of
the great feats which he performed the King loved him well, and made him his
Alferez; so that in the whole army he was second only to the King. And because
when the host was in the field it was his office to chuse the encampment place,
for this reason was my Cid called the Campeador.
IV
While King Don Sancho was busied in these wars, King Don Garcia of Galicia took
by force from Dona Urraca his sister a great part of the lands which the King
their father had given her. And when she heard this she began to lament aloud,
saying, Ah! King Don Ferrando, in an evil hour didst thou divide thy kingdom,
for thereby will all the land be brought to destruction. And now also will be
accomplished that which my fosterer Arias Gonzalo said, for now that King Don
Garcia who is my younger brother, hath dispossessed me and broken the oath which
he made unto my father, what will not the elder do, who made the vow by
compulsion, and always made protestation against the division! God send that as
thou hast disherited me, thou mayest speedily thyself in like manner be
disherited, Amen! But when King Don Sancho heard what his brother had done he
was well pleased thereat, thinking that he might now bring to pass that which he
so greatly desired; and he assembled together his Ricos-omes and his knights,
and said unto them, The King my father divided the kingdoms which should have
been mine, and therein he did unjustly; now King Don Garcia my brother hath
broken the oath and disherited Dona Urraca my sister; I beseech ye therefore
counsel me what I shall do, and in what manner to proceed against him, for I
will take his kingdom away from him. Upon this Count Don Garcia Ordonez arose
and said, There is not a man in the world, Sir, who would counsel you to break
the command of your father, and the vow which you made unto him. And the King
was greatly incensed at him and said, Go from before me, for I shall never
receive good counsel from thee. The King then took the Cid by the hand and led
him apart, and said unto him, Thou well knowest, my Cid, that when the King my
father commended thee unto me, he charged me upon pain of his curse that I
should take you for my adviser, and whatever I did that I should do it with your
counsel, and I have done so even until this day; and thou hast always counselled
me for the best, and for this I have given thee a county in my kingdom, holding
it well bestowed. Now then I beseech you advise me how best to recover these
kingdoms, for if I have not counsel from you I do not expect to have it from any
man in the world.
V
Greatly troubled at this was the Cid, and he answered and said, Ill, Sir, would
it behove me to counsel you that you should go against the will of your father.
You well know that when I went to Cabezon unto him, after he had divided his
kingdoms, how he made me swear to him that I would always counsel his sons the
best I could, and never give them ill counsel; and while I can, thus must I
continue to do. But the King answered, My Cid, I do not hold that in this I am
breaking the oath made to my father, for I ever said that the partition should
not be, and the oath which I made was forced upon me. Now King Don Garcia my
brother hath broken the oath, and all these kingdoms by right are mine: and
therefore I will that you counsel me how I may unite them, for from so doing
there is nothing in this world which shall prevent me, except it be death. Then
when the Cid saw that he could by no means turn him from that course, he advised
him to obtain the love of his brother King Don Alfonso, that he might grant him
passage through his kingdom to go against Don Garcia: and if this should be
refused he counselled him not to make the attempt. And the King saw that his
counsel was good, and sent his letters to King Don Alfonso beseeching him to
meet him at Sahagun. When King Don Alfonso received the letters he marvelled to
what end this might be: howbeit he sent to say that he would meet him. And the
two kings met in Sahagun. And King Don Sancho said, Brother, you well know that
King Don Garcia our brother hath broken the oath made unto our father, and
disherited our sister Dona Urraca: for this I will take his kingdom away from
him, and I beseech you join with me. But Don Alfonso answered that he would not
go against the will of his father, and the oath which he had sworn. Then King
Don Sancho said, that if he would let him pass through his kingdom he would give
him part of what he should gain: and King Don Alfonso agreed to this. And upon
this matter they fixed another day to meet; and then forty knights were named,
twenty for Castille and twenty for Leon, as vouchers that this which they
covenanted should be faithfully fulfilled on both sides.
VI
Then King Don Sancho gathered together a great host, Castillians and Leonese,
and they of Navarre and Biscay, Asturians, and men of Aragon and of the border.
And he sent Alvar Fanez, the cousin of the Cid, to King Don Garcia, to bid him
yield up his kingdom, and if he refused to do this to defy him on his part.
Alvar Fanez, albeit unwillingly, was bound to obey the bidding of his Lord, and
he went to King Don Garcia and delivered his bidding. When King Don Garcia heard
it he was greatly troubled, and he cried out in his trouble and said, Lord Jesus
Christ, thou rememberest the oath which we made to our father! for my sins I
have been the first to break it, and have disherited my sister. And he said to
Alvar Fanez, Say to my brother that I beseech him not to break the oath which he
made to our father; but if he will persist to do this thing I must defend myself
as I can. And with this answer Alvar Fanez returned. Then King Don Garcia called
unto him a knight of Asturias, whose name was Ruy Ximenez, and bade him go to
his brother King Don Alfonso and tell him what had past, and how King Don Sancho
would take away his kingdom from him; and to beseech him as a brother that he
would not let him pass through his dominions. And King Don Alfonso replied, Say
to my brother that I will neither help King Don Sancho, nor oppose him: and tell
him that if he can defend himself I shall be well pleased. And with this answer,
Ruy Ximenez returned, and bade the King look to himself for defence, for he
would find no help in his brother. VII
VII
Now Don Garcia was not beloved in his kingdom of Galicia, neither in Portugal,
for as much as he showed little favour to the hidalgos, both Galegos and
Portugueze, and vexed the people with tributes which he had newly imposed. The
cause of all this was a favourite, by name Verna, to whom the King gave so much
authority, that he displeased all the chief persons in his dominions, and
hearkened unto him in all things; and by his advice it was that he had despoiled
his sister Dona Urraca of her lands, and his sister Dona Elvira also, and had
done other things, whereby Portugal and Galicia were now in danger to be lost.
And the knights and hidalgos took counsel together how they might remedy these
evils, and they agreed that the King should in the name of them all be advised
how ill he was served, and intreated to put away his favourite. Don Rodrigo
Frojaz was the one named to speak unto the King; for being a man of approved
valour, and the Lord of many lands, it was thought that the King would listen
more to him than to any other. But it fell out otherwise than they had devised,
for Verna had such power over the mind of the King, that the remonstrance was
ill received, and Don Rodrigo and the other hidalgos were contumeliously treated
in public by the King. Don Rodrigo would not bear this, being a right loyal and
valiant man; and he went one day into the palace, and finding Verna busied in
affairs of state, he drew forth his sword and slew him; then leaving the palace,
for none cared to lay hands on him, he left Portugal, and took the road toward
France; many of his vassals and kinsmen and friends following him, to seek their
fortunes in a country where valour would be esteemed, for they were weary of the
bad Government of King Don Garcia. VIII
VIII
But when King Don Garcia knew of the league which his brethren had made to
divide his kingdom between them, it was a greater trouble to him than the death
of Verna, and he called his chief captains together and consulted with them; and
they advised him that he should send to recall Don Rodrigo Frojaz, for having
him the realm would be secure, and without him it was in danger to be lost. So
two hidalgos were sent after him, and they found him in Navarre, on the eve of
passing into France. But when he saw the King's letters, and knew the peril in
which he then stood, setting aside the remembrance of his own wrongs, like a
good and true Portugueze, he turned back, and went to the King at Coimbra. In
good time did he arrive, for the captains of King Don Sancho had now gained many
lands in Galicia and in the province of Beira, finding none to resist them, and
the Count Don Nuno de Lara, and the Count of Monzon, and Don Garcia de Cabra,
were drawing nigh unto Coimbra. When Don Rodrigo heard this and knew that the
Castillians were approaching, and who they were, he promised the King either to
maintain his cause, or die for it; and he besought him not to go into the battle
himself, having so many vassals and so good; for it was not fitting that he
should expose himself when there was no King coming against him. And it came to
pass that when the scouts gave notice that the Castillians were at hand, he
ordered the trumpets to be sounded, and the Portugueze sallied, and a little
below the city, at the place which is now called Agoa de Mayas, the two
squadrons met. Then was the saying of Arias Gonzalo fulfilled, that kinsmen
should kill kinsmen, and brother fall by his brother's hand. But the Portugueze
fought so well, and especially Don Rodrigo, and his brothers Don Pedro and Don
Vermui Frojaz, that at length they discomfited the Castillians, killing of them
five hundred and forty, of whom three hundred were knights, and winning their
pennons and banners. Howbeit this victory was not obtained without great loss to
themselves; for two hundred and twenty of their people were left upon the field,
and many were sorely wounded, among whom, even to the great peril of his life,
was Don Rodrigo Frojaz, being wounded with many and grievous wounds. In this
battle was slain the Count Don Fafes Sarracem de Lanhoso, with many of his
vassals, he from whom the Godinhos are descended: he was a right good knight.
IX
A sorrowful defeat was that for King Don Sancho, more for the quality of the
slain than for their number; and he put himself at the head of his army, and
hastened through the midst of Portugal, to go against his brother. And King Don
Garcia hearing of his approach, called together his knights and hidalgos, and
said unto them, Friends, we have no land whereunto to fly from the King Don
Sancho my brother, let us therefore meet him in battle, and either conquer him
or die; for better is it to die an honourable death than to suffer this spoiling
in our country. And to the Portugueze he said, Friends, ye are right noble and
haughty knights, and it is your custom to have among you few lords and good
ones; now therefore make me a good one, which will be to your own great honour
and profit; and if I come out of this struggle well, I shall guerdon ye well, so
that ye shall understand the will I have to do good towards ye. And they made
answer and said that they would stand by him to the last, and that he should not
be put down by their default. Then spake he to the Galegos and said, Friends, ye
are right good and true knights, and never was it yet said that lord was
forsaken by you in the field. I put myself in your hands, being assured that ye
will well and loyally advise me, and help me to the utmost of your power. Ye see
how King Don Sancho my brother presses upon us, and we have nothing left us but
to die or to conquer; but if ye know any other counsel, I beseech ye tell it
now. And the Galegos answered, that they would serve and defend him loyally, and
that they held it best to fight. Nevertheless they were too few in number to
stand against the King Don Sancho: so they retired before him. And Don Garcia
took with him three hundred horsemen, and went to the Moors, and besought them
to lend him aid against his brother, saying that he would give them the kingdom
of Leon. And the Moors made answer, O King, thou canst not defend thyself; how
then canst thou give unto us the kingdom of Leon? Howbeit they did him honour
and gave him great gifts, and he returned to his people and recovered many of
the castles which he had lost.
X
When King Don Sancho came against his brother, to besiege him in Santarem. And
the Portugueze and Galegos took counsel together what they should do; for some
were of advice that it was better to defend the cities and fortresses which they
held, and so lengthen out the war; others that they should harass the army of
the Castillians with frequent skirmishes and assaults, and never give them
battle power to power, thinking that in this manner they might baffle them till
the winter came on. Don Rodrigo Frojaz was at this time recovering of the wounds
which he had received at Agoa de Mayas, and he said unto the King that it
behoved him above all things to put his kingdom upon the hazard of a battle; for
his brother being a greater lord of lands than he, and richer in money and more
powerful in vassals, could maintain the war longer than he could do, who
peradventure would find it difficult another year to gather together so good an
army as he had now ready. For this cause he advised him to put his trust in God
first, and then in the hidalgos who were with him, and without fear give battle
to the King his brother, over whom God and his good cause would give him
glorious victory. And to show his own good will to the King, he besought of him
the leading of the van for himself and the Counts Don Pedro and Don Vermui
Frojaz his brethren, and his two nephews. Greatly was the King Don Garcia
encouraged by his gallant cheer, and he bade his host make ready to give battle
to King Don Sancho, as soon as he should arrive; and he marched out from the
city, and took his stand near unto it in a field where afterwards were the
vineyards of the town. And when the banners of the Castillians were seen
advancing, the Galegos and Portugueze drew up in battle array, Don Rodrigo and
his brethren having the van, as he had requested, and a body of chosen knights
with them.
XI
Count Don Garcia came in the front of King Don Sancho's army, and in the one
wing was the Count de Monzon and Count Don Nuno de Lara; and the Count Don
Fruela of Asturias in the other; and the King was in the rear, with Don Diego de
Osma, who carried his banner: and in this manner were they arrayed on the one
side and on the other, being ready for the onset. And King Don Garcia bravely
encouraged his men, saying, Vassals and friends, ye see the great wrong which
the King my brother doth unto me, taking from me my kingdom; I beseech ye help
me now to defend it; for ye well know that all which I had therein I divided
among ye, keeping ye for a season like this. And they answered, Great benefits
have we received at your hands, and we will serve you to the utmost of our
power. Now when the two hosts were ready to join battle, Alvar Fanez came to
King Don Sancho and said to him, Sir, I have played away my horse and arms; I
beseech you give me others for this battle, and I will be a right good one for
you this day; if I do not for you the service of six knights, hold me for a
traitor. And the Count Don Garcia, who heard this, said to the King, Give him,
Sir, what he asketh; and the King ordered that horse and arms should be given
him. So the armies joined battle bravely on both sides, and it was a sharp
onset; many were the heavy blows which were given on both sides, and many were
the horses that were slain at that encounter, and many the men. Now my Cid had
not yet come up into the field. XII
XII
Now Don Rodrigo Frojaz and his brethren and the knights who were with them had
resolved to make straight for the banner of the King of Castille. And they broke
through the ranks of the Castillians, and made their way into the middle of the
enemy's host, doing marvellous feats of arms. Then was the fight at the hottest,
for they did their best to win the banner, and the others to defend it; the
remembrance of what they had formerly done, and the hope of gaining more honours,
heartened them; and with the Castillians there was their King, giving them brave
example as well as brave words. The press of the battle was here; here died
Gonzalo de Sies, a right valiant Portugueze, on the part of Don Garcia; but on
Don Sancho's part the Count Don Nuno was sorely wounded and thrown from his
horse; and Count Don Garcia Ordonez was made prisoner, and the banner of King
Don Sancho was beaten down, and the King himself also. The first who encountered
him was Don Gomes Echiguis, he from whom the old Sousas of Portugal derived
their descent; he was the first who set his lance against King Don Sancho, and
the other one was Don Moninho Hermigis, and Don Rodrigo made way through the
press and laid hands on him and took him. But in the struggle his old wounds
burst open, and having received many new ones he lost much blood, and perceiving
that his strength was failing, he sent to call the King Don Garcia with all
speed. And as the King came, the Count Don Pedro Frojaz met him and said, An
honourable gift, Sir, hath my brother Don Rodrigo to give you, but you lose him
in gaining it. And tears fell from the eyes of the King, and he made answer and
said, It may indeed be that Don Rodrigo may lose his life in serving me, but the
good name which he hath gained, and the honour which he leaveth to his
descendants, death cannot take away. Saying this, he came to the place where Don
Rodrigo was, and Don Rodrigo gave into his hands the King Don Sancho his
brother, and asked him three times if he was discharged of his prisoner; and
when the King had answered Yes, Don Rodrigo said, For me, Sir, the joy which I
have in your victory is enough; give the rewards to these good Portugueze, who
with so good a will have put their lives upon the hazard to serve you, and in
all things follow their counsel, and you will not err therein. Having said this
he kissed the King's hand, and lying upon his shield, for he felt his breath
fail him, with his helmet for a pillow, he kissed the cross of his sword in
remembrance of that on which the incarnate Son of God had died for him, and
rendered up his soul into the hands of his Creator. This was the death of one of
the worthy knights of the world, Don Rodrigo Frojaz. In all the conquests which
King Don Ferrando had made from the Moors of Portugal, great part had he borne,
insomuch that that King was wont to say that other Princes might have more
dominions than he, but two such knights as his two Rodrigos, meaning my Cid and
this good knight, there was none but himself who had for vassals. XIII
XIII
When King Don Garcia being desirous to be in the pursuit himself, delivered his
brother into the hands of six knights that they should guard him, which he ought
not to have done. And when he was gone King Don Sancho said unto the knights,
Let me go and I will depart out of your country and never enter it again; and I
will reward ye well as long as ye live; but they answered him, that for no
reward would they commit such disloyalty, but would guard him well, not offering
him any injury, till they had delivered him to his brother the King Don Garcia.
While they were parleying Alvar Fanez Minaya came up, he to whom the King had
given horse and arms before the battle; and he seeing the King held prisoner,
cried out with a loud voice, Let loose my Lord the King: and he spurred his
horse and made at them; and before his lance was broken he overthrew two of
them, and so bestirred himself that he put the others to flight; and he took the
horses of the two whom he had smote down, and gave one to the King, and mounted
upon the other himself, for his own was hurt in the rescue; and they went
together to a little rising ground where there was yet a small body of the
knights of their party, and Alvar Fanez cried out to them aloud, Ye see here the
King our Lord, who is free; now then remember the good name of the Castillians,
and let us not lose it this day. And about four hundred knights gathered about
him. And while they stood there they saw the Cid Ruydiez coming up with three
hundred knights, for he had not been in the battle, and they knew his green
pennon. And when King Don Sancho beheld it his heart rejoiced, and he said, Now
let us descend into the plain, for he of good fortune cometh: and he said, Be of
good heart, for it is the will of God that I should recover my kingdom, for I
have escaped from captivity, and seen the death of Don Rodrigo Frojaz who took
me, and Ruydiez the fortunate one cometh. And the King went down to him and
welcomed him right joyfully, saying, In happy time are you come, my fortunate
Cid; never vassal succoured his Lord in such season as you now succour me, for
the King my brother had overcome me. And the Cid answered, Sir, be sure that you
shall recover the day, or I will die; for wheresoever you go, either you shall
be victorious or I will meet my death. XIV
XIV
By this time King Don Garcia returned from the pursuit, singing as he came full
joyfully, for he thought that the King his brother was a prisoner, and his great
power overthrown. But there came one and told him that Don Sancho was rescued
and in the field again, ready to give him battle a second time. Bravely was that
second battle fought on both sides; and if it had not been for the great prowess
of the Cid, the end would not have been as it was: in the end the Galegos and
Portugueze were discomfited, and the King Don Garcia taken in his turn. And in
that battle the two brethren of Don Rodrigo Frojaz, Don Pedro and Don Vermui,
were slain, and the two sons of Don Pedro, so that five of that family died that
day. And the King Don Sancho put his brother in better ward than his brother
three hours before had put him, for he put him in chains and sent him to the
strong castle of Luna.
XV
When King Don Sancho had done this he took unto himself the kingdom of Galicia
and of Portugal, and without delay sent to his brother King Don Alfonso,
commanding him to yield up to him the kingdom of Leon, for it was his by right.
At this was the King of Leon troubled at heart; howbeit he answered that he
would not yield up his kingdom, but do his utmost to defend it. Then King Don
Sancho entered Leon, slaying and laying waste before him, as an army of infidels
would have done; and King Don Alfonso sent to him to bid him cease from this,
for it was inhuman work to kill and plunder the innocent: and he defied him to a
pitched battle, saying that to whichsoever God should give the victory, to him
also would he give the kingdom of Leon: and the King of Castille accepted the
defiance, and a day was fixed for the battle, and the place was to be Lantada,
which is near unto Carrion. The chief counsellor of King Don Alfonso was Don
Pero Ansures, a notable and valiant knight, of the old and famous stock of the
Ansures, Lords of Monzon, which is nigh unto Palencia; the same who in process
of time was Count of Carrion and of Saldana and Liebana, and Lord of Valladolid,
a city which was by him greatly increased. This good knight commanded the army
of his King Don Alfonso, and on the part of King Don Sancho came Ruydiez the
Cid. Both Kings were in the field that day, and full hardily was the battle
contested, and great was the mortality on either side, for the hatred which used
to be between Moors and Christians was then between brethren. And that day also
was the saying of Arias Gonzalo fulfilled. But in the end the skill and courage
of my Cid prevailed, and King Don Alfonso was fain to avail himself of his
horse's feet to save himself. XVI
XVI
Nevertheless the power of King Don Alfonso was not yet destroyed, and he would
not yield up his kingdom: and he sent to his brother a second time to bid him
battle, saying that whosoever conquered should then certainly remain King of
Leon; and the place appointed was at Vulpegera, beside the river Carrion. And
the two armies met and joined battle, and they of Leon had the victory, for my
Cid was not in the field. And King Don Alfonso had pity upon the Castillians
because they were Christians, and gave orders not to slay them; and his brother
King Don Sancho fled. Now as he was flying, my Cid came up with his green
pennon; and when he saw that the King his Lord had been conquered it grieved him
sorely: howbeit he encouraged him saying, This is nothing, Sir! to fail or to
prosper is as God pleases. But do you gather together your people who are
discomfited, and bid them take heart. The Leonese and Galegos are with the King
your brother, secure as they think themselves in their lodging, and taking no
thought of you; for it is their custom to extol themselves when their fortune is
fair, and to mock at others, and in this boastfulness will they spend the night,
so that we shall find them sleeping at break of day, and will fall upon them.
And it came to pass as he had said. The Leonese lodged themselves in Vulpegera,
taking no thought of their enemies, and setting no watch; and Ruydiez arose
betimes in the morning and fell upon them, and subdued them before they could
take their arms. King Don Alfonso fled to the town of Carrion, which was three
leagues distant, and would have fortified himself there in the Church of St.
Mary, but he was surrounded and constrained to yield. XVII
XVII
Now the knights of Leon gathered together in their flight, and when they could
not find their King they were greatly ashamed, and they turned back and smote
the Castillians; and as it befell, they encountered King Don Sancho and took him
prisoner, not having those in his company whom he should have had, for his
people considered the victory as their own, and all was in confusion. And
thirteen knights took him in their ward and were leading him away,-but my Cid
beheld them and galloped after them: he was alone, and had no lance, having
broken his in the battle. And he came up to them and said, Knights, give me my
Lord and I will give unto you yours. They knew him by his arms, and they made
answer, Ruydiez, return in peace and seek not to contend with us, otherwise we
will carry you away prisoner with him. And he waxed wroth and said, Give me but
a lance and I will, single as I am, rescue my Lord from all of ye: by God's help
I will do it. And they held him as nothing because he was but one, and gave him
a lance. But he attacked them therewith so bravely that he slew eleven of the
thirteen, leaving two only alive, on whom he had mercy; and thus did he rescue
the King. And the Castillians rejoiced greatly at the King's deliverance: and
King Don Sancho went to Burgos, and took with him his brother prisoner. XVIII
XVIII
Great was the love which the Infanta Dona Urraca bore to her brother King Don
Alfonso, and when she heard that he was made prisoner, she feared lest he should
be put to death: and she took with her the Count Don Peransures, and went to
Burgos. And they -spake with the Cid, and besought him that he would join with
them and intercede with the King that he should release his brother from prison,
and let him become a Monk at Sahagun. Full willing was the Cid to serve in any
thing the Infanta Dona Urraca, and he went with her before the King. And she
knelt down before the King her brother, and besought mercy for Don Alfonso, his
brother and hers. And the King took her by the hand and raised her from her
knees, and made her sit beside him, and said unto her, Now then, my sister, say
what you would have. And she besought him that he would let their brother Don
Alfonso take the habit of St. Benedict, in the royal Monastery of Sahagun, and
my Cid, and Count Peransures and the other chief persons who were there present,
besought him in like manner. And the King took my Cid aside, and asked counsel
of him what he should do; and the Cid said, that if Don Alfonso were willing to
become a Monk, he would do well to set him free upon that condition, and he
besought him so to do. Then King Don Sancho, at my Cid's request, granted to
Dona Urraca what she had asked. And he released King Don Alfonso from prison,
and Don Alfonso became a Monk in the Monastery at Sahagun, more by force than of
free will. And being in the Monastery he spake with Don Peransures, and took
counsel with him, and fled away by night from the Monks, and went among the
Moors to King Alimaymon of Toledo. And the Moorish King welcomed him with a good
will, and did great honour to him and gave him great possessions many gifts. XIX
XIX
When Dona Urraca knew that her brother King Don Alfonso had fled to Toledo, she
sent to him three good men of the kingdom of Leon, that they should be his
counsellors, for she loved him well. These were Don Pero Ansures, and Don Ferran
Ansures, and Don Gonzalo Ansures, all three brethren: and they went with King
Don Sancho's permission, for it was God's pleasure. Now Alimaymon rejoiced in
the King Don Alfonso, and loved him as if he had been his own son. And Don
Alfonso made a covenant with him to love him and defend him and serve him
always, so long as he should remain with him, and not to depart from him without
his leave; and the King covenanted on his side to love him and honour him, and
defend him to the utmost of his power. And Alimaymon ordered fair palaces to be
edified for him, by the wall of the Alcazar, on the outer part, that the Moors
of the city might do no displeasure neither to him nor to his companions: and
they were hard by a garden of the King's, that he might go out and disport
himself therein whensoever it pleased him. And for these things King Don Alfonso
loved to serve King Alimaymon. Nevertheless when he saw the great honour of the
King of Toledo, and how powerful he was, and that he was the Lord of so great
chivalry, and of the noblest city which had belonged unto the Gothic Kings, from
whom he himself was descended, it grieved him in his heart to see that city in
the hands of the Moors: and he said within his heart, Lord God and Father Jesus
Christ, it is wholly in thy power to give and to take away, and right it is that
thy will should be done, even as thou hast done it to me, to whom thou gavest a
kingdom, and it was thy will to take it away from me, and thou hast made me come
hither to serve the enemies who were at the service of the King my father. Lord,
I put my hope in thee that thou wilt deliver me from this servitude, and give me
a land and kingdom to command, and that thou wilt show unto me such favour that
this land and this city shall by me be won, that thy holy body may be sacrificed
in it to the honour of Christendom. This prayer he made with great devotion and
with many tears; and the Lord God heard him, as hereafter you shall hear in this
history. In those days King Alimaymon was at war with other Moorish Kings his
enemies, and King Don Alfonso fought against them on his side, and did such good
service that he quelled their power, and they durst no longer offend him. And in
time of peace Don Alfonso and his companions went fowling along the banks of the
Tagus, for in those days there was much game there, and venison of all kinds;
and they killed venison among the mountains. And as he was thus sporting he came
to a place which is now called Brihuega, and it pleased him well, for it was a
fair place to dwell in, and abounded with game, and there was a dismantled
castle there, and he thought that he would ask the King for this place. And he
returned to Toledo and asked it of the King, and King Alimaymon gave it him, and
he placed there his huntsmen and his fowlers who were Christians, and fortified
the place as his own. And the lineage of these people continued there till Don
Juan, the third archbishop of Toledo, enlarged it, and peopled the parish of St.
Pedro.
XX
It came to pass after this that both the Kings one day came out of Toledo, and
past over the bridge of Alcantara, and went into the royal garden to disport
themselves therein and take their pleasure. And at evening Don Alfonso lay down
upon a bed to sleep, and King Alimaymon fell in talk with his favourites
concerning his city of Toledo, how strong it was and how well provided with all
things, and that he feared neither war of Moor nor Christian against it; and he
asked them if it could by any means be lost in war. Then one of them answered
and said, Sir, if you would not hold it ill, I would tell you how it might be
lost, and by no other manner in the world could it be so. And the King bade him
say on. And the favourite then said, If this city were beset for seven years,
and the bread and the wine and the fruits should be cut down year by year, it
would be lost for lack of food. All this King Don Alfonso heard, for he was not
sleeping, and he took good heed of it. Now the Moors knew not that he was lying
there. And when they had thus spoken, Alimaymon arose to walk in the palace, and
he saw King Don Alfonso lying there as if he were sleeping: and it troubled him,
and he said to his favourites, We did not heed Alfonso who is lying there, and
has heard all that we have said. And the favourites made answer, Kill him, Sir.
But the King said, How shall I go against my true promise? moreover he sleepeth,
and peradventure hath heard nothing. And they said to him, Would you know
whether or not he sleepeth? and he answered, Yea: and they said, Go then and
wake him, and if he have drivelled he hath slept, but if not he hath been awake
and hath heard us. Then King Don Alfonso immediately wetted the pillow, and
feigned himself hard to be awakened, so that Alimaymon thought he slept. XXI
XXI
And when the Easter of the Sheep was come, which the Moors celebrate, the King
of Toledo went out of the city to kill the sheep at the place accustomed, as he
was wont to do, and King Don Alfonso went with him. Now Don Alfonso was a goodly
personage and of fair demeanour, so that the Moors liked him well. And as he was
going by the side of the King, two honourable Moors followed them, and the one
said unto the other, How fair a knight is this Christian, and of what good
customs! well doth he deserve to be the lord of some great land. And the other
made answer, I dreamed a dream last night, that this Alfonso entered the city
riding upon a huge boar, and many swine after him, who rooted up all Toledo with
their snouts, and even the Mosques therein: Certes, he will one day become King
of Toledo. And while they were thus communing every hair upon King Don Alfonso's
head stood up erect, and Alimaymon laid his hand upon them to press them down,
but so soon as his hand was taken off they rose again; and the two Moors held it
for a great token, and spake with each other concerning it, and one of King
Alimaymon's favourites heard all which they said. And after the sheep had been
sacrificed they returned into the city, and the favourite told the King what he
had heard the two Moors say; and the King sent for them forthwith, and
questioned them, and they repeated to him what they had said, even as ye have
heard. And King Alimaymon said unto them, What then shall I do? and they made
answer, that he should put Don Alfonso to death; but the King replied, that this
he would not do, nor go against the true promise which he had given him, but
that he would so deal that no evil should ever come towards himself from
Alfonso. So he sent for Don Alfonso and bade him swear that he would never come
against him, nor against his sons, and that no evil should come against them
from him; and King Don Alfonso did as Alimaymon required, and did him homage to
this effect. And thenceforth was the King of Toledo more secure of him, and held
him even in greater favour than before. All this while did King Don Alfonso
govern himself by the advice of Count Peransures, who always advised him
discreetly and well. XXII
XXII
But when King Don Sancho heard how his brother had fled from the Monastery, he
drew out his host and went against the city of Leon. The Leonese would fain have
maintained the city against him, but they could not, and he took the city of
Leon, and all the towns and castles which had been under the dominion of his
brother King Don Alfonso. And then he put the crown upon his head, and called
himself King of the three kingdoms. He was a fair knight and of marvellous
courage, so that both Moors and Christians were dismayed at what they saw him
do, for they saw that nothing which he willed to take by force could stand
against him. And when the Infanta Dona Urraca, and the men of Zamora, saw that
he had quiet possession of both his brothers' kingdoms, they feared that he
would come against them and disherit his sister also. And for this reason they
took Don Arias Gonzalo to be their chief captain, Dona Urraca's foster-father,
that by his means they might protect themselves, if need should be. And it came
to pass as they had feared, for King Don Sancho knew that his sisters greatly
loved Don Alfonso, and he thought that by their counsel he had fled from the
Monastery, especially by Dona Urraca's, because Don Alfonso guided himself in
all things by her counsel, holding her in place of a mother, for she was a lady
of great understanding. And he went forth with his army, and took from the
Infanta Dona Elvira the half of the Infantazgo which she possessed, and also
from Dona Urraca the other half. And he went against Toro, the city of Dona
Elvira, and took it; and then he went to Zamora to Dona Urraca, bidding her
yield him up the city, and saying that he would give her lands as much as she
required in the plain country. But she returned for answer, that she would in no
manner yield unto him that which the King her father had given her; and she
besought him that he would suffer her to continue to dwell peaceably therein,
saying that no disservice should ever be done against him on her part. XXIII
XXIII
When King Don Sancho went to Burgos, because it was not the season for besieging
a town, being winter. And he sent his letters through all the land, calling upon
his vassals to assemble together upon the first day of March in Sahagun, upon
pain of forfeiting his favour. Now though the King was yet but a young man,
whose beard was but just coming, he was of so great courage that the people
feared him, and dared not do otherwise than as he commanded. And they assembled
together in Sahagun on the day appointed; and when the King heard in what
readiness they were, it gladdened him, and he lifted up his hands to God and
said, Blessed be thy name, O Lord, because thou hast given me all the kingdoms
of my father. And when he had said this he ordered proclamation to be made
through the streets of Burgos, that all should go forth to protect the host and
the body of the King their Lord. And the day in which they left Burgos they took
up their lodging at Fromesta; and the next day they came to Carrion, but the
King would not lodge there, and he went on to Sahagun, where the army awaited
him, and took up his lodging without the town; and on the following morning he
bade the host advance, and they made such speed that in three days they arrived
before Zamora, and pitched their tents upon the banks of the Douro; and he
ordered proclamation to be made throughout the host that no harm should be done
until he had commanded it. And he mounted on horseback with his hidalgos and
rode round the town, and beheld how strongly it was situated upon a rock, with
strong walls, and many and strong towers, and the River Douro running at the
foot thereof; and he said unto his knights, Ye see how strong it is, neither
Moor nor Christian can prevail against it; if I could have it from my sister
either for money or exchange, I should be Lord of Spain. XXIV
XXIV
Then the King returned to his tents, and incontinently he sent for the Cid, and
said unto him, Cid, you well know how manifoldly you are bound unto me, both by
nature, and by reason of the breeding which the King my father gave you; and
when he died he commanded you to me, and I have ever shown favour unto you, and
you have ever served me as the loyalest vassal that ever did service to his
Lord; and I have for your good deserts given unto you more than there is in a
great county, and have made you the chief of all my household. Now therefore I
beseech you as my friend and true vassal, that you go to Zamora to my sister
Dona Urraca, and say unto her again, that I beseech her to give me the town
either for a price, or in exchange, and I will give to her Medina de Rio-seco,
with the whole Infantazgo, from Villalpando to Valladolid, and Tiedra also,
which is a good Castle; and I will swear unto her, with twelve knights of my
vassals, never to break this covenant between us; but if she refuseth to do this
I will take away the town from her by force. And my Cid kissed the hand of the
King and said unto him, This bidding, Sir, should be for other messenger, for it
is a heavy thing for me to deliver it; for I was brought up in Zamora by your
father's command, in the house of Don Arias Gonzalo, with Dona Urraca and with
his sons, and it is not fitting that I should be the bearer of such bidding. And
the King persisted in requiring of him that he should go, insomuch that he was
constrained to obey his will. And he took with him fifteen of his knights and
rode towards Zamora, and when he drew nigh he called unto those who kept guard
in the towers not to shoot their arrows at him, for he was Ruydiez of Bivar, who
came to Dona Urraca with the bidding of her brother King Don Sancho. With that
there came down a knight who was nephew to Arias Gonzalo, and had the keeping of
the gate, and he bade the Cid enter, saying that he would order him to be well
lodged while he went to Dona Urraca to know if she would be pleased to see him.
So the Cid went in, and the knight went to the Infanta, and told her that
Ruydiez of Bivar was come with a message from King Don Sancho; and it pleased
her well that he should be the messenger, and she bade him come before that she
might know what was his bidding; and she sent Arias Gonzalo and the other
knights of her party to meet him and accompany him. And when the Cid entered the
palace Dona Urraca advanced to meet him, and greeted him full well, and they
seated themselves both upon the Estrado. And Dona Urraca said unto him, Cid, you
well know that you were brought up with me here in Zamora, in the house of Don
Arias Gonzalo, and when my father was at the point of death he charged you that
you should always counsel his sons the best you could. Now therefore tell me I
beseech you what is it which my brother goes about to do, now that he has called
up all Spain in arms, and to what lands he thinks to go, whether against Moors
or Christians. Then the Cid answered and said, Lady, to messenger and a letter
no wrong should be done; give me safe assurance and I will tell unto you that
which the King your brother hath sent me to say. And she said she would do as
Don Arias Gonzalo should advise her. And Don Arias answered that it was well to
hear what the King her brother had sent to say: Peradventure, said he, he goeth
against the Moors, and requires aid of you, which it would be right to give; and
for such service I and my sons would go with him, and I would give fifteen of my
people well mounted and armed, and supply them with food for ten years, if he
needed them. Dona Urraca then said to the Cid, that he might speak his bidding
safely. Then said my Cid, The King your brother sends to greet you, and
beseeches you to give him this town of Zamora, either for a price or in
exchange; and he Will give to you Medina de Rio-seco, with the whole Infantazgo,
from Villalpando to Valladolid, and the good castle of Tiedra, and he will swear
unto you, with twelve knights his vassals, never to do you hurt or harm; but if
you will not give him the town, he will take it against your Will. XXV
XXV
When Dona Urraca heard this she was sorely grieved, and in her sorrow she
lamented aloud, saying, Wretch that I am, many are the evil messages which I
have heard since my father's death! He hath disherited my brother King Don
Garcia of his kingdom, and taken him, and now holds him in irons as if he were a
thief or a Moor: and he hath taken his lands from my brother King Don Alfonso,
and forced him to go among the Moors, and live there exiled, as if he had been a
traitor; and would let none go with him except Don Peransures and his brethren,
whom I sent: and he hath taken her lands from my sister Dona Elvira against her
will, and now would he take Zamora from me also! Now then let the earth open and
swallow me, that I may not see so many troubles! And with that, in her strong
anger against her brother King Don Sancho, she said, I am a woman, and know that
I cannot strive with him in battle; but I will have him slain either secretly or
openly. Then Don Arias Gonzalo stood up and said, Lady Dona Urraca, in thus
complaining and making lamentation you do inconsiderately; for in time of
trouble it befits us to take thought of what best is to be done, and so must we
do. Now then, Lady, give order that all the men of Zamora assemble in St.
Salvador's and know of them whether they will hold with you, seeing that your
father gave them to you to be your vassals. And if they will hold with you, then
give not you up the town, neither for a price, nor in exchange; but if they will
not, let us then go to Toledo among the Moors, where your brother King Don
Alfonso abideth. And she did as her foster-father had advised, and it was
proclaimed through the streets that the men of Zamora should meet in council at
St. Salvador's. And when they were all assembled, Dona Urraca arose and said,
Friends and vassals, ye have seen how my brother King Don Sancho hath disherited
all his brethren, against the oath which he made to the King my father, and now
he would disherit me also. He hath sent to bid me give him Zamora, either for a
price or in exchange. Now concerning this I would know whereunto ye advise me,
and if you will hold with me as good vassals and true, for he saith that he will
take it from me whether I will or no; but if ye will keep my career I think to
defend it by God's mercy and with your help. Then by command of the council
there rose up a knight who was called Don Nuno, a man of worth, aged, and of
fair speech; and he said, God reward you, Lady, this favour which you have shown
us in thinking good to come to our council, for we are your vassals, and should
do what you command. And we beseech you give not up Zamora, neither for price
nor for exchange, for he who besieges you upon the rock would soon drive you
from the plain. The council of Zamora will do your bidding, and will not desert
you neither for trouble nor for danger which may befall them, even unto death.
Sooner, Lady, will we expend all our possessions, and eat our mules and horses,
yea sooner feed upon our children and our wives, than give up Zamora, unless by
your command. And they all with one accord confirmed what Don Nuno had said.
When the Infanta Dona Urraca heard this she was well pleased, and praised them
greatly; and she turned to the Cid and said unto him, You were bred up with me
in this town of Zamora, where Don Arias Gonzalo fostered you by command of the
King my father, and through your help it was that the King my father gave it
unto me to be my inheritance. I beseech you help me now against my brother, and
intreat him that he will not seek to disherit me; but if he will go on with what
he hath begun, say to him that I will rather die with the men of Zamora, and
they with me, than give him up the town, either for price or exchange. And with
this answer did the Cid return unto the King. XXVI
XXVI
When King Don Sancho heard what the Cid said, his anger kindled against him, and
he said, You have given this counsel to my sister because you were bred up with
her. And my Cid answered and said, Faithfully have I discharged your bidding,
and as a true vassal. Howbeit, O King, I will not bear arms against the Infanta
your sister, nor against Zamora, because of the days which are passed;- and I
beseech you do not persist in doing this wrong. But then King Don Sancho was
more greatly incensed, and he said unto him, If it were not that my father left
you commended to me, I would order you this instant to be hanged. But for this
which you have said I command you to quit my kingdom within nine days. And the
Cid went to his tent in anger, and called for his kinsmen and his friends, and
bade them make ready on the instant to depart with him. And he set forth with
all the knights and esquires of his table, and with all their retainers horse
and foot, twelve hundred persons, all men of approved worth, a goodly
company;-and they took the road to Toledo, meaning to join King Don Alfonso
among the Moors. And that night they slept at Castro Nuno. But when the Counts
and Ricos-omes, and the other good men of the host saw this, they understood the
great evil and disservice which might arise to the King, and to the land, from
the departure of the Cid, who went away in wrath. And they went to the King and
said unto him, Sir, wherefore would you lose so good a vassal, who has done you
such great service? If he should go unto your brother Don Alfonso among the
Moors, he would not let you besiege this city thus in peace. And the King
perceived that they spake rightly, and he called for Don Diego Ordonez, the son
of Count Don Bermudo, who was the son of the Infante Don Ordonez of Leon, and
bade him follow the Cid, and beseech him in his name to return; and whatever
covenant he should make it should be confirmed unto him; and of this he ordered
his letters of credence to be made out. And Don Diego Ordonez went to horse, and
rode after the Cid, and overtook him between Castro Nuno and Medina del Campo.
And when it was told unto the Cid that Don Diego Ordonez was coming, he turned
to meet him, and greeted him well, and asked him wherefore he was come. And he
delivered the King's bidding, and showed unto him his letters of credence, and
said unto him that the King besought him not to bear in mind the words which he
had spoken unto him, being in anger. Then the Cid called together his kinsmen
and friends, and asked them what they should do. And they counselled him that he
should return to the King, for it was better to remain in his land and serve
God, than to go among the Moors. And he held their counsel good, and called for
Don Diego, and said unto him that he would do the will of the King: and Don
Diego sent to the King to tell him how he had sped. And when the Cid drew nigh
unto the host, the King went out with five hundred knights to meet him, and
received him gladly, and did him great honour. And the Cid kissed his hand and
asked him if he confirmed what Don Diego had said; and the King confirmed it
before all the knights who were there present, promising to give him great
possessions. And when they came to the army great was the joy because of the
Cid's return, and great were the rejoicings which were made: but as great was
the sorrow in Zamora, for they who were in the town held that the siege was
broken up by his departure. Nevertheless my Cid would not bear arms against the
Infanta, nor against the town of Zamora, because of the days which were past.
XXVII
XXVII
And the King ordered proclamation to be made throughout the host that the people
should make ready to attack the town. And they fought against it three days and
three nights so bravely that all the ditches were filled up, and the barbicans
thrown down, and they who were within fought sword in hand with those without,
and the waters of the Douro, as they past below the town, were all discoloured
with blood. And when Count Don Garcia de Cabra saw the great loss which they
were suffering, it grieved him; and he went unto the King and told him that many
men were slain, and advised him to call off the host that they should no longer
fight against the town, but hold it besieged, for by famine it might soon be
taken. Then the King ordered them to draw back, and he sent to each camp to know
how many men had died in the attack, and the number was found to be a thousand
and thirty. And when the King knew this he was greatly troubled for the great
loss which he had received, and he ordered the town to be beleagered round
about, and in this manner he begirt it, that none could enter into it, neither
go out therefrom; and there was a great famine within the town. And when Don
Arias Gonzalo saw the misery, and the hunger, and the mortality which were
there, he said to the Infanta Dona Urraca, You see, Lady, the great wretchedness
which the people of Zamora have suffered, and do every day suffer to maintain
their loyalty; now then call together the Council, and thank them truly for what
they have done for you, and bid them give up the town within nine days to the
King your brother. And we, Lady, will go to Toledo to your brother King Don
Alfonso, for we cannot defend Zamora; King Don Sancho is of so great heart and
so resolute, that he will never break up the siege, and I do not hold it good
that you should abide here longer. And Dona Urraca gave orders that the good men
of Zamora should meet together in Council; and she said unto them, Friends, ye
well see the resoluteness of King Don Sancho my brother; and already have ye
suffered much evil and much wretchedness for doing right and loyally, losing
kinsmen and friends in my service. Ye have done enough, and I do not hold it
good that ye should perish; I command ye therefore give up the town to him
within nine days, and I will go to Toledo to my brother King Don Alfonso. The
men of Zamora when they heard this had great sorrow, because they had endured
the siege so long, and must now give up the town at last; and they determined
all to go with the Infanta, and not remain in the town. XXVIII
XXVIII
When Vellido Dolfos heard this, he went to Dona Urraca and said, Lady, I came
here to Zamora to do you service with thirty knights, all well accoutred, as you
know; and I have served you long time, and never have I had from you guerdon for
my service, though I have demanded it: but now if you will grant my demand I
will relieve Zamora, and make King Don Sancho break up the siege. Then said Dona
Urraca, Vellido, I shall repeat to thee the saying of the wise man, A man
bargains well with the slothful and with him who is in need; and thus you would
deal with me. I do not bid the commit any evil thing, if such thou hast in thy
thought; but I say unto you, that there is not a man in the world to whom if he
should relieve Zamora, and make the King my brother raise the siege, I would not
grant whatsoever he might require. And when Vellido heard this he kissed her
hand, and went to a porter who kept one of the gates of the town, and spake with
him, saying, that he should open the gate unto him when he saw him flying toward
it, and he gave him his cloak. Then went he to his lodging, and armed himself,
and mounted his horse, and rode to the house of Don Arias Gonzalo, and cried
with a loud voice, We all know the reason, Don Arias Gonzalo, why you will not
let Dona Urraca exchange Zamora with her brother; it is because you deal with
her as a harlot, like an old traitor. When Arias Gonzalo heard this, it grieved
him to the heart, and he said, In an evil day was I born, that so shameful a
falsehood as this should be said to me in mine old age, and there should be none
to revenge me! Then his sons arose and armed themselves hastily, and went after
Vellido, who fled before them toward the gate of the town. The porter when he
saw him coming opened the gate, and he rode out and galloped into the camp of
the King Don Sancho, and the others followed him till they were nigh the camp,
but farther they did not venture. And Vellido went to the King and kissed his
hand, and said unto him these false words with a lying tongue: Sir, because I
said to the Council of Zamora that they should yield the town unto you, the sons
of Arias Gonzalo would have slain me, even as you have seen. And therefore come
I to you, Sir, and will be your vassal, if I may find favour at your hands. And
I will show you how in a few days you may have Zamora, if God pleases; and if I
do not as I have said, then let me be slain. And the King believed all that he
said, and received him for his vassal, and did him great honour. And all that
night they talked together of his secrets, and he made the King believe that he
knew a postern by means of which he would put Zamora into his hands. XXIX
XXIX
On the morrow in the morning, one of the knights who were in the town went upon
the wall, and cried out with a loud voice, so that the greater part of the host
heard him, King Don Sancho, give ear to what I say; I am a knight and hidalgo, a
native of the land of Santiago; and they from whom I spring were true men and
delighted in their loyalty, and I also will live and die in my truth. Give ear,
for I would undeceive you, and tell you the truth, if you will believe me. I say
unto you, that from this town of Zamora there is gone forth a traitor to kill
you; his name is Vellido Dolfos; he is the son of Adolfo, who slew Don Nuno like
a traitor, and the grandson of Laino, another traitor, who killed his gossip and
threw him into the river; and this is as great a traitor as the rest of his
race; look to yourself therefore and take heed of him. I say this to you, that
if peradventure evil should befall you by this traitor, it may not be said in
Spain that you were not warned against him. Now the name of this knight was
Bernal Dianez de Ocampo. And the men of Zamora sent also to the King to bid him
beware of Vellido, and the King took their warning in good part, and sent to say
unto them, that when he had the town he would deal bountifully with them, for
this which they had done; nevertheless he gave no heed to the warning. And
Vellido, when he heard this went to the King, and said, Sir, the old Arias
Gonzalo is full crafty, and hath sent to say this unto you, because he knows
that by my means you would have won the town. And he called for his horse,
feigning that he would depart because of what had been said. But the King took
him by the hand and said, Friend and vassal, take no thought for this; I say
unto you, that if I may have Zamora, I will make you chief therein, even as
Arias Gonzalo is now. Then Vellido kissed his hand and said, God grant you life,
Sir, for many and happy years, and let you fulfil what you desire. But the
traitor had other thoughts in his heart. XXX
XXX
After this Vellido took the King apart and said to him, If it please you, Sir,
let us ride together alone; we will go round Zamora, and see the trenches which
you have ordered to be made; and I will show unto you the postern which is
called the Queen's, by which we may enter the town, for it is never closed. When
it is night you shall give me a hundred knights who are hidalgos, well armed,
and we will go on foot, and the Zamorans because they are weak with famine and
misery, will let us conquer them, and we will enter and open the gate, and keep
it open till all your host shall have entered in; and thus shall we win the town
of Zamora. The King believed what he said, and they took horse and went riding
round the town, and the King looked at the trenches, and that traitor showed him
the postern whereof he had spoken. And after they had ridden round the town the
King had need to alight upon the side of the Douro and go apart; now he carried
in his hand a light hunting spear which was gilded over, even such as the Kings
from whom he was descended were wont to bear; and he gave this to Vellido to
hold it while he went aside, to cover his feet. And Vellido Dolfos, when he saw
him in that guise, took the hunting spear and thrust it between his shoulders,
so that it went through him and came out at his breast. And when he had stricken
him he turned the reins and rode as fast as he could toward the postern; this
was not the first treason which he had committed, for he had killed the Count
Don Nuno treacherously. Now it chanced that the Cid saw him riding thus, and
asked him wherefore he fled, and he would not answer; and then the Cid
understood that he had done some treason, and his heart misgave him that he had
slain the King; and he called in haste for his horse, but while they were
bringing it, Vellido had ridden far away; and the Cid being eager to follow him,
took only his lance and did not wait to have his spurs buckled on. And he
followed him to the postern and had well nigh overtaken him, but Vellido got in;
and then the Cid said in his anger, Cursed be the knight who ever gets on
horseback without his spurs. Now in all the feats of the Cid never was fault
found in him save only in this, that he did not enter after Vellido into the
town; but he did not fail to do this for cowardice, neither for fear of death,
or of imprisonment; but because he thought that peradventure this was a device
between him and the King, and that he fled by the King's command; for certes, if
he had known that the King was slain, there was nothing which would have
prevented him from entering the town, and slaying the traitor in the streets,
thereright. XXXI
XXXI
Now the history saith, that when Vellido Dolfos had got within the postern, he
was in such fear both of those who were in the town and of those who were
without, that he went and placed himself under the mantle of the Infanta Dona
Urraca. And when Don Arias Gonzalo knew this, he went unto the Infanta and said,
Lady, I beseech you that you give up this traitor to the Castillians, otherwise
be sure that it will be to your own harm; for the Castillians will impeach all
who are in Zamora, and that will be greater dishonour for you and for us. And
Dona Urraca made answer, Counsel me then so that he may not die for this which
he hath done. Don Arias Gonzalo then answered, Give him unto me, and I will keep
him in custody for three days, and if the Castillians impeach us we will deliver
him into their hands; and if they do not impeach us within that time, we will
thrust him out of the town so that he shall not be seen among us. And Don Arias
Gonzalo took him from thence, and secured him with double fetters, and guarded
him well. XXXII
XXXII
Meantime the Castillians went to seek their King, and they found him by the side
of the Douro, where he lay sorely wounded, even unto death; but he had not yet
lost his speech, and the hunting spear was in his body, through and through, and
they did not dare to take it out lest he should die immediately. And a master of
Burgos came up who was well skilled in these things, and he sawed off the ends
of the spear, that he might not lose his speech, and said that he should be
confessed, for he had death within him. Then Count Don Garcia de Cabra, the
curly-haired one of Granon, said unto him, Sir, think of your soul, for you have
a desperate wound. And the King made answer, Blessed be you, Count, who thus
counsel me, for I perceive that I am slain; the traitor Vellido has killed me,
and I well know that this was for my sins, because I broke the oath which I made
unto the King my father. And as the King was saying this the Cid came up and
knelt before him and said, I, Sir, remain more desolate than any other of your
vassals, for for your sake have I made your brethren mine enemies, and all in
the world who were against you, and against whom it pleased you to go. The King
your father commended me to them as well as to you, when he divided his
kingdoms, and I have lost their love for your sake, having done them great evil.
And now neither can I go before King Don Alfonso, your brother, nor remain among
the Christians before Dona Urraca your sister, because they hold that whatsoever
you have done against them was by my counsel. Now then, Sir, remember me before
you depart. The King then commanded that they should raise him up in the bed,
and the Counts and Ricos-omes stood round about him, and the Bishops and
Archbishops who had come thither to make accord between him and his sister Dona
Urraca, and they heard what the Cid said, and knew that he said truly; for
whatever good speed King Don Sancho had had in his doings was all by means of my
Cid. And the King said unto them, I beseech all ye who are here present, Counts
and Ricos-omes, and all my other vassals, that if my brother King Don Alfonso
should come from the land of the Moors, ye beseech him to show favour unto you,
my Cid, and that he always be bountiful unto you, and receive you to be his
vassal; and if he always doth this and listen unto you, he will not be badly
advised. Then the Cid arose and kissed his hand, and all the chief persons who
were there present did the like. And after this the King said unto them, I
beseech ye intreat my brother King Don Alfonso to forgive me whatever wrong I
have done him, and to pray to God to have mercy upon my soul. And when he had
said this he asked for the candle, and presently his soul departed. And all who
were there present made great lamentation for the King.
BOOK THREE
I
Now when the King was dead, the townsmen who were in the camp forsook their
tents and fled, and much did they lose in their flight; but the noble
Castillians, thinking rather of what they were bound to do as men who had always
preserved their loyalty, like their ancestors before them, would not depart from
Zamora, nor break up the siege thereof, but remained bravely before it, though
they had lost their Lord. And they summoned all the Bishops, and took the body
of the King and sent it full honourably to the Monastery of Ona, and buried him
there as beseemed a King: and while one part of the chief men of the host
accompanied the body, the rest remained in the camp before Zamora. And when the
prelates and good men had returned to the army, they took counsel together how
they should proceed against the men of Zamora for this great treason which had
been committed. Then Count Don Garcia de Cabra arose and said, Friends, ye see
that we have lost our Lord the King Don Sancho; the traitor, Vellido, being his
vassal, slew him, and they of Zamora have received and harboured him within
their walls; and therefore as we think, and as has been said unto us, he did
this treason by their counsel. Now then if there be one here who will impeach
them for this thing, we will do whatever may be needful that he may come off
with honour, and the impeachment be carried through. Then Don Diego Ordonez
arose, the son of Count Don Ordono, a man of royal lineage and great hardihood;
and he said unto them, If ye will all assent to this which ye have heard, I will
impeach the men of Zamora, for the death of the King our Lord: and they all
assented, promising to fulfil what had been said. Now my Cid did not make this
impeachment against the people of Zamora, because of the oath which he had
sworn.
II
When Don Diego Ordonez went to his lodging and armed himself well, and armed his
horse also, and mounted and rode towards Zamora. And when he drew nigh unto the
town, he covered himself with his shield that they might not hurt him from the
walls, and began to cry aloud, asking if Don Arias Gonzalo were there, for he
would speak with him. A squire who was keeping guard upon the wall went to Don
Arias and told him that there was a knight well armed calling for him, without
the walls, and he said that if it pleased Don Arias he would shoot at him with a
cross-bow, and strike him or kill his horse: but Don Arias forbade him, saying
that he should no ways harm him. And Don Arias Gonzalo went with his sons upon
the wall to see who called for him, and he spake to the knight, saying, Friend,
what wouldest thou? And Don Diego Ordonez answered, The Castillians have lost
their Lord; the traitor Vellido slew him, being his vassal, and ye of Zamora
have received Vellido and harboured him within your walls. Now therefore I say
that he is a traitor who hath a traitor with him, if he knoweth and consenteth
unto the treason. And for this I impeach the people of Zamora, the great as well
as the little, the living and the dead, they who now are and they who are yet
unborn; and I impeach the waters which they drink and the garments which they
put on; their bread and their wine, and the very stones in their walls. If there
be any one in Zamora to gainsay what I have said, I will do battle with him, and
with God's pleasure conquer him, so that the infamy shall remain upon you. Don
Arias Gonzalo replied, If I were what thou sayest I am, it had been better for
me never to have been born; but in what thou sayest thou liest. In that which
the great do the little have no fault, nor the dead for the deeds of the living,
which they neither see nor hear: but setting aside these and the things which
have no understanding, as to the rest I say that thou liest, and I will do
battle with thee upon this quarrel, or give thee one in my stead. But know that
you have been ill advised in making this impeachment, for the manner is, that
whosoever impeacheth a Council must do battle with five, one after another, and
if he conquer the five he shall be held a true man, but if either of the five
conquer him, the Council is held acquitted and he a liar. When Don Diego heard
this it troubled him; howbeit he dissembled this right well, and said unto Don
Arias Gonzalo, I will bring twelve Castillians, and do you bring twelve men of
Zamora, and they shall swear upon the Holy Gospel to judge justly between us,
and if they find that I am bound to do battle with five, I will perform it. And
Don Arias made answer that he said well, and it should be so. And truce was made
for three times nine days, till this should have been determined and the combat
fought. III
III
Then when the truce was made, Don Arias Gonzalo went out from the town into the
host of the Castillians, and his sons with him, and many of the knights of the
town; and all the Ricos-omes and knights who were in the host assembled together
with them, and consulted what was to be done in this impeachment. And they chose
out twelve alcades on the one part, and twelve on the other, who should decide
in what manner he was bound to perform combat who impeached a Council. And the
four and twenty alcades accorded concerning what was the law in this case; and
two of them who were held the most learned in these things arose, the one being
a Castillian and the other of Zamora, and said that they had found the law as it
was written to be this: That whosoever impeacheth the Council of a town which
was a bishop's seat, must do battle with five in the field, one after another;
and that after every combat there should be given unto him fresh arms and horse,
and three sops of bread, and a draught either of wine or of water, as he chose.
And in this sentence which the twain pronounced, the other twenty and two
accorded.
IV
On the morrow before the hour of tierce the four and twenty alcades marked out
the lists upon the sand beside the river, at the place which is called Santiago,
and in the middle of the lists they placed a bar, and ordained that he who won
the battle should lay hand on the bar, and say that he had conquered: and then
they appointed a term of nine days for the combatants to come to those lists
which had been assigned. And when all was appointed as ye have heard, Don Arias
returned to Zamora, and told the Infanta Dona Urraca all that had been done, and
she ordered a meeting to be called, at which all the men of the town assembled.
And when they were gathered together, Don Arias Gonzalo said unto them, Friends,
I beseech ye, if there be any here among ye who took counsel for the death of
King Don Sancho, or were privy thereunto, that ye now tell me, and deny it not;
for rather would I go with my sons to the land of the Moors, than be overcome in
the field, and held for a traitor. Then they all replied, that there was none
there who knew of the treason, nor had consented unto it. At this was Don Arias
Gonzalo well pleased, and he bade them go each to his house; and he went to his
house also with his sons, and chose out four of them to do combat, and said that
he would be the fifth himself; and he gave them directions how to demean
themselves in the lists, and said, that he would enter first; and if, said he,
what the Castillian saith be true, I would die first, not to see the infamy; but
if what he saith be false, I shall conquer him, and ye shall ever be held in
honour.
V
When the day appointed was come, Don Arias Gonzalo early in the morning armed
his sons, and they armed him; and it was told him that Don Diego Ordonez was
already in the lists. Then he and his sons mounted their horses, and as they
rode through the gates of their house, Dona Urraca, with a company of dames met
them, and said to Don Arias, weeping, Remember now how my father, King Don
Ferrando, left me to your care, and you swore between his hands that you would
never forsake me; and lo! now you are forsaking me. I beseech you remain with
me, and go not to this battle; for there is reason enough why you should be
excused, and not break the oath which you made unto my father. And she took hold
on him, and would not let him go, and made him be disarmed. Then came many
knights around him, to demand arms of him, and request that they might do battle
in his stead; nevertheless he would give them to none. And he called for his son
Pedro Arias, who was a right brave knight, though but of green years, and who
had greatly intreated his father before this, that he would suffer him to fight
in his stead. And Don Arias armed him compleatly with his own hands, and
instructed him how to demean himself, and gave him his blessing with his right
hand, and said unto him, that in such a point he went to save the people of
Zamora, as when our Lord Jesus Christ came through the Virgin Mary, to save the
people of this world, who were lost by our father Adam. Then went they into the
field, where Don Diego Ordonez was awaiting them, and Pedrarias entered the
lists, and the judges placed them each in his place, and divided the sun between
them, and went out, leaving them in the lists.
VI
Then they turned their horses one against the other, and ran at each other full
bravely, like good knights. Five times they encountered, and at the sixth
encounter their spears brake, and they laid hand upon their swords, and dealt
each other such heavy blows that the helmets failed; and in this manner the
combat between them continued till noon. And when Don Diego Ordonez saw that it
lasted so long, and he could not yet conquer him, he called to mind that he was
there fighting to revenge his Lord, who had been slain by a foul treason, and he
collected together all his strength. And he lifted up his sword and smote
Pedrarias upon the helmet, so that he cut through it, and through the hood of
the mail also, and made a wound in the head. And Pedrarias with the agony of
death, and with the blood which ran over his eyes, bowed down to the neck of the
horse; yet with all this he neither lost his stirrups, nor let go his sword. And
Don Diego Ordonez seeing him thus, thought that he was dead, and would not
strike him again; and he called aloud, saying, Don Arias, send me another son,
for this one will never fulfil your bidding. When Pedrarias heard this,
grievously wounded as he was, he wiped the blood away with the sleeve of his
mail, and went fiercely against him: and he took the sword in both hands, and
thought to give it him upon his head; but the blow missed, and fell upon the
horse, and cut off great part of his nostrils, and the reins with it; and the
horse immediately ran away because of the great wound which he had received. And
Don Diego had no reins wherewith to stop him, and perceiving that he should else
be carried out of the lists, he threw himself off. And while he did this,
Pedrarias fell down dead, just without the mark. And Don Diego Ordonez laid hand
on the bar, and said, Praised be the name of God, one is conquered. And
incontinently the judges came and took him by the hand, and led him to a tent
and disarmed him, and gave him three sops, and he drank of the wine and rested
awhile. And afterwards they gave him other arms, and a horse that was a right
good one, and went with him to the lists. VII
VII
Then Don Arias Gonzalo called for another son, whose name was Diego Arias, and
said unto him, To horse! and go fight to deliver this Council and to revenge the
death of your brother: and he answered, For this am I come hither. Then his
father gave him his blessing and went with him to the lists. And the judges took
the reins of the two champions and led them each to his place, and went out and
left them in the lists. And they ran against each other with such force that
both shields failed, and in another career they brake their lances. Then laid
they hand on their good swords, and delivered such blows that their helmets were
cut away, and the sleeves of the mail. And at length Diego Arias received such a
blow near the heart that he fell dead. And Don Diego Ordonez went to the bar and
laid hold on it, and cried out to Don Arias Gonzalo, Send me another son, for I
have conquered two, thanks be to God. Then the judges came and said that the
dead knight was not yet out of the lists, and that he must alight and cast him
out. And Don Diego Ordonez did as they had directed him, and alighted from his
horse and took the dead man by the leg, and dragged him to the line, and then
letting the leg fall he thrust him out of the lists with his feet. And then he
went and laid hand upon the bar again, saying that he had liefer fight with a
living man than drag a dead one out of the field. And then the judges came to
him, and led him to the tent, and disarmed him, and gave him the three sops and
the wine, as they had done before, and sent to say to Don Arias Gonzalo that
this son also was slain, and that he should send another. VIII
VIII
When Don Arias Gonzalo, in great rage and in great trouble called for his son
Rodrigo Arias, who was a good knight, right hardy and valiant, the elder of all
the brethren; he had been in many a tournament, and with good fortune. And Don
Arias said unto him, Son, go now and do battle with Diego Ordonez, to save Dona
Urraca your Lady, and yourself, and the Council of Zamora; and if you do this,
in happy hour were you born. Then Rodrigo Arias kissed his hand and answered,
Father, I thank you much for what you have said, and be sure that I will save
them, or take my death. And he took his arms and mounted, and his father gave
him his blessing, and went with him to the lists; and the judges took his reins
and led him in. And when the judges were gone out, they twain ran at each other,
and Don Diego missed his blow, but Rodrigo Arias did not miss, for he gave him
so great a stroke with the lance that it pierced through the shield, and broke
the saddle-bow behind, and made him lose his stirrups, and he embraced the neck
of his horse. But albeit that Don Diego was sorely bested with that stroke, he
took heart presently, and went bravely against him, and dealt him so great a
blow that he broke the lance in him; for it went through the shield and all his
other arms, and great part of the lance remained in his flesh. After this they
laid hand to sword, and gave each to the other great blows, and great wounds
with them. And Rodrigo Arias gave so great a wound to Diego Ordonez, that he cut
his left arm through to the bone. And Don Diego Ordonez, when he felt himself so
sorely wounded, went against Rodrigo Arias and delivered him a blow upon the
head which cut through the helmet and the hood of the mail, and entered into his
head. When Rodrigo Arias felt himself wounded to death, he let go the reins and
took his sword in both hands, and gave so great a blow to the horse of Don Diego
that he cut his head open. And the horse in his agony ran out of the lists, and
carried Don Diego out also, and there died. And Rodrigo Arias fell dead as he
was following him. Then Don Diego Ordonez would have returned into the field to
do battle with the other two, but the judges would not permit this, neither did
they think good to decide whether they of Zamora were overcome in this third
duel or not. And in this manner the thing was left undecided. Nevertheless,
though no sentence was given, there remained no infamy upon the people of
Zamora. But better had it been for Don Arias Gonzalo if he had given up Vellido
to the Castillians, that he might have died the death of a traitor; he would not
then have lost these three sons, who died like good men, in their duty. Now what
was the end of Vellido the history sayeth not, through the default of the
Chroniclers; but it is to be believed, that because the impeachment was not made
within three days, Don Arias Gonzalo thrust him out of the town as Dona Urraca
had requested, and that he fled into other lands, peradventure among the Moors.
And though it may be that he escaped punishment in this world, yet certes he
could not escape it in hell, where he is tormented with Dathan and Abiram, and
with Judas the Traitor, for ever and ever.
IX
In the meantime the Infanta Dona Urraca wrote letters secretly and sent
messengers with them to Toledo to King Don Alfonso, telling him that King Don
Sancho his brother was dead, and had left no heir, and that he should come as
speedily as he could to receive the kingdoms. And she bade her messengers
deliver these privately that the Moors might not discover what had taken place,
lest they should seize upon King Don Alfonso, whom she dearly loved. Moreover
the Castillians assembled together and found that as King Don Sancho had left no
son to succeed him they were bound by right to receive King Don Alfonso as their
Lord; and they also sent unto him in secret. Howbeit, certain of those spies who
discover to the Moors whatever the Christians design to do, when they knew the
death of King Don Sancho, went presently to acquaint the Moors therewith. Now
Don Peransures, as he was a man of great understanding and understood the
Arabick tongue, when he knew the death of King Don Sancho, and while he was
devising how to get his Lord away from Toledo, rode out every day, as if to
solace himself, on the way towards Castille, to see whom he might meet, and to
learn tidings. And it fell out one day that he met a man who told him he was
going with news to King Alimaymon, that King Don Sancho was dead; and Don
Peransures took him aside from the road as if to speak to him, and cut off his
head. And Peransures returned into the road and met another man coming with the
same tidings to the King, and he slew him in like manner. Nevertheless the
tidings reached King Alimaymon. Now Peransures and his brethren feared that if
the Moor knew this he would not let their Lord depart, but would seize him and
make hard terms for his deliverance; and on the other hand, they thought that if
he should learn it from any other than themselves, it would be yet worse. And
while they were in doubt what they should do, King Don Alfonso, trusting in
God's mercy, said unto them, When I came hither unto this Moor, he received me
with great honour, and gave to me abundantly all things of which I stood in
need, even as if I had been his son; how then should I conceal from him this
favour which it hath pleased God to show me? I will go and tell it unto him. But
Don Peransures besought him not to tell him of his brother's death. And he went
to King Alimaymon and said unto him, that he would fain go into his own country,
if it pleased him, to help his vassals, who stood greatly in need of him, and he
besought him that he would give him men. The death of King Don Sancho he did not
make known. And King Alimaymon answered that he should not do this, because he
feared that King Don Sancho his brother would take him. And King Don Alfonso
said, that he knew the ways and customs of his brother, and did not fear him, if
it pleased the King to give him some Moors to help him. Now Alimaymon had heard
of the death of King Don Sancho, and he had sent to occupy the roads and the
passes, that King Don Alfonso might be stopt if he should attempt to depart
without his knowledge. Howbeit he did not fully believe the tidings, seeing that
King Don Alfonso did not speak of it; and he rejoiced in his heart at what the
King said, and he said unto him, I thank God, Alfonso, that thou hast told me of
thy wish to go into thine own country; for in this thou hast dealt loyally by
me, and saved me from that which might else have happened, to which the Moors
have always importuned me. And hadst thou departed privily thou couldest not
have escaped being slain or taken. Now then go and take thy kingdom; and I will
give thee whatever thou hast need of to give to thine own people and win their
hearts that they may serve thee. And he then besought him to renew the oath
which he had taken, never to come against him nor his sons, but always to
befriend them; and this same oath did the King of Toledo make unto him. Now
Alimaymon had a grandson whom he dearly loved, who was not named in the oath,
and King Don Alfonso therefore was not bound to keep it towards him. And King
Don Alfonso made ready for his departure, and Alimaymon and the chief persons of
the court went out from the city with him and rode with him as far as the Sierra
del Dragon, which is now called Valtome; and he gave him great gifts, and there
they took leave of each other with great love.
X
As soon as King Don Alfonso arrived at Zamora, he pitched his tents in the field
of Santiago, and took counsel with his sister. And the Infanta Dona Urraca, who
was a right prudent lady and a wise, sent letters throughout the land, that a
Cortes should assemble and receive him for their Lord. And when the Leonese and
the Gallegos knew that their Lord King Don Alfonso was come, they were full
joyful, and they came to Zamora and received him for their Lord and King. And
afterwards the Castillians arrived, and they of Navarre, and they also received
him for their Lord and King, but upon this condition, that he should swear that
he had not taken counsel for the death of his brother King Don Sancho. Howbeit
they did not come forward to receive the oath, and they kissed his hands in
homage, all, save only Ruydiez, my Cid. And when King Don Alfonso saw that the
Cid did not do homage and kiss his hand, as all the other chief persons and
prelates and Councils had done, he said, Since now ye have all received me for
your Lord, and given me authority over ye, I would know of the Cid Ruydiez why
will he not kiss my hand and acknowledge me; for I would do something for him,
as I promised unto my father King Don Ferrando, when he commended him to me and
to my brethren. And the Cid arose and said, Sir, all whom you see here present,
suspect that by your counsel the King Don Sancho your brother came to his death;
and therefore, I say unto you that, unless you clear yourself of this, as by
right you should do, I will never kiss your hand, nor receive you for my Lord.
Then said the King, Cid, what you say pleases me well; and here I swear to God
and to St. Mary, that I never slew him, nor took counsel for his death, neither
did it please me, though he had taken my kingdom from me. And I beseech ye
therefore all, as friends and true vassals, that ye tell me how I may clear
myself. And the chiefs who were present said, that he and twelve of the knights
who came with him from Toledo, should make this oath in the church at St. Gadea
at Burgos, and that so he should be cleared.
XI
So the King and all his company took horse and went to Burgos. And when the day
appointed for the oath was come, the King went to hear mass in the church of
Gadea, and his sisters the Infantas Dona Urraca and Dona Elvira with him, and
all his knights. And the King came forward upon a high stage that all the people
might see him, and my Cid came to him to receive the oath; and my Cid took the
book of the Gospels and opened it, and laid it upon the altar, and the King laid
his hands upon it, and the Cid said unto him, King Don Alfonso, you came here to
swear concerning the death of King Don Sancho your brother, that you neither
slew him nor took counsel for his death; say now you and these hidalgos, if ye
swear this. And the King and the hidalgos answered and said Yea, we swear it.
And the Cid said, If ye knew of this thing, or gave command that it should be
done, may you die even such a death as your brother the King Don Sancho, by the
hand of a villain whom you trust; one who is not a hidalgo, from another land,
not a Castillian; and the King and the knights who were with him said Amen. And
the King's colour changed; and the Cid repeated the oath unto him a second time,
and the King and the twelve knights said Amen to it in like manner, and in like
manner the countenance of the King was changed again. And my Cid repeated the
oath unto him a third time, and the King and the knights said Amen; but the
wrath of the King was exceeding great, and he said to the Cid, Ruydiez, why dost
thou thus press me, man? To-day thou swearest me, and to-morrow thou wilt kiss
my hand. And from that day forward there was no love towards my Cid in the heart
of the King. XII
XII
After this was the King Don Alfonso crowned King of Castille, Leon, Galicia, and
Portugal; and he called himself King and Emperor of all Spain, even as his
father had done before him. And in the beginning of his reign he did in all
things according to the counsel of the Infanta Dona Urraca his sister; and he
was a good King, and kept his kingdom so well, that rich and poor alike dwelt in
peace and security, neither did one man take arms against another, nor dare to
do it, if he valued the eyes in his head. And if the King was noble and high of
lineage, much more was he of heart; and in his days justice abounded in the land
so, that if a woman had gone alone throughout the whole of his dominions,
bearing gold and silver in her hand, she would have found none to hurt her,
neither in the waste, nor in the peopled country. The merchants and pilgrims
also who passed through his lands were so well protected, that none durst do
them wrong. Never while the kingdom was his, had they of his land to do service
to any other Lord. And he was a comforter of the sorrowful, and an increaser of
the faith, and a defender of the churches, and the strength of the people; a
judge without fear; there was not in Spain a consoler of the poor and of those
who were oppressed, till he came. Now there was a mortal enmity between my Cid
and Count Garcia Ordonez, and in this year did my Cid gather together those of
his table, and all his power, and entered into the lands of Logrono, and
Navarre, and Calahorra, burning and spoiling the country before him. And he laid
siege to the Castle of Faro and took it. And he sent messengers to the Count his
enemy, to say that he would wait for him seven days, and he waited. And the
mighty men of the land came to the Count Don Garcia, but come against my Cid
that they dared not do, for they feared to do battle with him. XIII
XIII
In the second year of the reign of King Don Alfonso, the King of Cordova made
war upon Alimaymon, King of Toledo, and did great damage in his land, and held
him besieged in Toledo; and King Don Alfonso drew forth a great host and went to
help the King of Toledo. When Alimaymon knew that he was coming with so great a
power, he was greatly dismayed, thinking that he came against him; and he sent
to remind him of the love and the honour which he had shown unto him in the days
of his brother King Don Sancho, and of the oath which he had taken; and to
beseech him that he would continue in peace with him. And the King detained his
messengers, giving them no reply, and went on advancing into the land, doing no
hurt therein. And when he came to Olias, he ordered the whole army to halt. And
when the King of Cordova knew that King Don Alfonso was coming, he rose up from
before Toledo, and fled away, and the men of Toledo pursued him, and inflicted
great loss upon him in his flight. XIV
XIV
And when the army had halted at Olias, the King called for the messengers of
Alimaymon, and took with him five knights, and rode to Toledo. And when they
came to the gate which is called Visagra, the messengers who went with him made
him enter the town, and he sent one of them to tell the King that he was there,
and went on in the meantime towards the Alcazar. And when King Alimaymon heard
this, he would not wait till a beast should be brought him that he might ride,
but set out on foot and went to meet him; and as he was going out he met King
Don Alfonso, and they embraced each other. And the King of Toledo kissed King
Don Alfonso's shoulder, for the joy and pleasure that he had in his heart at
seeing him; and he gave thanks to God for what he had done to King Don Alfonso,
and thanked him also for the truth which was in him, in coming thus to his
deliverance, and for remembering the oath which they had made each to the other.
And they rejoiced together all that night, and great was the joy of the people
of Toledo, because of the love which King Don Alfonso bore towards their Lord.
But great was the sorrow in the host of the Castillians, for they never thought
to see their Lord again; and they thought that he had committed a great folly in
thus putting himself into the power of the Moors.
XV
On the morrow, King Don Alfonso besought King Alimaymon that he would go and eat
with him at Olias, and see how he came to help him. And they went both together
with a little company, and when they of the host saw their Lord they were all
right joyful, and the two Kings went through the camp, and they sat down to eat
in the tent of the King, which was a large one. And while they were at meat King
Don Alfonso gave order in secret that five hundred knights should arm themselves
and surround the tent. And when the King of Toledo saw these armed knights, and
that the tent was surrounded, he was in great fear, and he asked of King Don
Alfonso what it should be; and the King bade him eat, and said, that afterwards
they would tell him. And after they had eaten, King Don Alfonso said to
Alimaymon, You made me swear and promise when you had me in Toledo in your
power, that no evil should ever come against you on my part: now since I have
you in my power I will that you release me from this oath and covenant. And the
King of Toledo consented to release him, and besought him to do him no other
wrong, and he acquitted him from the promise three times. And when he had done
this King Don Alfonso called for the book of the Gospels, and said unto him, Now
then that you are in my power, I swear and promise unto you, never to go against
you, nor against your son, and to aid you against all other men in the world.
And I make this oath unto you because there was reason why I should have broken
that other one, seeing that it was made when I was in your hands; but against
this I must not go, for I make it when you are in mine, and I could do with you
even whatever pleased me; and he laid his hands upon the book, and swore even as
he had said. Right joyful was the King of Toledo at this which King Don Alfonso
had done, for the loyalty which he had shown towards him. And they remained that
night together; and on the morrow Alimaymon returned to his city full gladly,
and King Don Alfonso made his host move on towards Cordova, and Alimaymon went
with him; and they overran the land, and burnt towns and villages, and destroyed
castles, and plundered whatever they could find; and they returned each into his
own country with great spoils. And from thenceforward the King of Cordova durst
no more attack the King of Toledo. XVI
XVI
In the following years nothing is found to be related, save that my Cid did
battle by command of the King with a knight called Ximen Garcia de Tiogelos, who
was one of the best of Navarre: they fought for the castle of Pazluengas, and
for two other castles, and my Cid conquered him, and King Don Alfonso had the
castles. And after this my Cid did battle in Medina Celi, with a Moor called
Faras, who was a good knight in arms, and he defeated and slew him and another
also. And in the fifth year of the reign of King Don Alfonso, the King sent the
Cid to the Kings of Seville and of Cordova for the tribute which they were bound
to pay him. Now there was at this time war between Almocanis, King of Seville,
and Almundafar, King of Granada, and with Almundafar were these men of Castille,
the Count Don Garcia Ordonez, and Fortun Sanchez, the son-in-law of King Don
Garcia of Navarre, and Lope Sanchez his brother, and Diego Perez, one of the
best men of Castille; and they aided him all that they could, and went against
the King of Seville, and when my Cid knew this it troubled him, and he sent unto
them requiring them not to go against the King of Seville, nor to destroy his
country, because he was King Don Alfonso's vassal; otherwise the King must
defend him. And the King of Granada and the Ricos-omes who were with him cared
nothing for his letters, but entered boldly into the land of Seville, and
advanced as far as Cabra, burning and laying waste before them. When the Cid saw
this he gathered together what Christians he could and went against them. And
the King of Granada and the Christians who were with him, sent to tell him that
they would not go out of the country for him. And the wrath of the Cid was
kindled, and he went against them, and fought with them in the field, and the
battle lasted from the hour of tierce even until the hour of sexts; and many
died upon the part of the King of Granada, and at length my Cid overcame them
and made them take to flight. And Count Garcia Ordonez was taken prisoner, and
Lope Sanchez, and Diego Perez, and many other knights, and of other men so many
that they were out of number; and the dead were so many that no man could count
them; and the spoils of the field were very great. And the Cid held these good
men prisoners three days and then set them free, and he returned with great
honour and great riches to Seville. And King Almocanis received him full
honourably, and gave him great gifts for himself, and paid him the full tribute
for the King; and he returned rich to Castille, and with great honour. And King
Don Alfonso was well pleased with the good fortune of the Cid in all his feats;
but there were many who wished ill to him, and sought to set the King against
him. XVII
XVII
After this King Don Alfonso assembled together all his power and went against
the Moors. And the Cid should have gone with him, but fell sick and perforce
therefore abode at home. And while the King was going through Andalusia, having
the land at his mercy, a great power of the Moors assembled together on the
other side, and entered the land, and besieged the castle of Gormaz, and did
much evil. At this time the Cid was gathering strength; and when he heard that
the Moors were in the country, laying waste before them, he gathered together
what force he could, and went after them; and the Moors, when they heard this,
dared not abide his coming, but began to fly. And the Cid followed them to
Atienza, and to Ciguenza, and Fita, and Guadalajara, and through the whole land
of St. Esteban, as far as Toledo, slaying and burning, and plundering and
destroying, and laying hands on all whom he found, so that he brought back seven
thousand prisoners, men and women; and he and all his people returned rich and
with great honour. But when the King of Toledo heard of the hurt which he had
received at the hands of the Cid, he sent to King Don Alfonso to complain
thereof, and the King was greatly troubled. And then the Ricos-omes who wished
ill to the Cid, had the way open to do him evil with the King, and they said to
the King, Sir, Ruydiez hath broken your faith, and the oath and promise which
you made to the King of Toledo: and he hath done this for no other reason but
that the Moors of Toledo may fall upon us here, and slay both you and us. And
the King believed what they said, and was wroth against the Cid, having no love
towards him because of the oath which he had pressed upon him at Burgos
concerning the death of King Don Sancho his brother. And he went with all speed
to Burgos, and sent from thence to bid the Cid come unto him. XVIII
XVIII
Now my Cid knew the evil disposition of the King towards him, and when he
received his bidding, he made answer that he would meet him between Burgos and
Bivar. And the King went out from Burgos and came nigh unto Bivar; and the Cid
came up to him and would have kissed his hand, but the King withheld it, and
said angrily unto him, Ruydiez, quit my land. Then the Cid clapt spurs to the
mule upon which he rode, and vaulted into a piece of ground which was his own
inheritance, and answered, Sir, I am not in your land, but in my own. And the
King replied full wrathfully, Go out of my kingdoms without any delay. And the
Cid made answer, Give me then thirty days time, as is the right of the hidalgos;
and the King said he would not, but that if he were not gone in nine days time
he would come and look for him. The Counts were well pleased at this; but all
the people of the land were sorrowful. And then the King and the Cid parted. And
the Cid sent for all his friends and his kinsmen and vassals, and told them how
King Don Alfonso had banished him from the land, and asked of them who would
follow him into banishment, and who would remain at home. Then Alvar Fanez, who
was his cousin-german, came forward and said, Cid, we will all go with you,
through desert and through peopled country, and never fail you. In your service
will we spend our mules and horses, our wealth and our garments, and ever while
we live be unto you loyal friends and vassals. And they all confirmed what Alvar
Fanez had said; and the Cid thanked them for their love, and said that there
might come a time in which he should guerdon them. XIX
XIX
And as he was about to depart he looked back upon his own home, and when he saw
his hall deserted, the household chests unfastened, the doors open, no cloaks
hanging up, no seats in the porch, no hawks upon the perches, the tears came
into his eyes, and he said, My enemies have done this. . . God be praised for
all things. And he turned towards the East and knelt and said, Holy Mary Mother,
and all Saints, pray to God for me, that he may give me strength to destroy all
the Pagans, and to win enough from them to requite my friends therewith, and all
those who follow and help me. Then he called for Alvar Fanez and said unto him,
Cousin, the poor have no part in the wrong which the King hath done us; see now
that no wrong be done unto them along our road: and he called for his horse. And
then an old woman who was standing at her door said, Go in a lucky minute, and
make spoil of whatever you wish. And with this proverb he rode on, saying,
Friends, by God's good pleasure we shall return to Castille with great honour
and great gain. And as they went out from Bivar they had a crow on their right
hand, and when they came to Burgos they had a crow on the left.
XX
My Cid Ruydiez entered Burgos, having sixty streamers in his company. And men
and women went forth to see him, and the men of Burgos and the women of Burgos
were at their windows, weeping, so great was their sorrow; and they said with
one accord, God, how good a vassal if he had but a good Lord! and willingly
would each have bade him come in, but no one dared so to do. For King Don
Alfonso in his anger had sent letters to Burgos, saying that no man should give
the Cid a lodging; and that whosoever disobeyed should lose all that he had, and
moreover the eyes in his head. Great sorrow had these Christian folk at this,
and they hid themselves when he came near them because they did not dare speak
to him; and my Cid went to his Posada, and when he came to the door he found it
fastened, for fear of the King. And his people called out with a loud voice, but
they within made no answer. And the Cid rode up to the door, and took his foot
out of the stirrup, and gave it a kick, but the door did not open with it, for
it was well secured; a little girl of nine years old then came out of one of the
houses and said unto him, O Cid, the King hath forbidden us to receive you. We
dare not open our doors to you, for we should lose our houses and all that we
have, and the eyes in our head. Cid, our evil would not help you, but God and
all his Saints be with you. And when she had said this she returned into the
house. And when the Cid knew what the King had done he turned away from the door
and rode up to St. Mary's, and there he alighted and knelt down, and prayed with
all his heart; and then he mounted again and rode out of the town, and pitched
his tent near Arlanzon, upon the Glera, that is to say, upon the sands. My Cid
Ruydiez, he who in a happy hour first girt on his sword, took up his lodging
upon the sands, because there was none who would receive him within their door.
He had a good company round about him, and there he lodged as if he had been
among the mountains. XXI
XXI
Moreover the King had given orders that no food should be sold them in Burgos,
so that they could not buy even a pennyworth. But Martin Antolinez, who was a
good Burgalese, he supplied my Cid and all his company with bread and wine
abundantly. Campeador, said he to the Cid, to-night we will rest here, and to-
morrow we will be gone: I shall be accused for what I have done in serving you,
and shall be in the King's displeasure; but following your fortunes, sooner or
later, the King will have me for his friend, and if not, I do not care a fig for
what I leave behind. Now this Martin Antolinez was nephew unto the Cid, being
the son of his brother, Ferrando Diaz. And the Cid said unto him, Martin
Antolinez, you are a bold Lancier; if I live I will double you your pay. You see
I have nothing with me, and yet must provide for my companions. I will take two
chests and fill them with sand, and do you go in secret to Rachel and Vidas, and
tell them to come hither privately; for I cannot take my treasures with me
because of their weight, and will pledge them in their hands. Let them come for
the chests at night, that no man may see them. God knows that I do this thing
more of necessity than of wilfulness; but by God's good help I shall redeem all.
Now Rachel and Vidas were rich Jews, from whom the Cid used to receive money for
his spoils. And Martin Antolinez went in quest of them, and he passed through
Burgos and entered into the Castle; and when he saw them he said, Ah Rachel and
Vidas, my dear friends! now let me speak with ye in secret. And they three went
apart. And he said to them, Give me your hands that you will not discover me
neither to Moor nor Christian! I will make you rich men for ever. The Campeador
went for the tribute and he took great wealth, and some of it he has kept for
himself. He has two chests full of gold; ye know that the King is in anger
against him, and he cannot carry these away with him without their being seen.
He will leave them therefore in your hands, and you shall lend him money upon
them, swearing with great oaths and upon your faith, that ye will not open them
till a year be past. Rachel and Vidas took counsel together and answered, We
well knew he got something when he entered the land of the Moors; he who has
treasures does not sleep without suspicion; we will take the chests, and place
them where they shall not be seen. But tell us with what will the Cid be
contented, and what gain will he give us for the year? Martin Antolinez answered
like a prudent man, My Cid requires what is reasonable; he will ask but little
to leave his treasures in safety. Men come to him from all parts. He must have
six hundred marks. And the Jews said, We will advance him so much. Well then,
said Martin Antolinez, ye see that the night is advancing; the Cid is in haste,
give us the marks. This is not the way of business, said they; we must take
first, and then give. Ye say well, replied the Burgalese: come then to the
Campeador, and we will help you to bring away the chests, so that neither Moors
nor Christians may see us. So they went to horse and rode out together, and they
did not cross the bridge, but rode through the water that no man might see them,
and they came to the tent of the Cid. XXII
XXII
Meantime the Cid had taken two chests, which were covered with leather of red
and gold, and the nails which fastened down the leather were well gilt; they
were ribbed with bands of iron, and each fastened with three locks; they were
heavy, and he filled them with sand. And when Rachel and Vidas entered his tent
with Martin Antolinez, they kissed his hand; and the Cid smiled and said to
them, Ye see that I am going out of the land, because of the King's displeasure;
but I shall leave something with ye. And they made answer, Martin Antolinez has
covenanted with us, that we shall give you six hundred marks upon these chests,
and keep them a fun year, swearing not to open them till that time be expired,
else shall we be perjured. Take the chests, said Martin Antolinez; I will go
with you, and bring back the marks, for my Cid must move before cock-crow. So
they took the chests, and though they were both strong men they could not raise
them from the ground; and they were full glad of the bargain which they had
made. And Rachel then went to the Cid and kissed his hand and said, Now,
Campeador, you are going from Castille among strange nations, and your gain will
be great, even as your fortune is. I kiss your hand, Cid, and have a gift for
you, a red skin; it is Moorish and honourable. And the Cid said, It pleases me:
give it me if ye have brought it, if not, reckon it upon the chests. And they
departed with the chests, and Martin Antolinez and his people helped them, and
went with them. And when they had placed the chests in safety, they spread a
carpet in the middle of the hall, and laid a sheet upon it, and they threw down
upon it three hundred marks of silver. Don Martin counted them, and took them
without weighing. The other three hundred they paid in gold. Don Martin had five
squires with him, and he loaded them all with the money. And when this was done
he said to them, Now Don Rachel and Vidas, you have got the chests, and I who
got them for you well deserve a pair of hose. And the Jews said to each other,
Let us give him a good gift for this which he has done; and they said to him, We
will give you enough for hose and for a rich doublet and a good cloak; you shall
have thirty marks. Don Martin thanked them and took the marks, and bidding them
both farewell, he departed right joyfully. XXIII
XXIII
When Martin Antolinez came into the Cid's tent he said unto him, I have sped
well, Campeador! you have gained six hundred marks, and I thirty. Now then
strike your tent and be gone. The time draws on, and you may be with your Lady
Wife at St. Pedro de Cardena, before the cock crows. So the tent was struck, and
my Cid and his company went to horse at this early hour. And the Cid turned his
horse's head towards St. Mary's, and with his right hand he blest himself on the
forehead, and he said, God be praised! help me, St. Mary. I go from Castille
because the anger of the King is against me, and I know not whether I shall ever
enter it again in all my days. Help me, glorious Virgin, in my goings, both by
night and by day. If you do this and my lot be fair, I will send rich and goodly
gifts to your altar, and will have a thousand masses sung there. Then with a
good heart he gave his horse the reins. And Martin Antolinez said to him, Go ye
on; I must back to my wife and tell her what she is to do during my absence. I
shall be with you in good time. And back he went to Burgos, and my Cid and his
company pricked on. The cocks were crowing amain, and the day began to break,
when the good Campeador reached St. Pedro's. The Abbot Don Sisebuto was saying
matins, and Dona Ximena and five of her ladies of good lineage were with him,
praying to God and St. Peter to help my Cid. And when he called at the gate and
they knew his voice, God, what a joyful man was the Abbot Don Sisebuto! Out into
the court yard they went with torches and with tapers, and the Abbot gave thanks
to God that he now beheld the face of my Cid. And the Cid told him all that had
befallen him, and how he was a banished man; and he gave him fifty marks for
himself, and a hundred for Dona Ximena and her children. Abbot, said he, I leave
two little girls behind me, whom I commend to your care. Take you care of them
and of my wife and of her ladies: when this money be gone, if it be not enough,
supply them abundantly; for every mark which you expend upon them I will give
the Monastery four. And the Abbot promised to do this with a right good will.
Then Dona Ximena came up and her daughters with her, each of them borne in arms,
and she knelt down on both her knees before her husband, weeping bitterly, and
she would have kissed his hand; and she said to him, Lo now you are banished
from the land by mischief-making men, and here am I with your daughters, who are
little ones and of tender years, and we and you must be parted, even in your
life time. For the love of St. Mary tell me now what we shall do. And the Cid
took the children in his arms, and held them to his heart and wept, for he
dearly loved them. Please God and St. Mary, said he, I shall yet live to give
these my daughters in marriage with my own hands, and to do you service yet, my
honoured wife, whom I have ever loved, even as my own soul. XXIV
XXIV
A great feast did they make that day in the Monastery for the good Campeador,
and the bells of St. Pedro's rung merrily. Meantime the tidings had gone through
Castille how my Cid was banished from the land, and great was the sorrow of the
people. Some left their houses to follow him, others forsook their honourable
offices which they held. And that day a hundred and fifteen knights assembled at
the bridge of Arlanzon, all in quest of my Cid; and there Martin Antolinez
joined them, and they rode on together to St. Pedro's. And when he of Bivar knew
what a goodly company were coming to join him, he rejoiced in his own strength,
and rode out to meet them and greeted them full courteously; and they kissed his
hand, and he said to them, I pray to God that I may one day requite ye well,
because ye have forsaken your houses and your heritages for my sake, and I trust
that I shall pay ye two fold. Six days of the term allotted were now gone, and
three only remained: if after that time he should be found within the King's
dominions, neither for gold nor for silver could he then escape. That day they
feasted together, and when it was evening the Cid distributed among them all
that he had, giving to each man according to what he was; and he told them that
they must meet at mass after matins, and depart at that early hour. Before the
cock crew they were ready, and the Abbot said the mass of the Holy Trinity, and
when it was done they left the church and went to horse. And my Cid embraced
Dona Ximena and his daughters, and blest them; and the parting between them was
like separating the nail from the quick flesh: and he wept and continued to look
round after them. Then Alvar Fanez came up to him and said, Where is your
courage, my Cid? In a good hour were you born of woman. Think of our road now;
these sorrows will yet be turned into joy. And the Cid spake again to the Abbot,
commending his family to his care;-well did the Abbot know that he should one
day receive good guerdon. And as he took leave of the Cid, Alvar Fanez said to
him, Abbot, if you see any who come to follow us, tell them what route we take,
and bid them make speed, for they may reach us either in the waste or in the
peopled country. And then they loosed the reins and pricked forward. XXV
XXV
That night my Cid lay at Spinar de Can, and people flocked to him from all
parts, and early on the morrow he set out; Santestevan lay on his left hand,
which is a good city, and Ahilon on the right, which belongs to the Moors, and
he passed by Alcobiella, which is the boundary of Castille. And he went by the
Calzada de Quinea, and crost the Douro upon rafts. That night, being the eighth,
they rested at Figeruela, and more adventurers came to join him. And when my Cid
was fast asleep, the Angel Gabriel appeared to him in a vision, and said, Go on
boldly and fear nothing; for everything shall go well with thee as long as thou
livest, and all the things which thou beginnest, thou shalt bring to good end,
and thou shalt be rich and honourable. And the Cid awoke and blest himself; and
he crost his forehead and rose from his bed, and knelt down and gave thanks to
God for the mercy which he had vouchsafed him, being right joyful because of the
vision. Early on the morrow they set forth; now this was the last day of the
nine. And they went on towards the Sierra de Miedes. Before sunset the Cid
halted and took account of his company; there were three hundred lances, all
with streamers, besides foot-soldiers. And he said unto them, Now take and eat,
for we must pass this great and wild Sierra, that we may quit the land of King
Alfonso this night. To- morrow he who seeks us may find us. So they passed the
Sierra that night.
BOOK FOUR
I
Now hath my Cid left the kingdom of King Don Alfonso, and entered the country of
the Moors. And at day-break they were near the brow of the Sierra, and they
halted there upon the top of the mountains, and gave barley to their horses, and
remained there until evening. And they set forward when the evening had closed,
that none might see them, and continued their way all night, and before dawn
they came near to Castrejon, which is upon the Henares. And Alvar Fanez said
unto the Cid, that he would take with him two hundred horsemen, and scour the
country as far as Fita and Guadalajara and Alcala, and lay hands on whatever he
could find, without fear either of King Alfonso or of the Moors. And he
counselled him to remain in ambush where he was, and surprise the castle of
Castrejon: and it seemed good unto my Cid. Away went Alvar Fanez, and Alvar
Alvarez with him, and Alvar Salvadores, and Galin Garcia, and the two hundred
horsemen; and the Cid remained in ambush with the rest of his company. And as
soon as it was morning, the Moors of Castrejon, knowing nothing of these who
were so near them, opened the castle gates, and went out to their work as they
were wont to do. And the Cid rose from ambush and fell upon them, and took all
their flocks, and made straight for the gates, pursuing them. And there was a
cry within the castle that the Christians were upon them, and they who were
within ran to the gates to defend them, but my Cid came up sword in hand; eleven
Moors did he slay with his own hand, and they forsook the gate and fled before
him to hide themselves within, so that he won the castle presently, and took
gold and silver, and whatever else he would.
II
Alvar Fanez meantime scoured the country along the Henares as far as Alcala, and
he returned driving flocks and herds before him, with great stores of wearing
apparel, and of other plunder. He came with the banner of Minaya, and there were
none who dared fall upon his rear. And when the Cid knew that he was nigh at
hand he went out to meet him, and praised him greatly for what he had done, and
gave thanks to God. And he gave order that all the spoils should be heaped
together, both what Alvar Fanez had brought, and what had been taken in the
castle; and he said to him, Brother, of all this which God hath given us, take
you the fifth, for you well deserve it; but Minaya would not, saying, You have
need of it for our support. And the Cid divided the spoil among the knights and
foot-soldiers, to each his due portion; to every horseman a hundred marks of
silver, and half as much to the foot-soldiers: and because he could find none to
whom to sell his fifth, he spake to the Moors of Castrejon, and sent to those of
Fita and Guadalajara, telling them that they might come safely to purchase the
spoil, and the prisoners also whom he had taken, both men prisoners and women,
for he would have none with him. And they came, and valued the spoil and the
prisoners, and gave for them three thousand marks of silver, which they paid
within three days: they bought also much of the spoil which had been divided,
making great gain, so that all who were in my Cid's company were full rich. And
the heart of my Cid was joyous, and he sent to King Don Alfonso, telling him
that he and his companions would yet do him service upon the Moors. III
III
Then my Cid assembled together his good men and said unto them, Friends, we
cannot take up our abode in this castle, for there is no water in it, and
moreover the King is at peace with these Moors, and I know that the treaty
between them hath been written; so that if we should abide here he would come
against us with all his power, and with all the power of the Moors, and we could
not stand against him. If therefore it seem good unto you, let us leave the rest
of our prisoners here, for it does not beseem us to take any with us, but to be
as free from all encumbrance as may be, like men who are to live by war, and to
help ourselves with our arms. And it pleased them well that it should be so. And
he said to them, Ye have all had your shares, neither is there anything owing to
any one among ye. Now then let us be ready to take horse betimes on the morrow,
for I would not fight against my Lord the King. So on the morrow they went to
horse and departed, being rich with the spoils which they had won: and they left
the castle to the Moors, who remained blessing them for this bounty which they
had received at their hands. Then my Cid and his company went up the Henares as
fast as they could go, and they passed by the Alcarias, and by the caves of
Anquita, and through the waters, and they entered the plain of Torancio, and
halted between Fariza and Cetina: great were the spoils which they collected as
they went along. And on the morrow they passed Alfama, and leaving the Gorge
below them they passed Bobierca, and Teca which is beyond it, and came against
Alcocer. There my Cid pitched his tents upon a round hill, which was a great
hill and a strong; and the river Salon ran near them, so that the water could
not be cut off. My Cid thought to take Alcocer: so he pitched his tents
securely, having the Sierra on one side, and the river on the other, and he made
all his people dig a trench, that they might not be alarmed, neither by day nor
by night.
IV
When my Cid had thus encamped, he went to look at the Alcazar, and see if he
could by any means enter it. And the Moors offered tribute to him if he would
leave them in peace; but this he would not do, and he lay before the town. And
news went through all the land that the Cid was come among then, and they of
Calatayud were in fear. And my Cid lay before Alcocer fifteen weeks; and when he
saw that the town did not surrender, he ordered his people to break up their
camp, as if they were flying, and they left one of their tents behind them, and
took their way along the Salon, with their banners spread. And when the Moors
saw this they rejoiced greatly, and there was a great stir among them, and they
praised themselves for what they had done in withstanding him, and said, that
the Cid's bread and barley had failed him, and he had fled away, and left one of
his tents behind him. And they said among themselves, Let us pursue them and
spoil them, for if they of Teruel should be before us the honour and the profit
will be theirs, and we shall have nothing. And they went out after him, great
and little, leaving the gates open and shouting as they went; and there was not
left in the town a man who could bear arms. And when my Cid saw them coming he
gave orders to quicken their speed, as if he was in fear, and would not let his
people turn till the Moors were far enough from the town. But when he saw that
there was a good distance between them and the gates, then he bade his banner
turn, and spurred towards them, crying, Lay on, knights, by God's mercy the
spoil is our own. God! what a good joy was theirs that morning! My Cid's vassals
laid on without mercy;-in one hour, and in a little space, three hundred Moors
were slain, and the Cid and Alvar Fanez had good horses, and got between them
and the Castle, and stood in the gateway sword in hand, and there was a great
mortality among the Moors; and my Cid won the place, and Pero Bermudez planted
his banner upon the highest point of the Castle. And the Cid said, Blessed be
God and all his Saints, we have bettered our quarters both for horses and men.
And he said to Alvar Fanez and all his knights, Hear me, we shall get nothing by
killing these Moors;-Let us take them and they shall show us their treasures
which they have hidden in their houses, and we will dwell here and they shall
serve us. In this manner did my Cid win Alcocer, and take up his abode therein.
V
Much did this trouble the Moors of Teca, and it did not please those of Teruel,
nor of Calatayud. And they sent to the King of Valencia to tell him that one who
was called Ruydiez the Cid, whom King Don Alfonso had banished, was come into
their country, and had taken Alcocer; and if a stop were not put to him, the
King might look upon Teca and Teruel and Calatayud as lost, for nothing could
stand against him, and he had plundered the whole country, along the Salon on
the one side, and the Siloca on the other. When the King of Valencia, whose name
was Alcamin, heard this, he was greatly troubled. And incontinently he spake
unto two Moorish Kings who were his vassals, bidding them take three thousand
horsemen, and all the men of the border, and bring the Cid to him alive, that he
might make atonement to him for having entered his land.
VI
Fariz and Galve were the names of these two Moorish Kings, and they set out with
the companies of King Alcamin from Valencia, and halted the first night in
Segorve, and the second night at Celfa de Canal. And they sent their messengers
through the land to all the Councils thereof, ordering all men at arms, as well
horsemen as footmen, to join them, and the third night they halted at Calatayud,
and great numbers joined them; and they came up against Alcocer, and pitched
their tents round about the Castle. Every day their host increased, for their
people were many in number, and their watchmen kept watch day and night; and my
Cid had no succour to look for except the mercy of God, in which he put his
trust. And the Moors beset them so close that they cut off their water, and
albeit the Castillians would have sallied against them, my Cid forbade this. In
this guise were my Cid and his people besieged for three weeks, and when the
fourth week began, he called for Alvar Fanez, and for his company, and said unto
them, Ye see that the Moors have cut off our water, and we have but little
bread; they gather numbers day by day, and we become weak, and they are in their
own country. If we would depart they would not let us, and we cannot go out by
night because they have beset us round about on all sides, and we cannot pass on
high through the air, neither through the earth which is underneath. Now then if
it please you let us go out and fight with them, though they are many in number,
and either defeat them or die an honourable death. VII
VII
Then Minaya answered and said, We have left the gentle land of Castille, and are
come hither as banished men, and if we do not beat the Moors they will not give
us food. Now though we are but few, yet are we of a good stock, and of one heart
and one will; by God's help let us go out and smite them to-morrow, early in the
morning, and you who are not in a state of penitence, go and shrieve yourselves
and repent ye of your sins. And they all held that what Alvar Fanez had said was
good. And my Cid answered, Minaya, you have spoken as you should do. Then
ordered he all the Moors, both men and women, to be thrust out of the town, that
it might not be known what they were preparing to do; and the rest of that day
and the night also they passed in making ready for the battle. And on the morrow
at sunrise the Cid gave his banner to Pero Bermudez, and bade him bear it boldly
like a good man as he was, but he charged him not to thrust forward with it
without his bidding. And Pero Bermudez kissed his hand, being well pleased. Then
leaving only two foot-soldiers to keep the gates, they issued out; and the
Moorish scouts saw them and hastened to the camp. Then was there such a noise of
tambours as if the earth would have been broken, and the Moors armed themselves
in great haste. Two royal banners were there, and five city ones, and they drew
up their men in two great bodies, and moved on, thinking to take my Cid and all
his company alive; and my Cid bade his men remain still and not move till he
should bid them. VIII
VIII
Pero Bermudez could not bear this, but holding the banner in his hand, he cried,
God help you, Cid Campeador; I shall put your banner in the middle of that main
body; and you who are bound to stand by it-I shall see how you will succour it.
And he began to prick forward. And the Campeador called unto him to stop as he
loved him, but Pero Bermudez replied he would stop for nothing, and away he
spurred and carried his banner into the middle of the great body of Moors. And
the Moors fell upon him that they might win the banner, and beset him on all
sides, giving him many and great blows to beat him down; nevertheless his arms
were proof, and they could not pierce them, neither could they beat him down,
nor force the banner from him, for he was a right brave man and a strong, and a
good horseman, and of great heart. And when the Cid saw him thus beset he called
to his people to move on and help him. Then placed they their shields before
their hearts, and lowered their lances with the streamers thereon, and bending
forward, rode on. Three hundred lances were they, each with its pendant, and
every man at the first charge slew his Moor. Smite them, knights, for the love
of charity, cried the Campeador. I am Ruydiez, the Cid of Bivar! Many a shield
was pierced that day, and many a false corselet was broken, and many a white
streamer dyed with blood, and many a horse left without a rider. The
Misbelievers called on Mahomet, and the Christians on Santiago, and the noise of
the tambours and of the trumpets was so great that none could hear his neighbour.
And my Cid and his company succoured Pero Bermudez, and they rode through the
host of the Moors, slaying as they went, and they rode back again in like
manner; thirteen hundred did they kill in this guise. If you would know who they
were, who were the good men of that day, it behoves me to tell you, for though
they are departed, it is not fitting that the names of those who have done well
should die, nor would they who have done well themselves, or who hope so to do,
think it right; for good men would not be so bound to do well if their good
feats should be kept silent. There was my Cid, the good man in battle, who
fought well upon his gilt saddle; and Alvar Fanez Minaya, and Martin Antolinez
the Burgalese of prowess, and Muno Gustios, and Martin Munoz who held Montemayor,
and Alvar Alvarez, and Alvar Salvadores, and Galin Garcia the good one of
Aragon, and Felez Munoz the nephew of the Campeador. Wherever my Cid went, the
Moors made a path before him, for he smote them down without mercy. And while
the battle still continued, the Moors killed the horse of Alvar Fanez, and his
lance was broken, and he fought bravely with his sword afoot. And my Cid, seeing
him, came up to an Alguazil who rode upon a good horse, and smote him with his
sword under the right arm, so that he cut him through and through, and he gave
the horse to Alvar Fanez, saying, Mount, Minaya, for you are my right hand.
IX
When Alvar Fanez was thus remounted, they fell upon the Moors again, and by this
time the Moors were greatly disheartened, having suffered so great loss, and
they began to give way. And my Cid, seeing King Fariz, made towards him, smiting
down all who were in his way; and he came up to him, and made three blows at
him; two of them failed, but the third was a good one, and went through his
cuirass, so that the blood ran down his legs. And with that blow was the army of
the Moors vanquished, for King Fariz, feeling himself so sorely wounded, turned
his reins and fled out of the field, even to Teruel. And Martin Antolinez the
good Burgalese came up to King Galve, and gave him a stroke on the head, which
scattered all the carbuncles out of his helmet, and cut through it even to the
skin; and the King did not wait for another such, and he fled also. A good day
was that for Christendom, for the Moors fled on all sides. King Fariz got into
Teruel, and King Galve fled after him, but they would not receive him within the
gates, and he went on to Calatayud. And the Christians pursued them even to
Calatayud. And Alvar Fanez had a good horse; four and thirty did he slay in that
pursuit with the edge of his keen sword, and his arm was all red, and the blood
dropt from his elbow. And as he was returning from the spoil he said, Now I am
well pleased, for good tidings will go to Castille, how my Cid has won a battle
in the field. My Cid also turned back; his coif was wrinkled, and you might see
his full beard; the hood of his mail hung down upon his shoulders, and the sword
was still in his hand. He saw his people returning from the pursuit, and that of
all his company fifteen only of the lower sort were slain, and he gave thanks to
God for this victory. Then they fell to the spoil, and they found arms in
abundance, and great store of wealth; and five hundred and ten horses. And he
divided the spoil, giving to each man his fair portion, and the Moors whom they
had put out of Alcocer before the battle, they now received again into the
castle, and gave to them also a part of the booty, so that all were well
content. And my Cid had great joy with his vassals.
X
Then the Cid called unto Alvar Fanez and said, Cousin, you are my right hand,
and I hold it good that you should take of my fifth as much as you will, for all
would be well bestowed upon you; but Minaya thanked him, and said, that he would
take nothing more than his share. And the Cid said unto him, I will send King
Don Alfonso a present from my part of the spoils. You shall go into Castille,
and take with you thirty horses, the best which were taken from the Moors, all
bridled and saddled, and each having a sword hanging from the saddle-bow; and
you shall give them to the King, and kiss his hand for me, and tell him that we
know how to make our way among the Moors. And you shall take also this bag of
gold and silver, and purchase for me a thousand masses in St. Mary's at Burgos,
and hang up there these banners of the Moorish Kings whom we have overcome. Go
then to St. Pedro's at Cardena, and salute my wife Dona Ximena, and my
daughters, and tell them how well I go on, and that if I live I will make them
rich women. And salute for me the Abbot Don Sancho, and give him fifty marks of
silver; and the rest of the money, whatever shall be left, give to my wife, and
bid them all pray for me. Moreover the Cid said unto him, This country is all
spoiled, and we have to help ourselves with sword and spear. You are going to
gentle Castille; if when you return you should not find us here, you will hear
where we are.
XI
Alvar Fanez went his way to Castille, and he found the King in Valladolid, and
he presented to him the thirty horses, with all their trappings, and swords
mounted with silver hanging from the saddle-bows. And when the King saw them,
before Alvar Fanez could deliver his bidding, he said unto him, Minaya, who
sends me this goodly present; and Minaya answered, My Cid Ruydiez, the Campeador,
sends it, and kisses by me your hands. For since you were wroth against him, and
banished him from the land, he being a man disherited, hath helped himself with
his own hands, and hath won from the Moors the Castle of Alcocer. And the King
of Valencia sent two Kings to besiege him there, with all his power, and they
begirt him round about, and cut off the water and bread from us so that we could
not subsist. And then holding it better to die like good men in the field, than
shut up like bad ones, we went out against them, and fought with them in the
open field, and smote them and put them to flight; and both the Moorish Kings
were sorely wounded, and many of the Moors were slain, and many were taken
prisoners, and great was the spoil which we won in the field, both of captives
and of horses and arms, gold and silver and pearls, so that all who are with him
are rich men. And of his fifth of the horses which were taken that day, my Cid
hath sent you these, as to his natural Lord, whose favour he desireth. I beseech
you, as God shall help you, show favour unto him. Then King Don Alfonso
answered, This is betimes in the morning for a banished man to ask favour of his
Lord; nor is it befitting a King, for no Lord ought to be wroth for so short a
time. Nevertheless, because the horses were won from the Moors, I will take
them, and rejoice that my Cid hath sped so well. And I pardon you, Minaya, and
give again unto you all the lands which you have ever held of me, and you have
my favour to go when you will, and come when you will. Of the Cid Campeador, I
shall say nothing now, save only that all who chuse to follow him may freely go,
and their bodies and goods and heritages are safe. And Minaya said, God grant
you many and happy years for his service. Now I beseech you, this which you have
done for me, do also to all those who are in my Cid's company, and show favour
unto them also, that their possessions may be restored unto them. And the King
gave order that it should be so. Then Minaya kissed the King's hand and said,
Sir, you have done this now, and you will do the rest hereafter. XII
XII
My Cid remained awhile in Alcocer, and the Moors of the border waited to see
what he would do. And in this time King Fariz got well of his wound, and my Cid
sent to him and to the Moors, saying, that if they would give him three thousand
marks of silver, he would leave Alcocer and go elsewhere. And King Fariz and the
Moors of Techa, and of Teruel, and of Calatayud, were right glad of this, and
the covenant was put in writing, and they sent him the three thousand marks. And
my Cid divided it among his company, and he made them all rich, both knights and
esquires and footmen, so that they said to one another, He who serves a good
Lord, happy man is his dole. But the Moors of Alcocer were full sorry to see him
depart, because he had been to them a kind master and a bountiful; and they said
unto him, Wherever you go, Cid, our prayers will go before you: and they wept
both men and women when my Cid went his way. So the Campeador raised his banner
and departed, and he went down the Salon, and crossed it; and as he crossed the
river they saw good birds, and signs of good fortune. And they of Za and of
Calatayud were well pleased, because he went from them. My Cid rode on till he
came to the knoll above Monte-Real; it is a high hill and strong, and there he
pitched his tents, being safe on all sides. And from thence he did much harm to
the Moors of Medina and of the country round about; and he made Daroca pay
tribute, and Molina also, which is on the other side, and Teruel also, and Celfa
de Canal, and all the country along the river Martin. And the news went to the
King of Zaragoza, and it neither pleased the King nor his people. XIII
XIII
Ever after was that knoll called the Knoll of the Cid. And when the perfect one
had waited a long time for Minaya and saw that he did not come, he removed by
night, and passed by Teruel and pitched his camp in the pine-forest of Tebar.
And from thence he infested the Moors of Zaragoza, insomuch that they held it
best to give him gold and silver and pay him tribute. And when this covenant had
been made, Almudafar, the King of Zaragoza, became greatly his friend, and
received him full honourably into the town. In three weeks time after this came
Alvar Fanez from Castille. Two hundred men of lineage came with him, every one
of whom wore sword girt to his side, and the foot-soldiers in their company were
out of number. When my Cid saw Minaya he rode up to him, and embraced him
without speaking, and kissed his mouth and the eyes in his head. And Minaya told
him all that he had done. And the face of the Campeador brightened, and he gave
thanks to God and said, It will go well with me, Minaya, as long as you live!
God, how joyful was that whole host because Alvar Fanez was returned! for he
brought them greetings from their kinswomen and their brethren, and the fair
comrades whom they had left behind. God, how joyful was my Cid with the fleecy
beard, that Minaya had purchased the thousand masses, and had brought him the
biddings of his wife and daughters! God, what a joyful man was he! XIV
XIV
Now it came to pass that while my Cid was in Zaragoza the days of King Almudafar
were fulfilled: and he left his two sons Zulema and Abenalfange, and they
divided his dominions between them; and Zulema had the kingdom of Zaragoza, and
Abenalfange the kingdom of Denia. And Zulema put his kingdom under my Cid's
protection, and bade all his people obey him even as they would himself. Now
there began to be great enmity between the two brethren, and they made war upon
each other. And King Don Pedro of Aragon, and the Count Don Ramon Berenguer of
Barcelona, helped Abenalfange, and they were enemies to the Cid because he
defended Zulema. And my Cid chose out two hundred horsemen and went out by
night, and fell upon the lands of Alcaniz; and he remained out three days in
this inroad, and brought away great booty. Great was the talk thereof among the
Moors; and they of Monzon and of Huesca were troubled, but they of Zaragoza
rejoiced, because they paid tribute to the Cid, and were safe. And when my Cid
returned to Zaragoza he divided the spoil among his companions, and said to
them, Ye know, my friends, that for all who live by their arms, as we do, it is
not good to remain long in one place. Let us be off again to- morrow. So on the
morrow they moved to the Puerto de Alucant, and from thence they infested Huesca
and Montalban. Ten days were they out upon this inroad; and the news was sent
everywhere how the exile from Castille was handling them, and tidings went to
the King of Denia and to the Count of Barcelona, how my Cid was over-running the
country.
XV
When Don Ramon Berenguer the Count of Barcelona heard this, it troubled him to
the heart, and he held it for a great dishonour, because that part of the land
of the Moors was in his keeping. And he spake boastfully saying, Great wrong
doth that Cid of Bivar offer unto me; he smote my nephew in my own court and
never would make amends for it, and now he ravages the lands which are in my
keeping, and I have never defied him for this nor renounced his friendship; but
since he goes on in this way I must take vengeance. So he and King Abenalfange
gathered together a great power both of Moors and Christians, and went in
pursuit of the Cid, and after three days and two nights they came up with him in
the pine-forest of Tebar, and they came on confidently, thinking to lay hands on
him. Now my Cid was returning with much spoil, and had descended from the Sierra
into the valley when tidings were brought him that Count Don Ramon Berenguer and
the King of Denia were at hand, with a great power, to take away his booty, and
take or slay him. And when the Cid heard this he sent to Don Ramon saying, that
the booty which he had won was none of his, and bidding him let him go on his
way in peace: but the Count made answer, that my Cid should now learn whom he
had dishonoured, and make amends once for all. Then my Cid sent the booty
forward, and bade his knights make ready. They are coming upon us, said he, with
a great power both of Moors and Christians, to take from us the spoils which we
have so hardly won, and without doing battle we cannot be quit of them; for if
we should proceed they would follow till they overtook us: therefore let the
battle be here, and I trust in God that we shall win more honour, and something
to boot. They come down the hill, drest in their hose, with their gay saddles,
and their girths wet; we are with our hose covered and on our Galician
saddles;-a hundred such as we ought to beat their whole company. Before they get
upon the plain ground let us give them the points of our lances; for one whom we
run through, three will jump out of their saddles; and Ramon Berenguer will then
see whom he has overtaken to-day in the pine-forest of Tebar, thinking to
despoil him of the booty which I have won from the enemies of God and of the
faith. XVI
XVI
While my Cid was speaking, his knights had taken their arms, and were ready on
horseback for the charge. Presently they saw the pendants of the Frenchmen
coming down the hill, and when they were nigh the bottom, and had not yet set
foot upon the plain ground, my Cid bade his people charge, which they did with a
right good will, thrusting their spears so stiffly, that by God's good pleasure
not a man whom they encountered but lost his seat. So many were slain and so
many wounded, that the Moors were dismayed forthwith, and began to fly. The
Count's people stood firm a little longer, gathering round their Lord; but my
Cid was in search of him, and when he saw where he was, he made up to him,
clearing the way as he went, and gave him such a strike with his lance that he
felled him down to the ground. When the Frenchmen saw their Lord in this plight
they fled away and left him; and the pursuit lasted three leagues, and would
have been continued farther if the conquerors had not had tired horses. So they
turned back and collected the spoils, which were more than they could carry
away. Thus was Count Ramon Berenguer made prisoner, and my Cid won from him that
day the good sword Colada, which was worth more than a thousand marks of silver.
That night did my Cid and his men make merry, rejoicing over their gains. And
the Count was taken to my Cid's tent, and a good supper was set before him;
nevertheless he would not eat, though my Cid besought him so to do. And on the
morrow my Cid ordered a feast to be made, that he might do pleasure to the
Count, but the Count said that for all Spain he would not eat one mouthful, but
would rather die, since he had been beaten in battle by such a set of ragged
fellows. And Ruydiez said to him, Eat and drink, Count, of this bread and of
this wine, for this is the chance of war; if you do as I say you shall be free;
and if not you will never return again into your own lands. And Don Ramon
answered, Eat you, Don Rodrigo, for your fortune is fair and you deserve it;
take you your pleasure, but leave me to die. And in this mood he continued for
three days, refusing all food. But then my Cid said to him, Take food, Count,
and be sure that I will set you free, you and any two of your knights, and give
you wherewith to return into your own country. And when Don Ramon heard this, he
took comfort and said, If you will indeed do this thing I shall marvel at you as
long as I live. Eat then, said Ruydiez, and I will do it: but mark you, of the
spoil which we have taken from you I will give you nothing; for to that you have
no claim neither by right nor custom, and besides we want it for ourselves,
being banished men, who must live by taking from you and from others as long as
it shall please God. Then was the Count full joyful, being well pleased that
what should be given him was not of the spoils which he had lost; and he called
for water and washed his hands, and chose two of his kinsmen to be set free with
him; the one was named Don Hugo, and the other Guillen Bernalto. And my Cid sate
at the table with them, and said, If you do not eat, Count, you and I shall not
part yet. Never since he was Count did he eat with better will than that day!
And when they had done he said, Now, Cid, if it be your pleasure let us depart.
And my Cid clothed him and his kinsmen well with goodly skins and mantles, and
gave them each a goodly palfrey, with rich caparisons, and he rode out with them
on their way. And when he took leave of the Count he said to him, Now go freely,
and I thank you for what you have left behind; if you wish to pay for it again
let me know, and you shall either have something back in its stead, or leave
what you bring to be added to it. The Count answered, Cid, you jest safely now,
for I have paid you and all your company for this twelvemonths, and shall not be
coming to see you again so soon. Then Count Ramon pricked on more than apace,
and many times looked behind him, fearing that my Cid would repent what he had
done, and send to take him back to prison, which the perfect one would not have
done for the whole world, for never did he do disloyal thing. XVII
XVII
Then he of Bivar returned to Zaragoza, and divided the spoil, which was so great
that none of his men knew how much they had. And the Moors of the town rejoiced
in his good speed, liking him well, because be protected them so well that they
were safe from all harm. And my Cid went out again from Zaragoza, and rode over
the lands of Monzon and Huerta and Onda and Buenar. And King Pedro of Aragon
came out against him, but my Cid took the Castle of Monzon in his sight; and
then he went to Tamarit: and one day as he rode out hunting from thence with
twelve of his knights, he fell in with a hundred and fifty of the King of
Aragon's people, and he fought with them and put them to flight, and took seven
knights prisoners, whom he let go freely. Then he turned towards the seacoast,
and won Xerica and Onda and Almenar, and all the lands of Borriana and Murviedro;
and they in Valencia were greatly dismayed because of the great feats which he
did in the land. And when he had plundered all that country he returned to
Tamarit, where Zulema then was. XVIII
XVIII
Now Zulema had sent for my Cid, and the cause was this. His brother the King of
Denia had taken counsel with Count Ramon Berenguer, and with the Count of
Cardona, and with the brother the Count of Urgel, and with the chiefs of
Balsadron and Remolin and Cartaxes, that they should besiege the Castle of
Almenar, which my Cid had refortified by command of King Zulema. And they came
up against it while my Cid was away, besieging the Castle of Estrada, which is
in the rivers Tiegio and Sege, the which he took by force. And they fought
against it and cut off the water. And when my Cid came to the King at Tamarit,
the King asked him to go and fight with the host which besieged Almenar; but my
Cid said it would be better to give something to King Abenalfange that he should
break up the siege and depart; for they were too great a power to do battle
with, being as many in number as the sands on the sea-shore. And the King did as
he counselled him, and sent to his brother King Abenalfange, and to the chiefs
who were with him, to propose this accord, and they would not. Then my Cid,
seeing that they would not depart for fair means, armed his people, and fell
upon them. That was a hard battle and well fought on both sides, and much blood
was shed, for many good knights on either party were in the field; howbeit he of
good fortune won the day at last, he who never was conquered. King Abenalfange
and Count Ramon and most of the others fled, and my Cid followed, smiting and
slaying for three leagues; and many good Christian knights were made prisoners.
Ruydiez returned with great honour and much spoil, and gave all his prisoners to
King Zulema, who kept them eight days, and then my Cid begged their liberty and
set them free. And he and the King returned to Zaragoza, and the people came out
to meet them, with great joy, and shouts of welcome. And the King honoured my
Cid greatly, and gave him power in all his dominions. XIX
XIX
At this time it came to pass that Almofalez, a Moor of Andalusia, rose up with
the Castle of Rueda, which was held for King Don Alfonso. And because he held
prisoner there the brother of Adefir, another Moor, Adefir sent to the King of
Castille, beseeching him to come to succour him, and recover the Castle. And the
King sent the Infante Don Ramiro his cousin, and the Infante Don Sancho, son to
the King of Navarre, and Count Don Gonzalo Salvadores, and Count Don Nuno
Alvarez, and many other knights with them; and they came to the Castle, and
Almofalez said he would not open the gates to them, but if the King came he
would open to him. And when King Don Alfonso heard this, incontinently he came
to Rueda. And Almofalez besought him to enter to a feast which he had prepared;
howbeit the King would not go in, neither would his people have permitted him so
to have risked his person. But the Infante Don Sancho entered, and Don Nuno, and
Don Gonzalo, and fifteen other knights; and as soon as they were within the
gate, the Moors threw down great stones upon them and killed them all. This was
the end of the good Count Don Gonzalo Salvadores, who was so good a knight in
battle that he was called He of the Four Hands. The bodies were ransomed, seeing
that there was no remedy, the Castle being so strong, and Don Gonzalo was buried
in the Monastery of Ona, according as he had appointed in his will; and the
Infante Don Sancho with his forefathers the Kings of Navarre, in the royal
Monastery of Naxara.
XX
Greatly was King Don Alfonso troubled at this villainy, and he sent for the Cid,
who was in those parts; and the Cid came to him with a great company. And the
King told him the great treason which had been committed, and took the Cid into
his favour, and said unto him that he might return with him into Castille. My
Cid thanked him for his bounty, but he said he never would accept his favour
unless the King granted what he should request; and the King bade him make his
demand. And my Cid demanded, that when any hidalgo should be banished, in time
to come, he should have the thirty days, which were his right, allowed him, and
not nine only, as had been his case; and that neither hidalgo nor citizen should
be proceeded against till they had been fairly and lawfully heard; also, that
the King should not go against the privileges and charters and good customs of
any town or other place, nor impose taxes upon them against their right; and if
he did, that it should be lawful for the land to rise against him, till he had
amended the misdeed. And to all this the King accorded, and said to my Cid that
he should go back into Castille with him; but my Cid said he would not go into
Castille till he had won that castle of Rueda, and delivered the villainous
Moors thereof into his hands, that he might do justice upon them. So the King
thanked him greatly, and returned into Castille, and my Cid remained before the
Castle of Rueda. And he lay before it so long, and beset it so close, that the
food of the Moors failed, and they had no strength to defend themselves; and
they would willingly have yielded the castle, so they might have been permitted
to leave it and go whither they would; but he would have their bodies, to
deliver them up to the King. When they saw that it must be so, great part of
them came out, and yielded themselves prisoners; and then my Cid stormed the
Castle, and took Almofalez and they who held with him, so that none escaped; and
he sent him and his accomplices in the treason to the King. And the King was
right glad when they were brought before him, and he did great justice upon
them, and sent to thank my Cid for having avenged him. XXI
XXI
After my Cid had done this good service to King Don Alfonso, he and King Zulema
of Zaragoza entered Aragon, slaying, and burning, and plundering before them,
and they returned to the Castle of Monzon with great booty. Then the Cid went
into King Abenalfange's country, and did much mischief there; and he got among
the mountains of Moriella, and beat down every thing before him, and destroyed
the Castle of Moriella. And King Zulema sent to bid him build up the ruined
Castle of Alcala, which is upon Moriella; and the Cid did so. But King
Abenalfange being sorely grieved hereat, sent to King Pedro of Aragon, and
besought him to come and help him against the Campeador. And the King of Aragon
gathered together a great host in his anger, and he and the King of Denia came
against my Cid, and they halted that night upon the banks of the Ebro; and King
Don Pedro sent letters to the Cid, bidding him leave the castle which he was
then edifying. My Cid made answer, that if the King chose to pass that way in
peace, he would let him pass, and show him any service in his power. And when
the King of Aragon saw that he would not forsake the work, he marched against
him, and attacked him. Then was there a brave battle, and many were slain; but
my Cid won the day, and King Abenalfange fled, and King Don Pedro was taken
prisoner, and many of his Counts and knights with him. My Cid returned to
Zaragoza with this great honour, taking his prisoners with him; and he set them
all freely at liberty, and having tarried in Zaragoza a few days, set forth for
Castille, with great riches and full of honours. XXII
XXII
Having done all these things in his banishment, my Cid returned to Castille, and
the King received him well, and gave him the Castle of Duenas, and of Orcejon,
and Ybia, and Campo, and Gana, and Berviesca, and Berlanga, with all their
districts. And he gave him privileges with leaden seals appendant, and confirmed
with his own hand, that whatever castles, towns, and places, he might win from
the Moors, or from any one else, should be his own, quit and free for ever, both
for him and for his descendants. Thus was my Cid received into the King's favour,
and he abode with him long time, doing him great services, as his Lord.
BOOK FIVE
I
In these days King Yahia reigned in Toledo, the grandson of King Alimaymon, who
had been the friend of King Don Alfonso; for Alimaymon was dead, and his son
Hicem also. Now Yahia was a bad King, and one who walked not in the ways of his
fathers. Insolent he was towards the elders, and cruel towards his people: and
his yoke was so heavy that all men desired to see his death, because there was
no good in him. And the people seeing that he did not protect them, and that
their lands were ravaged sorely, went to him and said, Stand up, Sir, for thy
people and thy country, else we must look for some other Lord who will defend
us. But he was of such lewd customs that he gave no heed to their words. And
when they knew that there was no hope of him, the Moors sent to the King of
Badajoz, inviting him to come and be their protector, saying that they would
deliver the city into his hands in spite of Yahia. And the Muzarabes who dwelt
in the city sent to King Don Alfonso, exhorting him to win Toledo, which he
might well do, now that he was no longer bound by his oath. Then both Kings
came, thinking to have the city: and the King of Badajoz came first, and the
gates were opened to him in despite of Yahia. Howbeit King Don Alfonso speedily
arrived, and the King of Badajoz, seeing that he could not maintain Toledo
against him, retreated, and King Don Alfonso pursued him into his own dominions
and gave orders that he should be attacked along the whole of his border, and
did not leave him till he had plainly submitted. In this manner was Yahia
delivered from the King of Badajoz; but King Don Alfonso knowing how that city
was to be taken, contented himself with overrunning the country, and despoiling
it, even to the walls of the city; and thus he did for four years, so that he
was master of the land.
II
In all this time did my Cid do good service to King Don Alfonso. And in these
days King Don Alfonso fought at Consuegra with King Abenalfange of Denia, and in
this battle the Christians were defeated, and Diego Rodriguez, the son of my
Cid, was slain. Greatly was his death lamented by the Christians, for he was a
youth of great hope, and one who was beginning to tread in the steps of his
father. And King Don Alfonso was fain to retire into the Castle of that town.
And Abenalfange gathered together the greatest power of the Moors that he could,
and entered the land of the Christians, and past the mountains, and came even to
Medina del Campo, and there Alvar Fanez Minaya met him. Minaya had but five and
twenty hundred horse with him, and of the Moors there were fifteen thousand;
nevertheless by God's blessing he prevailed against them. And by the virtue of
God Alvar Fanez gave King Abenalfange a cruel wound in the face, so that he fled
away. Great honour did Minaya win for this victory. III
III
Now had King Don Alfonso for many years cut down the bread and the wine and the
fruits in all the country round about Toledo, and he made ready to go against
the city. The tidings of this great enterprise spread far and wide, and
adventurers came from all parts to be present, not only they of Castille and
Leon, Asturias and Nagera, Galicia and Portugal, but King Sancho Ramirez of
Aragon came also, with the flower of Aragon and Navarre and Catalonia, and
Franks and Germans and Italians, and men of other countries, to bear their part
in so great and catholic a war. And the King entertained them well, being full
bountiful, insomuch that he was called He of the Open Hand. Never had so goodly
a force of Christians been assembled in Spain, nor so great an enterprise
attempted, since the coming of the Moors. And of this army was my Cid the
leader. So soon as the winter was over they began their march. And when they
came to a ford of the Tagus, behold the river was swoln, and the best horsemen
feared to try the passage. Now there was a holy man in the camp, by name Lesmes,
who was a monk of St. Benedict's; and he being mounted upon an ass rode first
into the ford, and passed safely through the flood; and all who beheld him held
it for a great miracle.
IV
Greatly to be blamed are they who lived in those days for not handing down to
everlasting remembrance the worthy feats which were achieved at this siege. For
not only was Toledo a strong city, both by nature and in its walls and towers,
but the flower of the chivalry of all Spain and of all Christendom was there
assembled, and the Moors of Spain also, knowing that this was, as it were, the
heart of their empire, did all they could to defend it: greatly to be blamed are
they who neglected to transmit to us the memory of their deeds, and greatly have
they wronged the worthy knights whose exploits should else have gained for them
a never-dying renown. Nothing more, owing to their default, can we say of this
so notable a siege, than that when Don Cabrian, the Bishop of Leon, was
earnestly engaged in prayer for the success of the Christian arms, the glorious
St. Isidro appeared unto him, and certified that in fifteen days the city should
be surrendered; and even so it came to pass, for the gates were opened to the
King on Thursday the twenty-fifth of May, in the year of the aera 1123, which is
the year of Christ 1085. The first Christian banner which entered the city was
the banner of my Cid, and my Cid was the first Christian Alcayde of Toledo. Of
the terms granted unto the Moors, and how they were set aside for the honour of
the Catholic faith, and of the cunning of the Jews who dwelt in the city, and
how the Romish ritual was introduced therein, this is not the place to speak;
all these things are written in the Chronicles of the Kings of Spain.
V
Now, Yahia, when he saw that he could by no means hold Toledo, because on the
one hand the Moors would give it to the King of Badajoz, and on the other King
Don Alfonso warred against it, he made a covenant with King Don Alfonso to yield
the city to him, if he with the help of Alvar Fanez would put him in possession
of Valencia, which had belonged unto Hicem and Alimaymon, his fathers, but which
the Guazil Abdalla Azis held now as his own, calling himself King thereof. And
he covenanted that King Don Alfonso should also put into his hand Santa Maria de
Albarrazin, and the kingdom of Denia; and the King assented to the covenant,
thinking that in this manner the land would be all his own. Yahia therefore sent
Abenfarat, who was his cousin, to Valencia, to spy out what the Guazil would do,
whether he would peaceably deliver up the kingdom unto him, or whether he would
oppose his coming, which he greatly doubted, because it was rumoured that he was
about to give his daughter in marriage to the King of Zaragoza. Abenfarat went
his way, and took up his abode in the house of a Moor who was called Abenlupo;
and while he sojourned there the marriage of the Guazil's daughter was effected,
and the Guazil himself fell sick and died. Then Abenfarat tarried yet awhile to
see what would be the issue, for the men of Valencia were greatly troubled
because of the death of their King. He left two sons, between whom there was no
brotherly love during his life, and now that he was dead there was less. And
they divided between them all that he had left, even the least thing did they
divide, each being covetous to possess all that he could; and they made two
factions in the town, each striving to possess himself of the power therein. But
the men of Valencia who were not engaged on their side, and they also who held
the castles round about, they were greatly troubled because of this strife which
was between them; and they also were divided between two opinions, they who were
of the one wishing to give the kingdom to the King of Zaragoza, and they who
were of the other to yield themselves unto Yahia the grandson of Alimaymon,
because of the covenant which King Don Alfonso had made with him. When Abenfarat
knew these things he returned unto Yahia, and told him all even as it was; and
Yahia saw that he should have the city, because of the discord which was
therein.
VI
Then Yahia gathered together all his people, knights, and cross-bow men, and
foot-soldiers, and they of his board, and the officers of his household which
are the eunuchs; and he set forward on the way towards Valencia, and Alvar Fanez
and his body of Christians with him. And he sent to the townsmen greeting them,
and saying that he was coming to dwell among them and to be their King, and that
he would deal bountifully by them; and that he should wait awhile in the town
which was called Sera. The chief men of the town took counsel together what they
should do, and at length they agreed to receive him for their Lord; and this
they did more in fear of King Don Alfonso and of Alvar Fanez than for any love
towards him. This answer they sent him by Aboeza the Alcayde. Now Aboeza would
fain have departed from Valencia when the Guazil Abdalla Azis died, because of
the strife which was in the city, and he thought to betake himself to his own
Castle of Monviedro and dwell there, away from the troubles which were to come.
Upon this purpose he took counsel with his friend Mahomed Abenhayen the Scribe,
for there was great love between them; and when the Scribe heard what he
purposed to do he was grieved thereat, and represented unto him that it was not
fitting for him to forsake the city at such a time, so that Aboeza was
persuaded. And they twain covenanted one to the other, to love and defend each
other against all the men in the world, and to help each other with their
persons and possessions; and Aboeza sent trusty men of his kinsfolk and friends
to keep the Castles of Monviedro and Castro and Santa Cruz, and other Castles
which were in his possession, and he himself abode in Valencia. And now he went
out to Yahia to give unto him the keys of the city, and the good men of the city
went out with him, and they made obeisance to him and promised to serve him
loyally. Then Yahia, the grandson of Alimaymon, set forth with all his company
from Sera, and all the people of Valencia, high and low, went out to meet him
with great rejoicings. And Aboeza adorned the Alcazar right nobly, that Yahia
and his women and they of his company might lodge within. The most honourable of
his knights took up their lodging in the town, and the cross-bow men and others
of low degree lodged round about the Alcazar, and in certain dwellings which
were between it and the Mosque, and Alvar Fanez and the Christians who were with
him, in the village which was called Ruzaf. VII
VII
Yahia being now King in Valencia, made Aboeza his Guazil, and gave him authority
throughout all his kingdom. Nevertheless he bore displeasure against him in his
heart, because he had served Abdalla Azis; and on his part also Aboeza secretly
feared the King, and knew not whether it were better to depart from him, or not;
howbeit he thought it best to remain and serve him right loyally and well, that
so he might win his good will; and when the-King perceived this, his anger
abated and was clean put out of mind. And he made Aboeza his favorite, and made
a vow unto him and confirmed it by a writing, that he would never take away his
favour from him, nor change him for another, nor do any thing in his dominions
without him. With this was Aboeza satisfied, and the fear which he felt in his
heart was removed. And they who held the castles brought great gifts to Yahia,
with much humility and reverence, such as the Moors know how to put on. This
they did to set his heart at rest, that he might confide in them, and send away
Alvar Fanez into his own country, and not keep him and his people at so great a
charge, for it cost them daily six hundred maravedis, and the King had no
treasure in Valencia, neither was he so rich that he could support his own
company and supply this payment; and for this reason the Moors complained of the
great cost. But on the other hand, Yahia feared that if he should send away
Alvar Fanez, the Moors would rise against him; and to maintain him he laid a
great tax upon the city and its district, saying that it was for barley. This
tax they levied upon the rich as well as the poor, and upon the great as well as
the little, which they held to be a great evil and breach of their privileges,
and thought that by his fault Valencia would be lost, even as Toledo had been.
This tribute so sorely aggrieved the people, that it became as it were a bye
word in the city, Give the barley. They say there was a great mastiff, with whom
they killed beef in the shambles, who, whenever he heard, 'Give the barley,'
began to bark and growl: upon which a Trobador said, Thanks be to God, we have
many in the town who are like the mastiff. VIII
VIII
When they who held the Castles sent presents to King Yahia, there was one among
them, by name Abenmazot, who held Xativa, who neither sent him gifts, nor came
to offer obedience. And the King sent to bid him come before him. But then
Abenmazot sent a messenger with letters and full rich presents, saying that he
could by no means come himself, and this not from any feigning, and that he
would always do him service with a true good will. And he besought him as his
Lord to let him remain in Xativa, and he would give him the rents thereof; but
if it was his pleasure to appoint some other in his stead, he besought that he
would then give him something for himself and his company to subsist upon,
seeing that he desired nothing but the King's favour to be well with him. Then
the King took counsel with Aboeza the Guazil, and the Guazil advised him to do
unto Abenmazot even as he had requested, and let him keep Xativa; and to send
away Alvar Fanez because of the great charge it was to maintain him, and to live
in peace, and put his kingdom in order; in all which he advised him like a good
counsellor and a true. But the King would not give heed to him; instead thereof
he communicated his counsel to the two sons of Abdalla Azis who had submitted
unto him, and whom he had taken into his favour, and they told him that Aboeza
had advised him ill, and that it behoved him to lead out his host and bring
Abenmazot to obedience. And the King believed them and went out and besieged
Xativa. And the first day he entered the lower part of the town, but Abenmazot
retired to the Alcazar and the fortresses, and defended the upper part; and the
King besieged him there for four months, attacking him every day, till food
began to fail both in the army of the King and in the town. And they of Valencia
could not supply what was to be paid to Alvar Fanez and his company, much less
what the King wanted. Then the King understood that he had been ill advised, and
for this reason he condemned one of the sons of Abdalla Azis to pay Alvar Fanez
for thirty days; and he seized a Jew who was one of his Almoxarifes in Valencia,
that is to say, one who collected the taxes, and took from him all that he had,
because he had advised him ill, and while this lasted the people of Valencia had
some respite.
IX
When Abenmazot saw that the King was bent upon destroying him, and that every
day he prest him more and more, he sent to Abenalfange who was King of Denia and
Tortosa, saying, that if he would come and help him, he would make him Lord of
Xativa and of all his other Castles, and would be at his mercy; and this he did
to escape from the hands of Yahia. When Abenalfange heard this it pleased him
well, and he sent one of his Alcaydes, who was called the Left- handed, to enter
the Alcazar, and help to defend it till he could collect a company of Christians
who might deal with Alvar Fanez. So that Left-handed one entered the Alcazar
with his company, and the Lord of the Castle which was called Almenar, was
already there to help Abenmazot, and encourage him that he should not submit.
Then Abenalfange gathered together all his host and his cavalry, and brought
with him Giralte the Roman, with a company of French knights, and came towards
Xativa, as a hungry lion goes against a sheep, or like the coming of a flood in
its hour; so that Yahia was dismayed at the tidings of his approach, and fled as
fast as he could to the Isle of Xucar, and though that Isle was so near, he
thought he had done a great thing; and from thence he went to Valencia, holding
himself greatly dishonoured. Then Abenalfange had Xativa and all its Castles, so
that it was all one kingdom as far as Denia. And he took Abenmazot with all his
women and his household and all that he had, to Denia, and gave him possessions
there, and did him much honour. And when it was seen that King Yahia was thus
dishonoured, and that Alvar Fanez had not helped him as had been looked for,
they who held the Castles lost all fear of him, so that their hearts were
changed towards him, as well they of Valencia as of the other Castles, and they
said that they would rather belong to Abenalfange than to him, because the town
could not bear the charge of the Christians, nor the oppressions which they
suffered because of them.
X
Abenalfange abode some days in Xativa, and then moved on towards Valencia,
thinking to win the city; for he knew how greatly the people were oppressed
because of the Christians, and that they could not bear it, and that there was
no love between them and their Lord. And he passed by a place which was an
oratory of the Moors in their festivals, which they call in Arabic Axera, or
Araxea; and he halted near Valencia, so that they in the town might see him; and
he went round about the town, to the right and to the left, wheresoever he
would. The King of Valencia with his knights was near the wall watching him, and
Alvar Fanez and his company were in readiness lest the French should defy them.
And after Abenalfange had staid there awhile he drew off and went his way to
Tortosa. And Yahia was perplexed with Alvar Fanez, and sought for means to pay
him; and he threw the two sons of Abdalla Azis into prison, and many other good
men of the town also, and took from them great riches. Then he made a covenant
with Alvar Fanez, that he should remain with him, and gave him great
possessions. And when the Moors saw that Alvar Fanez was in such power, all the
ruffians and lewd livers in the town flocked unto him, so that Valencia was in
the hands of him and his followers; and the Moors being desperate of remedy
deserted the town, and went whither they could, setting at nought their
inheritances, for no man was safe, neither in his goods nor person. Then Alvar
Fanez made an inroad into the lands of Abenalfange, and overran the lands of
Buriana, and other parts; and there went with him a great company of those
Moorish desperadoes who had joined him, and of other Moorish Almogavares, and
they stormed towns and castles, and slew many Moors, and brought away flocks and
herds both of cattle and of brood mares, and much gold and silver, and store of
wearing apparel, all which they sold in Valencia.
XI
Now when one of the sons of Abdalla Azis was loosed from prison, he placed his
love upon Alvar Fanez and gave him goodly gifts, and upon Aboeza the King's
Guazil, and upon a Jew who was a messenger from King Don Alfonso. And they all
sent to King Don Alfonso to beseech him that he would take the son of Abdalla
Azis and all that he had under his protection, so that Yahia might do no evil
unto him, neither take by force from him anything that was his; and for this
protection he promised to give the King thirty thousand maravedis yearly. This
request King Don Alfonso granted, and incontinently he took him under his
protection, and sent to the King of Valencia to request that he would do him no
wrong. Therefore the son of Abdalla Azis was from that time held in more honour
because of the love of King Don Alfonso; nevertheless he was still kept under a
guard in his own house, that he should not issue forth. And because of this
confinement not thinking himself safe, he made a hole through the wall and got
out by night in woman's apparel, and lay hid all the next day in a garden, and
on the following night mounted on horseback and rode to Monviedro. When the
Guazil knew this he took his son and his uncle as sureties for him for the
thirty thousand maravedis, which the Jew was now come to receive for King Don
Alfonso. And they went to Monviedro to him, and communed with him, and accorded
with him that he should pay the one-half immediately, and whenever he returned
to Valencia and was safe there in possession of all his rents and inheritances,
that then he should pay the remainder: so he paid the fifteen thousand forthwith
in silver, and in rings of gold, and in cloth, and in strings of pearls, and the
Jew returned therewith to King Don Alfonso. At this time his brother was
released from prison by desire of the King of Zaragoza, and he went unto him;
and many of the rich men of the city also betook themselves to Monviedro,
because they were not secure neither in their possessions nor in their bodies.
XII
XII
In these days the Almoravides arose in Barbary. The rise of this people and all
that they did in Spain are not for me to relate in this place. Suffice it to
say, that King Don Alfonso being in great danger, sent for Alvar Fanez and all
his company; and that he had so much to do for himself that he took no thought
for Valencia. And when they who had the keeping of Yahia's Castles saw this they
rose against him, so that few remained unto him, and they of his vassals in whom
he put the most trust proved false, so that the heart of the King of Denia and
Tortosa grew, and he thought to win Valencia. The chief persons of the town also
sent unto him, saying that if he would come they would give the city into his
hands. So he gathered together his host, and a company of French also, and sent
them forward under the command of his uncle, saying that he would follow and
join them on a certain day. But they went forward, and Yahia thinking that if he
could conquer them he should be secure, went out and fought against them; and he
was defeated and lost a great part of his people and of his arms, and returned
into the city with great loss. When Abenalfange, who was a day's journey off,
heard this, he marched all night, and came before Valencia. And King Yahia knew
not what to do, and was minded to yield up the town. And he took counsel with
his people, and they advised him to send for help to King Don Alfonso, and also
to the King of Zaragoza, and he did accordingly. And an Arrayaz of Cuenca, whose
name was Abencano, who was a native of Valencia, went to Zaragoza, and told the
King that if he would go thither he would deliver the city into his hands, for
it appertained unto him rather than to Abenalfange. XIII
XIII
And in those days my Cid gathered together a great force, and went to the
borders of Aragon, and crost the Douro, and lodged that night in Fresno. From
thence he went to Calamocha, where he kept Whitsuntide. While he lay there the
King of Albarrazin, being in great fear of him, sent to him requesting that they
might meet. And when they saw each other they established great love between
them, and the King from that day became tributary to the Cid. Then the Cid went
to Zaragoza, where he was full honourably received. And when Abencano came to
Zaragoza inviting King Almescahen to go and take Valencia, and King Yahia sent
also to beg succour at his hands, the King asked the Cid to go with him, and
gave him whatever he demanded. So greatly did this King desire to have Valencia,
that he looked not whether his force was great or little, nor whether that of
the Cid was greater than his own, but went on as fast as he could. When the King
of Denia heard that he was coming and the Cid with him, he durst not abide them.
And he thought that the King of Zaragoza by the Cid's help would win the city,
and that he should remain with the labour he had undergone, and the cost. Then
he placed his love upon King Yahia, and sent him all the food he had, and
besought him to help him, saying that he would supply him with whatever he
needed. King Yahia was well pleased with this, though he well understood the
reason, and firm writings were made to this effect, and then Abenalfange went to
Tortosa. XIV
XIV
And when the King of Zaragoza and the Cid drew nigh unto Valencia, Yahia went
out to welcome them, and thanked them greatly for coming to his assistance; and
he lodged them in the great garden, which was called the Garden of Villa Nueva,
and honoured them greatly and sent them great presents: and he invited them
afterwards to come with their honourable men and be his guests in the Alcazar.
But the King of Zaragoza all this while had his eye upon the town, thinking that
it would be given up to him as Abencano had promised; but he saw no signs of
this, neither knew he how he could win it. Moreover Yahia had placed his love
upon the Cid, and had sent him fun noble gifts when he was upon the road, in
secret, so that the King of Zaragoza knew not thereof. And the King of Zaragoza
asked counsel of the Cid how he might get Valencia into his hands, and besought
the Cid to help him. But the Cid made answer, how could that be, seeing that
Yahia had received it from the hands of King Don Alfonso, who had given it unto
him that he might dwell therein. If indeed King Don Alfonso should give it to
the King of Zaragoza, then might the King win it, and he would help him so to
do; otherwise he must be against him. When the King heard this he perceived how
the Cid stood in this matter: and he left an Alcayde with a body of knights to
assist King Yahia, and also to see if he could win the town: and he himself
returned to Zaragoza.
XV
Then the Cid went to besiege the Castle called Xerica, by advice of the King of
Zaragoza, that he might have a frontier against Monviedro. This he did because,
when the King came to relieve Valencia, Aboeza had covenanted to give up
Monviedro unto him, the which he had not done; and the King thought that if he
made war upon these Castles they must either yield unto him, or be at his mercy,
because they did not belong to the King of Denia. But when Aboeza knew this he
sent to Abenalfange the King of Denia, saying that he would give him the Castle;
and the King of Denia incontinently came and took possession of it, and Aboeza
became his vassal. When the Cid saw this he understood that Valencia must needs
be lost, and thought in his heart that he could win the city for himself, and
keep it. Then sent he letters to King Don Alfonso, in which he besought him of
his mercy not to think it ill that the people who were with him should remain
with him, for he would do God service, and maintain them at the cost of the
Moors, and whensoever the King stood in need of their service, he and they would
go unto him and serve him freely; and at other times they would make war upon
the Moors, and break their power, so that the King might win the land. Well was
King Don Alfonso pleased at this, and he sent to say that they who were in the
Cid's company might remain with him, and that as many as would might go join
him. And my Cid went to the King to commune with him, and while my Cid was with
him, Don Ramon Berenguer, Lord of Barcelona, came to Zaragoza; and the King gave
him great gifts, that he might not place his love upon any other for want; for
the King had now put away his love from the Cid, thinking that because of him he
had lost Valencia. And presently he sent a force to besiege Valencia under Don
Ramon Berenguer; and he had two Bastilles built, one in Liria, which King Yahia
had given him when he came to relieve him, and the other in Juballa, and he
thought to build another on the side of Albuhera, so that none might enter into
the city, neither go out from it. And he re-edified the Castle of Cebolla, that
the Count might retire thither if it should be needful; and every day the Count
attacked the city, and King Yahia defended himself, looking for the coming of
the Cid to help him, according to the covenant which was between them. XVI
XVI
When the Cid returned from Castille and knew that Valencia was besieged by the
French, he went to Tares, which is near Monviedro, and encamped there with his
people, who were many in number. And when the Count knew that the Cid was so
near, he feared him, holding him to be his enemy. And the Cid sent to him to bid
him move from that place and raise the siege of Valencia. The Count took counsel
with his knights, and they said that they would rather give battle to the Cid.
Howbeit the Cid had no wish to fight with them, because the Count was related to
King Don Alfonso, and moreover he had defeated him and made him prisoner
heretofore: so he sent a second time, bidding him depart. And the Count seeing
that he could not abide there in the Cid's despite, broke up the siege and went
his way by Requena, for he would not pass through Zaragoza. Then the Cid went to
Valencia, and King Yahia received him full honourably, and made a covenant with
him to give him weekly four thousand maravedis of silver, and he on his part was
to reduce the Castles to his obedience, so that they should pay the same rents
unto him as had been paid unto the former Kings of Valencia; and that the Cid
should protect him against all men, Moors or Christians, and have his home in
Valencia, and bring all his booty there to be sold, and that he should have his
granaries there. This covenant was confirmed in writing, so that they were
secure on one side and on the other. And my Cid sent to all those who held the
Castles, commanding them to pay their rents to the King of Valencia as they had
done aforetime, and they all obeyed his command, every one striving to have his
love. XVII
XVII
When the Cid had thus set the land in order he went against the King of Denia,
and warred against Denia and against Xativa, and he abode there all the winter,
doing great hurt, insomuch that there did not remain a wall standing from
Orihuela to Xativa, for he laid every thing waste; and all his booty and his
prisoners he sold in Valencia. Then he went towards Tortosa, destroying every
thing as he went; and he pitched his camp near unto the city of Tortosa, in a
place which in Arabic is called Maurelet, and he cut down every thing before
him, orchards and vines and corn. When King Abenalfange saw that the land was
thus destroyed, and that neither bread, nor wine, nor flocks would be left him,
he sent to Count Ramon Berenguer, beseeching him to gather together a great
force, and drive the Cid out of the land, for which service he would give him
whatever he might stand in need of. And the Count, thinking now to be revenged
of the Cid for his former defeat, and because he had taken from him the rents
which he used to receive from the land of Valencia, took what the King gave him,
and assembled a great host of the Christians. This was so great a power when the
Moors had joined, that they surely thought the Cid would fly before them; for
the Moors held that these Frenchmen were the best knights in the world, and the
best appointed, and they who could bear the most in battle. When the Cid knew
that they came resolved to fight him, he doubted that he could not give them
battle because of their great numbers, and sought how he might wisely disperse
them. And he got among the mountain valleys, whereunto the entrance was by a
narrow strait, and there he planted his barriers, and guarded them well that the
Frenchmen might not enter. The King of Zaragoza sent to tell him to be upon his
guard, for Count Ramon Berenguer would without doubt attack him: and the Cid
returned for answer, Let him come. On the morrow the Count came nearer, and
encamped a league off, in sight of him, and when it was night he sent his spies
to view the camp of Ruydiez the Cid. The next day he sent to bid him come out
and fight, and the Cid answered, That he did not want to fight nor to have any
strife with him, but to pass on with his people. And they drew nearer and
invited him to come out, and defied him, saying that he feared to meet them in
the field; but he set nothing by all this. They thought he did it because of his
weakness, and that he was afraid of them: but what he did was to wear out their
patience. XVIII
XVIII
Then the Count sent a letter to the Cid after this fashion: I Count Don Ramon
Berenguer of Barcelona, and all my vassals with me, say unto thee, Ruydiez, that
we have seen thy letter to King Almescahen of Zaragoza, which thou toldest him
to show unto us, that we might have the more cause of quarrel against thee.
Before this thou hast done great displeasure unto us, so that we ought at all
times to bear ill will against thee. And now while thou hast our goods in thy
possession as booty, thou sendest thy letter to King Almescahen, saying that we
are like our wives. God give us means to show thee that we are not such. And
thou saidst unto him, that before we could be with thee thou wouldst come to us;
now we will not alight from our horses till we have taken vengeance on thee, and
seen what sort of Gods these mountain crows and daws are, in whom thou puttest
thy trust to fight with us; whereas we believe in one God alone, who will give
us vengeance against thee. Of a truth, to-morrow morning we will be with thee,
and if thou wilt leave the mountain and come out to us in the plain, then wilt
thou be, as they call thee, Rodrigo the Campeador. But if thou wilt not do this,
thou wilt then be what according to the custom of Castille is called alevoso,
and bauzador according to the custom of France; that is to say, a false traitor.
And if thou wilt not come down from the mountain it shall not avail thee, for we
will not depart from hence till we have thee in our hands, either dead or alive,
and we will deal with thee as thou hast done by us, and God in his mercy now
take vengeance upon thee for his churches which thou hast destroyed. XIX
XIX
When the Cid had read this letter he wrote another in reply after this manner: I
Ruydiez and my vassals: God save you Count! I have seen your letter in which you
tell me that I sent one to King Almescahen of Zaragoza speaking contumeliously
of you and of all your vassals; and true it is that I did so speak, and I will
tell you for what reason. When you were with him you spake contumeliously of me
before him, saying of me the worst you could, and affirming that I did not dare
enter the lands of Abenalfange for fear of you. Moreover Ramon de Bajaran, and
other of your knights who were with him, spake ill of me and of my vassals
before King Don Alfonso of Castille, and you also after this went to King Don
Alfonso, and said that you would have fought with me, and driven me out of the
lands of Abenalfange, but that I was dismayed, and did not dare do battle with
you; and you said unto him, that if it had not been for the love of him, you
would not have suffered me to be one day in the land. Now then I say that I
thank you because you no longer let me alone for the love of him. Come! here I
am; this is the plainest ground among these mountains, and I am ready to receive
you. But I know you dare not come, for Moors and Christians know that I
conquered you once, and took you and your vassals, and took from ye all that ye
had with ye: and if ye come now ye shall receive the same payment at my hands as
heretofore. As for what thou sayest that I am a false traitor, thou lyest, and
art a false traitor thyself.
XX
Greatly was the Count enraged when he read this letter, and he took counsel with
his vassals, and in the night time took possession of the mountain above the
camp of the Cid, thinking that by this means he might conquer him. On the morrow
the Cid sent away certain of his company as if they were flying, and bade them
go by such ways that the French might see them, and instructed them what to say
when they should be taken. When the French saw them, they pursued and took them,
and carried them before the Count, and he asked of them what the Cid would do.
Then made they answer that he meant to fly, and had only remained that day to
put his things in order for flight, and as soon as night came he would make his
escape by way of the mountain. Moreover they said that the Cid did not think
Count Ramon had it so much at heart to give him battle, or he would not have
awaited till his coming; and they counselled the Count to send and take
possession of the passes by which he meant to escape, for so he might easily
take him. Then the Frenchmen divided their host into four parts, and sent them
to guard the passes and the Count himself remained with one part at the entrance
of the straits. The Cid was ready with all his company, and he had sent the
Moors who were with him forward to the passes whither his men had directed the
Frenchmen, and they lay in ambush there; and when the Frenchmen were in the
strong places, and had begun to ascend, little by little, as they could, they
rose upon them from the ambush and slew many, and took others of the best, and
among the prisoners was Guirabent, the brother of Giralte the Roman, who was
wounded in the face. And the Cid went out and attacked the Count, and the battle
was a hard one; the Count was beaten from his horse, nevertheless his men
remounted him, and he bade them stand to it bravely, and the battle lasted long
time; but at the end, he who was never conquered won the day. And the Cid took a
good thousand prisoners; among them was Don Bernalte de Tamaris, and Giralte the
Roman, and Ricarte Guillen. And he put them all in irons, and reproached them
saying, that he well knew what his chivalry was, and his hardihood, and that he
should thus beat them all down; and he said to them that he was in God's
service, taking vengeance for the ills which the Moors had done unto the
Christians, and had done them no wrong; but they being envious of him, had come
to help the Moors, therefore God had helped him, because he was in his service.
And he took their tents, and their horses, and their arms, which were many and
good; and much gold and silver, and fine linen, and all that they had, so that
he and all his company were rich men with the spoils. And when Count Ramon heard
in his flight that the Cid had taken all his chief captains, and that well nigh
all his power was either slain or taken, he thought it best to come unto the Cid
and trust unto his mercy, and he came full humbly and put himself into his
hands. And the Cid received him full well and honoured him greatly, and let him
go into his own country. And the Count offered a price for the prisoners which
was a full great ransom, and moreover the swords precious above all others,
which were made in other times. Bountiful was the Cid when he received this
ransom, and great part of it he returned unto them again, and showed them great
courtesy, and they did homage to him never to come against him with any man in
the world. XXI
XXI
When Abenalfange the King of Denia and Tortosa heard this, he was so sorely
grieved that he fell sick and died. He left one son who was a little one, and
the sons of Buxar were his guardians. One of these held Tortosa for the child,
and the other held Xativa, and one who was their cousin held Denia. And they
knowing that they could neither live in peace, nor yet have strength for war,
unless they could have the love of the Cid, sent humbly to say unto him that if
he would do no hurt to their lands they would do whatever he pleased, and pay
him yearly what he should think good. And the Cid demanded of them fifty
thousand maravedis of silver, every year: and the covenant was made between
them, and the whole country from Tortosa to Orihuela was under his protection
and at his command. And he fixed the tribute which each Castle was to pay, that
it should be certain; and it was as you shall be told. The Lord of Albarrazin
was to pay ten thousand, according to covenant as you heard heretofore, and the
Lord of Alfuente ten thousand, and Monviedro eight thousand, and Segorbe six
thousand, and Xerica four thousand, and Almenara three thousand. Liria at that
time paid nothing, for it was in the Lordship of Zaragoza; but the Cid had it in
his heart to fight with that King. For every thousand maravedis a hundred more
were paid for a Bishop, whom the Moors called Alat Almarian. And you are to know
that whatever my Cid commanded in Valencia was done, and whatever he forbad was
forbidden. And because the King was sick of a malady which continued upon him
long time, so that he could not mount on horseback, and was seen by none,
Valencia remained under the command of his Guazil Abenalfarax, whom the Cid had
appointed. And then the Cid appointed trusty men in the city who should know to
how much the rents amounted, as well those of the land as of the sea; and in
every village he placed a knight to protect it, so that none dared do wrong to
another, nor take any thing from him. Each of these knights had three maravedis
daily. And the people complained greatly of what they gave these knights, and of
that also which they paid to King Yahia. Yet were they withal abundantly
supplied with bread, and with flocks which the Christians brought in, and with
captives both male and female, and with Moorish men and women, who gave great
sums for their ransom. XXII
XXII
Then the Cid sent to the King of Zaragoza, bidding him yield up the Bastilles
which he had built against Valencia; and the King returned for answer that he
would not until King Yahia had paid him the whole cost which he had been at,
when he came to his succour against King Abenalfange. Then the Cid besieged
Liria, and the people submitted unto him, that they should pay him yearly two
thousand maravedis. And he overran the whole of the King of Zaragoza's country,
and brought great spoils to Valencia. Now at this time a Moor called Ali Abenaxa,
the Adelantado of the Almoravides, that is to say, of the Moors from beyond sea,
came with a great power of the Moors of Andalusia to besiege the Castle of
Aledo. This he did because he knew that King Don Alfonso would come to its
relief, and he thought that peradventure the King would bring with him so small
a force that he might slay or take him. But when the King heard of it he
assembled a great host, and sent to the Cid, bidding him come and aid him. And
the Cid went to Requena, believing that he should meet the King there; but the
King went another way, and the Cid not knowing this tarried some days in Requena
expecting him, because that was the road. And when the Moors knew that King Don
Alfonso was coming with so great a host to relieve the Castle, they departed,
flying. And King Don Alfonso came to the Castle, and when he came there he found
that he was short of victuals, and returned in great distress for want of food,
and lost many men and beasts who could not pass the Sierra. Nevertheless he
supplied the Castle well with arms, and with such food as he could. XXIII
XXIII
Now they who hated the Cid spake leasing of him to King Don Alfonso, saying that
he had tarried in Requena, knowing that the King was gone another way, that so
he might give the Moors opportunity to fall upon him. And the King believed
them, and was wroth against the Cid, and ordered all that he had in Castille to
be taken from him, and sent to take his wife, and his daughters. When the Cid
heard this he sent presently a knight to the King to defend himself, saying,
that if there were Count or Rico-ome or knight who would maintain that he had a
better and truer will to do the King service than he had, he would do battle
with him body to body, but the King being greatly incensed would not hear him.
And when they who hated the Cid saw this, and knew that the Cid was gone against
a Castle near Zaragoza, they besought the King to give them force to go against
him; howbeit this the King would not. At this time Ali Abenaxa, the Adelantado
of the Almoravides, besieged Murcia, and there was a dearth in the city, and
Alvar Fanez who should have relieved them did not, and they were so closely
beset that they were compelled to yield up the town. As soon as he had taken
Murcia he went against the Castle of Aledo, of which you have heard, and
assaulted it vigorously, and took it by force and by famine. And when he had won
Murcia and Aledo, he wished to have Valencia also, and they of Valencia, because
of the yoke of the Cid, longed to be his vassals, even as the sick man longeth
after health. When King Don Alfonso heard what Ali Abenaxa had done, he made
ready to go against him. And the Queen his wife, and certain knights who were
friends to the Cid, wrote to him that he should now come and serve the King in
such a season, that the King might thank him greatly and lay aside his wrath.
Having seen these letters the Cid set out from Zaragoza where he was, and went
his way with a great host, and advanced as far as Martos, where he found the
King. And the King received him honourably, and they continued together till the
King passed the Sierra de Elvira, and the Cid went in the plain below before
him. And they who wished ill to him said to the King, The Cid came after you
like one who was wearied, and now he goes before you. And after this manner they
set the King again against him, so that his displeasure was greatly moved. And
the Moors did not venture to give him battle, but left the Castle of Aledo and
retreated to Murcia, and the King returned to Ubeda. And when the Cid saw that
the heart of the King was changed, he returned to Valencia, and the King went
back to Toledo. XXIV
XXIV
After this King Don Alfonso drew forth a great host and went towards Valencia,
and sent to all the Castles in that land, saying that for five years they should
pay him the tribute which they were wont to pay unto the Cid. When the Cid knew
this he sent to the King, saying, he marvelled why the King should thus seek to
dishonour him, and that he trusted in God soon to make him know how ill he was
advised by those about him. And presently the Cid gathered together a full great
host both of Moors and of Christians, and entered the land of King Don Alfonso,
burning and destroying whatever he found, and he took Logrono, and Alfaro also,
and sacked it. While he was at Alfaro, Count Garcia Ordonez and certain other
Ricos-omes of Castille sent to say to him, that if he would tarry for them seven
days, they would come and give him battle. He tarried for them twelve days, and
they did not dare to come; and when the Cid saw this he returned to Zaragoza.
Now when King Don Alfonso knew what the Cid had done in his land, and that the
Ricos-omes had not dared fight against him, he saw that he had taken an evil
counsel when he set his heart against him. And he sent his letters to the Cid
saying, that he forgave him all that he had done, seeing that he himself had
given the occasion; and he besought him to come to Castille, where he should
find all things free which appertained unto him. Much was the Cid rejoiced at
these tidings, and he wrote to the King thanking him for his grace, and
beseeching him not to give ear to bad counsellors, for he would always be at his
service. XXV
XXV
Now it came to pass, that by reason of certain affairs the Cid tarried a long
time in Zaragoza. And they of Valencia being no longer kept in awe by his
presence, complained one to another of the oppressions and wrongs which they
endured from him and from his servants, and from Abenalfarax, the Guazil whom he
had appointed; and they conspired with an Alcayde who was called Abeniaf. And
when Abenalfarax the Guazil understood how Abeniaf cast about to disturb the
peace of the city, he would have taken him and cast him in prison; but this he
dared not do till the Cid should come, and moreover he weened that upon his
coming the disturbance would cease. Now Abeniaf knew that the Guazil was minded
to seize him if he could have dared so to do, and he sent his messengers to Ali
Abenaxa the Adelantado of the Almoravides, who was now Lord of Murcia, telling
him to come to Valencia, and he would deliver the city into his hands. Moreover
he took counsel with the Alcayde of Algezira de Xucar, that the Alcayde also
should send to Ali Abenaxa, exhorting him to make good speed himself, or to send
an Alcayde with a fitting power, and to come to Algezira, which was near, and
then presently proceed to Valencia. So soon as Ali Abenaxa had received this
message he made speed to come, and as many Castles as were upon his road
submitted unto him. When the Alcayde of Denia heard of his coming, and that all
these Castles had submitted, he durst not abide there, but fled to Xativa; and
Ali Abenaxa took possession of Denia, and he sent his Alcayde to Algezira de
Xucar, and took possession of that also. When these tidings came to Valencia,
the Bishop who was there, and the forty knights who were with the messenger of
the King of Aragon because of the friendship between their King and the Cid, and
all the other Christians who were in the city, would no longer abide there, but
took of their goods each as much as he could, and went away in fear. And the
Guazil was greatly dismayed, neither knew he what course to take, and Yahia the
King, though he was now healed of his malady, neither mounted on horseback, nor
appeared abroad. Abenalfarax went unto him and told him the peril in which they
stood. And their counsel was, that they should remove all that they had from
Valencia and go to the Castle of Segorbe. Then they sent away many beasts laden
with goods and with riches, under the care of a nephew of the Guazil and many
others, to the Castle of Benaecab, that is to say, the Castle of the Eagle, to
be in charge of the Alcayde thereof. And the King and the Guazil bestirred
themselves and gathered together foot-soldiers and cross-bow men to defend the
Alcazar, and sent speedily to Zaragoza, telling the Cid to come; but he could
not set forth so speedily as need was: and the stir which was in the city
endured for full twenty days. Then that Alcayde of Ali Abenaxa who was in
Algezira de Xucar set forward in the first of the night with twenty horsemen of
the Almoravides, and as many more of Algezira, all clad alike in green, that
they might all be taken for Almoravides; and they came by day-break to Valencia
to the gate of Tudela, and sounded their drums, and the rumour in the town was
that there were full five hundred knights of the Almoravides, and the Guazil was
in great fear. And he went to the Alcazar to take counsel with the King, and
they gave order that the gates of the town should be barred, and that the walls
should be manned. XXVI
XXVI
Then the King's soldiers went to the house of Abeniaf the Alcayde who had sent
for the Almoravides, and called unto him to come forth that they might take him
before the King; but he was trembling in great fear, and would not come out. And
the men of the town came to his help, and when he saw the company that were on
his side, he came forth and went with them to the Alcazar, and entered it and
took the Guazil of the Cid. And the townsmen ran to the gates and drove away
those of the King's party who guarded them; and they strove to beat the gates
down, but they could not, and they set fire to them and burnt them. And others
let down ropes from the walls, and drew up the Almoravides. King Yahia put on
woman's apparel, and fled with his women, and hid himself in a dwelling near
unto a bath. And the Almoravides took possession of the Alcazar, and plundered
it. One Christian they slew who guarded the gates, and another who was of St.
Maria de Albarrazin, who guarded one of the towers of the wall. In this manner
was Valencia lost. XXVII
XXVII
Now when Abeniaf saw that all the people were on his side, and obeyed him, his
heart grew and he was puffed up, insomuch that he despised those who were as
good as himself or better. Albeit he was of good parentage, for his fathers
before him had all been Alcaydes ever since Valencia was in the hands of the
Moors. And because he knew that the King had not fled out of the town, he made
search for him, and found him in the house where he had hidden himself with his
women. Now the King when he fled from the Alcazar had taken with him the best of
his treasures, pearls, among which was one the most precious and noble that
could be, so that nowhere was there a better one to be found, nor so good; and
precious stones, sapphires and rubies and emeralds; he had with him a casket of
pure gold full of these things; and in his girdle he had hidden a string of
precious stones and of pearls, such that no King had so rich and precious a
thing as that carkanet. They say that in former times it had belonged to Queen
Seleyda, who was wife to Abanarrexit King of Belcab, which is beyond sea; and
afterwards it had come to the Kings called Benivoyas, who were Lords of
Andalusia; after that King Alimaymon of Toledo possessed it, and gave it to his
wife, and she gave it to the wife of her son, who was the mother of this Yahia.
Greatly did Abeniaf covet these treasures and this carkanet, and incontinently
he thought in his heart that he might take them and none know thereof, which
could no ways be done unless he slew King Yahia. When therefore it was night he
gave order to cut off his head, and to throw it into a pond near the house in
which he had been taken. This was done accordingly, and Abeniaf took the
treasures, and they who were set over King Yahia to guard him and murder him,
took also each what he could, and concealed it. And the body lay where it had
been slain till the following day; but then a good man who grieved for the death
of his Lord took it up, and laid it upon the cords of a bed, and covered it with
an old horsecloth, and carried it out of the town, and made a grave for it in a
place where camels were wont to lie, and buried it there, without gravecloths
and without any honours whatsoever, as if the corpse had been the corpse of a
villain.
BOOK SIX
I
When Abeniaf had slain his Lord, as you have heard, he became haughty like a
King, and gave no thought to anything save to building his own houses, and
setting guards round about them by day and by night; and he appointed
secretaries who should write his secret letters, and chose out a body from among
the good men of the city to be his guard. And when he rode out he took with him
many knights and huntsmen, all armed, who guarded him like a King; and when he
went through the streets the women came out to gaze at him, and shouted and
rejoiced in him; and he being elated and puffed up with these vanities, demeaned
himself in all things after the manner of a King. This he did for the sake of
abasing a certain kinsman of his, who was chief Alcayde, and who was better and
wiser than he. Moreover he made no account of the Alcayde of the Almoravides who
held the Alcazar, neither took counsel with him concerning anything, and he gave
no heed to him except to supply him and his company with their charges, which he
did right sparingly.
II
But when King Yahia was slain, his servants and eunuchs and they of his
household fled to Juballa, a Castle which was held by a kinsman of the Guazil
Abenalfarax, who lay in prison; other some fled to Zaragoza, and told the Cid
all that had befallen. The Cid was greatly grieved when he heard it, and without
delay he set forth with all his people, and went as fast as he could go to
Juballa, and there they who had escaped from Valencia met him, and besought him
to help them to revenge the death of their Lord, saying that they would follow
him for life or for death, and do whatsoever he commanded them. Then the Cid
sent letters to Abeniaf, saying disdainfully unto him, that by God's help he had
kept his Lent well, and accomplished his fast with a worthy sacrifice by
murdering the King his master! and he reproached him for the shame he had done
the King in casting his head into the pond and letting the body be buried in a
dunghill; and at the end of the letter he bade Abeniaf give him his corn which
he had left in his granaries at Valencia. Abeniaf returned for answer that his
granaries had all been plundered, and that the city now belonged to the King of
the Almoravides; and he said that if the Cid would serve that King he would do
his best to help him that he might win his love. When the Cid read this letter
he saw that Abeniaf was a fool, for he had sent to reproach him for the death of
his Lord, and the answer which he had returned was concerning another matter;
and he then knew that Abeniaf was not a man to keep the power which he coveted.
So he sent other letters to him, calling him and all who were with him traitors,
and saying that he would never leave from making war against them till he had
taken vengeance for the death of King Yahia.
III
And the Cid sent letters to all the Castles round about, bidding them supply his
host with victuals, and do it speedily, or he would do all he could to destroy
them. And there was none to gainsay him: and all obeyed his commands in this
matter, saving Aboeza Abenlupo, for he was a discreet man, and perceived what
was to come, and in what this was to end: moreover he feared that if he should
not do as the Cid commanded, the Cid would put him out of the world, and no one
would be able to protect him; and if he should do it, then he feared lest he
should be banished. So he sent to the Cid to say he would do his pleasure, and
he sent also to Abenrazin, the Lord of Albarrazin, saying that he would give him
Monviedro and the other Castles in his possession, and bidding him make his
terms with the Cid, for as touching himself, he desired to have no dispute, but
to come off with his company and his own person in peace. When Abenrazin heard
this he was well pleased; and he went to Monviedro with all speed, and took
possession of the Castle. From the time that King Yahia was slain till this
time, was twenty and six days. And when Abenrazin had got possession of the
Castle of Monviedro he came to the Cid, and established love with him, and made
a covenant that there should be buying and selling between his Castles and the
host, and that he would provide food, and that the Cid should not make war upon
him. And upon this they made their writings, which were full fast; and Abenrazin
returned to his own land, and left one to keep Monviedro for him; and Abenlupo
went with him, taking with him his wives and his children and his people and all
that he had, and he thought himself well off that he had escaped with his body,
for he desired to have nothing to do with the Cid. And the Cid lay before
Juballa, and sent out his foragers towards Valencia twice a day; one party went
in the morning, and another towards night; and they slew many Moors, and made
many prisoners, and made prey of all the flocks which they found without the
walls; nevertheless the Cid commanded that no hurt should be done to those of
the land of Moya, nor to the husbandmen, but that they who laboured to produce
bread and wine should be protected and encouraged; and this he did thinking that
what they raised would be for him when he should lay siege unto the town; and he
said this to his knights and Adalides and Almocadenes, and took homage of them
that they should obey him therein. All this time the Cid held that Castle
besieged, so that none could enter in nor come out thereof; and it is said that
terms had secretly been made with him to yield it up, but that it was so to be
done that the other Moors might believe they had yielded from great necessity,
for it was not stored so as to be able to hold out long. And while the Cid lay
before Juballa, all the spoil which his Almogavares took they brought to the
host, and from the host it was taken and sold at Monviedro. Many laden beasts
came every day, and there was plenty in the host.
IV
Abeniaf gathered together the knights who were natives of the city and vassals
to the King whom he had slain, and sent for others who were in Denia, so that in
all they were three hundred knights, and maintained them with the bread which
was in the granaries of the Cid Ruydiez and with the rents and possessions of
those who had been the King's officers, and who were gone from Valencia, and
with the customs; from all these did he give these knights whatsoever they stood
in need of And he took no counsel with the Alcayde of the Almoravides concerning
any thing which he did, neither with any one, nor did he care a jot for them.
And when the Alcayde and the Almoravides saw that he made himself master in the
city, and how every thing that he did was by his own will, they were offended
therewith. The sons of Aboegib were offended also: and they and the Almoravides
placed their love upon each other, and took counsel together against him, and
became of one party, and they bare great hatred against him, and he against
them. All this while the Cid lay before Juballa, and every day he scoured the
country to the gates of Valencia, early in the morning, and at noon day, and at
night, so that he never let them rest. And the three hundred knights whom
Abeniaf had collected went out against his foragers, with the men of the town,
and the Christians slew many of them, so that there were lamentations daily
within the walls, and wailings over the dead that were brought in. And in one of
these skirmishes, a rich Moor was taken who was Alcayde of Acala, which is near
Torralva, and they gave him grievous torments till he ransomed himself for ten
thousand marks of silver; and moreover he gave the houses which he had in
Valencia, which were called the houses of Anaya, to be theirs if peradventure
the town should be yielded up.
V
When the Cid knew that there was great hatred between Abeniaf and the
Almoravides and the sons of Aboegib, he devised means how to set farther strife
between them, and sent privily to proffer his love to Abeniaf on condition that
they should expel the Almoravides out of the town; saying, that if he did this,
he would remain Lord thereof, and the Cid would help him in this, and would be
good to him, as he knew he had been to the King of Valencia, and would defend
him. When Abeniaf heard this he was well pleased, thinking that he should be
King of Valencia. And he took counsel with Abenalfarax the Guazil of the Cid,
whom he held prisoner, and Abenalfarax, with the hope of getting out of prison,
counselled him to do thus, and to accept the love of the Cid. Then sent he to
the Cid, saying that he would do all which he commanded to gain his love, and he
began to stop the allowance of the Almoravides, saying that he could give them
nothing, for he had nothing whereof to give: this did he to the end that they
might go their way, for he lacked not means.
VI
At this time Ali Abenaxa, the Alcayde who was in Denia, sent to Abeniaf, saying
unto him that he should send of that treasure, and of those jewels which he had
taken from King Yahia, to the Miramamolin beyond sea; with the which he would
gather together a great power, and cross the sea, and come against the Cid, to
help the people of Valencia, and protect them against the Cid, who did so much
evil to them all. And Abeniaf took counsel with the men of Valencia concerning
this matter, whether he should send this to the Miramamolin beyond sea or not.
And the old men advised him that he should, and the others that he should not.
And Abeniaf took the treasures, and hid the best part thereof for himself, for
none knew what it was; and the rest he sent by his messengers, Abenalfarax the
Guazil of the Cid being one; and they took their departure from Valencia with
great secrecy, lest the Cid should know it and overtake them upon the road. But
Abenalfarax devised means to let the Cid know, and sent him a messenger. And the
Cid sent horsemen to follow their track, who caught them, and took the treasure,
and brought it to the Cid. Greatly did he thank Abenalfarax for having served
him so well at that season, and putting the treasure into his hands, and he
promised him goodly guerdon; and he made him chief over all the Moors who were
his subjects. At this time the Alcayde of Juballa yielded up the Castle to the
Cid, and the Cid placed another therein, and went up with his host against
Valencia, and encamped in a village which is called Deroncada. And as the seed
time was now over, he burnt all the villages round about, and wasted all that
belonged to Abeniaf and his lineage, and he burnt the mills, and the barks which
were in the river. And he ordered the corn to be cut, for it was now the season,
and he beset the city on all sides, and pulled down the houses and towers which
were round about, and the stone and wood thereof he sent to Juballa, to make a
town there beside the Castle.
VII
At this time there came the Guazil of the King of Zaragoza to the host of the
Cid, bringing with him great treasures which the King had sent for the
redemption of the captives, for ruth which he had of them, and also that he
might have his reward from God in the other world. He came also to talk with
Abeniaf and counsel him that he should give up the city to the King of Zaragoza,
and they would send away the Almoravides, and the King would protect him; but
Abeniaf would give no ear to this, and the Guazil said unto him that he would
repent not having taken this advice. On the second day after this Guazil had
arrived, the Cid attacked the suburb which is called Villa Nueva, and entered it
by force, and slew many Moors, both men of Andalusia and Almoravides, and
plundered all that they found, and pulled down the houses, and the wood and
stone the Cid sent to Juballa, and he set a guard there that the Moors might not
recover the place. On the morrow the Cid attacked another suburb, which is
called Alcudia, and there were a great body of the Moors gathered together
there. And he sent a part of his host against the gate of Alcantara, bidding
them attack the gate, while he fought against them in Alcudia; and he thought
that by God's mercy peradventure he should enter the town. And the Cid with his
company rode among that great multitude of the Moors, smiting and slaying
without mercy, and the Cid's horse trampled over the dead, and stumbled among
them and fell, and the Cid remained afoot. Howbeit they brought him to horse
again, and he continued smiting and laying on strenuously, so that the Moors
were amazed at the great mortality which he made among them, and maugre all they
could do, were fain to fly into the town. And they whom he had sent against the
gate of Alcantara, attacked it so bravely that they would have entered the city,
if it had not been for the boys and the women, who were upon the wall and in the
towers, and threw down stones upon them. And this while the cry went forth in
the city, and many horsemen sallied forth and fought with the Christians before
the bridge, and the battle lasted from morning until midday, and when they
separated, the Cid returned to his camp. And when the Cid had taken food, he
returned after the siesta to attack the suburb of Alcudia; and this attack was
so vigorous that they who dwelt therein thought the place would be forced, and
they began to cry out, Peace! Peace! being in great fear. Then the Cid bade his
men give over the attack, and the good men of the suburb came out to him, and
whatsoever terms of security they asked, he granted them; and he took possession
of the suburb that night, and set his guards therein; and he commanded his
people that they should do no wrong to them of Alcudia, and if any one offended
he said that his head should be smitten off: so he returned that night to the
camp. And on the morrow he came there, and assembled together the Moors of that
place, and comforted them much with his speeches, and promised that he would
favour them greatly and not oppress them, and bade them till their fields and
tend their flocks securely, saying that he would take only a tenth of the fruit
thereof, as their law directed. And he placed a Moor there named Yucef, to be
his Almoxarife, that is to say, his Receiver. And he gave orders that all Moors
who would come and dwell therein might come securely, and they also who would
bring food thither for sale, and other merchandize. So much food and much
merchandize were brought there from all parts, and that suburb became like a
city, and there was plenty therein.
VIII
Now when the Cid Ruydiez had gotten possession of the suburbs, he cut off from
Valencia both the ingress and the egress, and they of the town were greatly
straightened, and knew not what they should do, and they repented them that they
had not listened to what the King of Zaragoza sent to counsel them, for they had
none to help them; and the Almoravides were in the like straight, for they had
none to look to, and the pay which they were wont to receive failed, both to
them and to the other knights. All this time Abeniaf secretly continued his love
with the Cid, for he had not departed from the promise which he had made him to
send away the Almoravides, and put himself under his protection. And they took
counsel together in this distress, both the Almoravides and the men of the town,
how they might obtain the love of the Cid, in whatever manner they could, so
that they might remain in peace in the city till they had sent to the
Miramamolin beyond sea, and received his commands; and they sent to the Cid to
say this. But he made answer that he would make no treaty with them till they
had sent away the Almoravides. And they of the town told the Almoravides what
the Cid had said, and these Africans were well pleased, being full weary of that
place, and said that they would go their way, and that it would be the happiest
day of their lives, that, wherein they should depart. So they made their
covenant that the Almoravides should be placed in safety, and that they should
pay the Cid for all the corn which was in his granaries at the time when King
Yahia was slain. And moreover the thousand maravedis per week, which they were
wont to pay him should be paid for the whole time which they had been in arms,
and also from that time forth. And that the suburb which he had won should be
his; and that his host should remain in Juballa so long as they continued in
that land. And upon this they made their writings, and confirmed them. And the
Almoravides departed from Valencia, and horsemen were sent with them, who
conducted them in safety, and the Moors of Valencia were left in peace.
IX
Then the Cid went with all his host to Juballa, leaving none but such as were to
collect his rents with his Almoxarife. And Abeniaf cast about how he might pay
the Cid for the corn, and also what else was to be given him. And he made terms
with those who held the Castles round about Valencia, that they should pay him
the tenth of all their fruits and of all their other rents. Now this was the
season for gathering in the fruit, and he appointed men in every place who
should look to it, and see it valued, and receive the tenth; a Moor and a
Christian did he appoint in every place, who were to receive this, and to gather
the corn also into the granaries: and this was done after such manner that the
Cid had his tribute well paid. At this time came tidings to Valencia, that the
Almoravides were coming again with a great power, and the Cid devised how he
might prevent their coming, or if they came how he might fight against them. And
he sent to tell Abeniaf to forbid them from coming, for if they should enter the
town he could not be Lord thereof, which it was better he should be, and the Cid
would protect him against all his enemies. well was Abeniaf pleased at this; and
he held a talk with the Alcayde of Xativa, and with him who held the Castle of
Carchayra; and they agreed to be of one voice. And they came to Valencia, and
the Cid came to his suburb; and they confirmed love with him in great secrecy.
But he who had the Castle of Algezira would not be in this covenant with them,
and the Cid sent parties into his lands, and did him much evil; and the Alcayde
of Juballa went against him, and cut down all his corn and brought it to Juballa,
which the Cid had made a great town with a church and with towers, and it was a
goodly place; and there he had his corn and his other things, and his rents were
all brought thither, and it abounded with all things; and men held it for a
great marvel that in so short time he had made so great a town, which was so
rich and so plentiful. And the Cid thought to have Valencia if the Almoravides
did not come, and for this reason did all that he could to prevent their coming.
X
At this time Abenrazin the Lord of Albarrazin covenanted with the King of Aragon
that the King should help him to win Valencia, and he would give him great
treasures; and he gave him in pledge a Castle which is called Toalba. And in
this which he did he gained nothing, but he lost the Castle. Now this Abenrazin
had made covenant with the Cid, so that they were friends, and the Cid had never
done hurt in his lands. And when he knew this that he had done with the King of
Aragon, he held himself to have been deceived and dealt falsely with; howbeit he
dissembled this, and let none of his company wit, till they had gathered in all
the corn from about Algezira de Xucar, and carried it to Juballa. When this was
done, he bade his men make ready, and he told them not whither they were to go,
and he set forward at night toward Albarrazin, and came to the Fountain. Now
that land was in peace, and the dwellers thereof kept neither watch nor ward;
and his foragers slew many, and made many prisoners, and drove great flocks and
herds, sheep and kine, and brood mares, and prisoners all together, and they
carried away all the corn; and they sent all the spoil to Juballa, and it was so
great that Valencia and Juballa and all their dependencies were rich with cattle
and with other things. While the Cid lay before Albarrazin, as he one day rode
forth with five of his knights to disport himself, there came twelve knights out
of the town, thinking to slay him or take him. And he pricked forward against
them, and encountered them so bravely that he slew twain, and other twain he
overthrew, so that they were taken, and the rest were put to flight: but he
remained with a wound in his throat from the push of a spear, and they thought
he would have died of that wound; and it was three weeks before it was healed.
XI
Now came true tidings to Valencia that the host of the Almoravides were coming,
and that they were now at Lorca, and the son-in-law of the Miramamolin at their
head, for he himself could not come, by reason that he ailed. They of Valencia
took courage at these tidings, and waxed insolent, and began to devise how they
should take vengeance upon Abeniaf, and upon all those who had oppressed them.
And Abeniaf was in great trouble at this which was said openly concerning him,
and he sent privily to the Cid, telling him to come as soon as might be. The Cid
was then before Albarrazin, doing all the evil that he could, and he brake up
his camp and came with his host to Juballa; and Abeniaf and the Alcaydes of
Xativa and Carchayra came unto him, and they renewed their covenant to stand by
each other, and be of one voice. And they took counsel and made a letter for the
leader of the army of the Almoravides, wherein they told him that the Cid had
made a treaty with the King of Aragon, whereby the King bound himself to help
him against them; and they bade him beware how he came towards Valencia, unless
he chose to do battle with eight thousand Christian horsemen, covered with iron,
and the best warriors in the world. This did they thinking that he would be
dismayed and turn back: but the Moor did not cease to advance, notwithstanding
this letter.
XII
There was a garden nigh unto Valencia which had belonged to Abenalhazis, and the
Cid asked Abeniaf to give it him, that he might take his pleasure there when he
was disposed to solace himself. This he did cunningly, that when the Almoravides
heard how this garden had been given him which was so nigh unto the city, they
should ween that the men of Valencia had given it, and that they were better
pleased with his company than with theirs. Abeniaf granted it. And the Cid was
wary, and would not enter it till a gateway had been opened into the garden, for
the entrance was through narrow streets, and the Cid would not trust himself in
those strait places: so Abeniaf ordered the gate to be made, and told the Cid
that he would be his host on a day appointed. And Abeniaf bedecked the gate of
this garden full richly, and spread costly carpets, and ordered the way to be
strewn with rushes, and made a great feast, and expected him all the day, but he
did not come. And when it was night he sent to say that he was sick and could
not come: and he prayed him to hold him excused. This he did to see whether they
of Valencia would murmur against him. And the sons of Aboegib and all the people
murmured greatly, and would fain in their hearts have risen against Abeniaf, but
they durst not because of the Cid, with whom they would not fall out lest he
should lay waste all that was without the walls. And they looked daily for the
Almoravides, and one day they said, Lo! now they are coming: and on the morrow
they said, They are coming not. And in this manner some days past on. And the
murmur which there had been concerning the garden died away; and then the Cid
entered it, and took possession of the whole suburb of Alcudia round about it:
and this he did peaceably, for the Moors and Christians dwelt there together.
XIII
Now came true tidings that the host of the Almoravides, which was at Lorca, was
coming on through Murcia, and that the tarriance which they had made had been by
reason of their Captain, who had fallen sick, but he was now healed, and they
were advancing fast. And the sons of Aboegib and great part of the people
rejoiced in these tidings, and took heart: and Abeniaf was in great fear, and he
began to excuse himself to the men of the town, and said unto them to pacify
them, that they did him wrong to complain of him for the garden which the Cid
had asked of him, inasmuch as he had only given it him to disport himself
therein for some days and take his pleasure, and that he would make him leave it
again whenever it should please them. Moreover he said, that seeing they were
displeased with what he had done, he would take no farther trouble upon him; but
would send to break off his covenant with the Cid, and send to bid him look out
for others to collect his payments, for he would have the charge no longer. This
he said in his cunning, thinking that he should pacify them; but they understood
his heart, and they cried aloud against him that they would not stand to his
covenant, nor by his counsel, but that the sons of Aboegib should counsel them,
and whatsoever they should think good, that would they do. And they gave order
to fasten the gates of the town, and to keep watch upon the towers and walls.
When Abeniaf saw this he ceased to do as he had been wont for fear of the people
and of the sons of Aboegib, and took unto himself a greater company to be his
guard. And the war was renewed between the Cid and the people of Valencia.
XIV
Now came true tidings that the host of the Almoravides was nigh unto Xativa; and
the people of Valencia were glad and rejoiced, for they thought that they were
now delivered from their great misery, and from the oppression of the Cid. And
when he heard these tidings he left the garden and went to the place were his
host was encamped, which was called Xarosa, and remained there in his tents, and
he was at a stand what he should do, whether to abide the coming of the
Almoravides, or to depart; howbeit he resolved to abide and see what would
befall. And he gave order to break down the bridges and open the sluices, that
the plain might be flooded, so that they could only come by one way, which was a
narrow pass. Tidings now came that the host of the Almoravides was at Algezira
de Xucar, and the joy of the people of Valencia increased, and they went upon
the walls and upon the towers to see them come. And when night came they
remained still upon the walls, for it was dark, and they saw the great fires of
the camp of the Almoravides, which they had pitched near unto a place called
Bacer; and they began to pray unto God, beseeching him to give them good speed
against the Christians, and they resolved as soon as the Almoravides were
engaged in battle with the Cid, that they would issue forth and plunder his
tents. But our Lord Jesus Christ was not pleased that it should be so, and he
ordered it after another guise; for he sent such a rain that night, with such a
wind and flood as no man living remembered, and when it was day the people of
Valencia looked from the wall to see the banners of the Almoravides and the
place where they had encamped, and behold they could see nothing: and they were
full sorrowful, and knew not what they should do, and they remained in such a
state as a woman in her time of childing, till the hour of tierce, and then came
tidings that the Almoravides had turned back and would not come unto Valencia.
For the rains and floods had dismayed them, and they thought the waters would
have swept them away, and that the hand of God was against them, and therefore
they turned back. And when the people of Valencia heard this they held
themselves for dead men, and they wandered about the streets like drunkards, so
that a man knew not his neighbour, and they smeared their faces with black like
unto pitch, and they lost all thought like one who falls into the waves of the
sea. And then the Christians drew nigh unto the walls, crying out unto the Moors
with a loud voice like thunder, calling them false traitors and renegados, and
saying, Give up the town to the Cid Ruydiez, for ye cannot escape from him. And
the Moors were silent, and made no reply because of their great misery.
XV
Then Abenalfarax, a Moor of Valencia, he who wrote this history in Arabic, took
account of the food which was in the city, to see how long it could hold out.
And he says that the cafiz of wheat was valued at eleven maravedis, and the
cafiz of barley at seven maravedis, and that of pulse or other grain at six; and
the arroba of honey at fifteen dineros; and the arroba of carobs the third of a
maravedi, and the arroba of onions two thirds of a maravedi, and the arroba of
cheese two maravedis and a half, and the measure of oil which the Moors call
maron, a maravedi, and the quintal of figs five maravedis, and the pound of
mutton six dineros of silver, and the pound of beef four. These maravedis were
silver ones, for no other money was current among them. The Moors who dwelt in
the suburbs carried all the best of their goods into the city, and the rest they
buried. And when the Cid was certain that the Almoravides were not coming, he
returned again to lodge in the garden, and gave order to spoil the suburbs, save
that of Alcudia, because the inhabitants of that had received him without
resistance: and the Moors fled into the city with their wives and children. And
when the Christians began to plunder the suburbs they of the town came out and
plundered also those houses which were nearest unto the walls, so that every
thing was carried away and nothing but the timbers left: and then the Christians
took that to build them lodgments in the camp; and when the Moors saw this they
came out, and carried away what timber they could into the city. And the
Christians pulled down all the houses, save only such as could be defended with
arrows, and these which they dared not pull down they set fire to by night. And
when all the houses had been levelled they began to dig in the foundations, and
they found great wealth there, and store of garments, and hoards of wheat; and
when the Cid saw this he ordered them to dig everywhere so that nothing might be
lost. And when all had been dug up the Cid drew nearer to the city, and girt it
round about, and there was fighting every day at the barriers, for the Moors
came out and fought hand to hand, and many a sword- stroke was given and many a
push with the spear. While the Moors were thus beleagered came letters from the
Captain of the Almoravides, saying that he had not turned back to Algezira de
Xucar for fear, nor for cowardice, neither as one who fled, but for lack of
food, and also by reason of the waters; and that it was his set purpose at all
events to succour them and deliver them from the oppression which they endured,
and he was preparing to do this with all diligence. And he bade them take
courage, and maintain the city. And when the Moors of Valencia heard these
letters they took heart, and joined with the sons of Aboegib, and their resolve
was that they would be firm and maintain the city. And they said that Abeniaf
had made the Almoravides retreat, because he had told them that there was
discord in the town. And Abeniaf kept great watch, having a great guard to
secure him, lest the people should attempt aught against him. And the price of
all things in Valencia was doubled.
XVI
Then the Cid drew nearer to the walls, so that no man could either enter in or
issue out, but whosoever attempted it was either slain or taken. And he gave
orders to till all the lands which lay round about Alcudia, for this was now
become a great place, even like a city, and the Moors who dwelt there were safe;
and tents and shops were made there for all kinds of merchandize, and merchants
came there safely from all parts to buy and to sell, so that they who dwelt
there were greatly enriched. And justice was administered to all full
righteously, so that there was none who could complain of the Cid nor of his
Almoxarife, nor of any of his people; and the Moors were judged by their own
law, and were not vexed, and he took from them only a tenth. Now came true
tidings from Denia that the Almoravides had returned into their own country, and
that there was no hope of succour at their hands. And when they of Valencia
heard this they were greatly troubled. And they who held the Castles round about
came humbly to the Cid, to place their love upon him, and besought him that he
would accept tribute from them, and have them under his protection; and he gave
orders that they might travel the roads in peace: and in this manner his rents
increased, so that he had plenty to give. And he sent to them who held the
Castles, bidding them provide him with cross-bow men, and foot-soldiers, to
fight against the city; and there was none who dared disobey his bidding, and
they sent him cross-bow men and foot-men in great numbers, with their arms and
provisions. Thus was Valencia left desolate, and forsaken by all the Moorish
people; and it was attacked every day, and none could enter in, neither could
any come out; and they were sore distressed, and the waves of death compassed
them round about.
XVII
Then was there a Moor in the city who was a learned man and a wise, and he went
upon the highest tower, and made a lamentation, and the words with which he
lamented he put in writing, and it was rendered afterwards from the Arabic into
the Castillian tongue, and the lamentation which he made was this:
Valencia! Valencia! trouble is come upon thee, and thou
art in the hour of death; and if peradventure thou shouldst escape, it will be a
wonder to all that shall behold thee.
But if ever God hath shown mercy to any place, let him
be pleased to show mercy unto thee; for thy name was joy, and all Moors
delighted in thee and took their pleasure in thee.
And if it should please God utterly to destroy thee
now, it will be for thy great sins, and for the great presumption which thou
hadst in thy pride.
The four corner stones whereon thou art founded would
meet together and lament for thee, if they could!
Thy strong wall which is founded upon these four stones
trembles, and is about to fall, and hath lost all its strength.
Thy lofty and fair towers which were seen from far, and
rejoiced the hearts of the people,... little by little they are falling.
Thy white battlements which glittered afar off, have
lost their truth with which they shone like the sunbeams.
Thy noble river Guadalaver, with all the other waters
with which thou hast been served so well, have left their channel, and now they
run where they should not.
Thy water courses, which were so clear and of such
great profit to so many, for lack of cleansing are choked with mud.
Thy pleasant gardens which were round about thee;...
the ravenous wolf hath gnawn at the roots, and the trees can yield thee no
fruit.
Thy goodly fields, with so many and such fair flowers,
wherein thy people were wont to take their pastime, are all dried up.
Thy noble harbour, which was so great honour to thee,
is deprived of all the nobleness which was wont to come into it for thy sake.
The fire hath laid waste the lands of which thou wert
called Mistress, and the great smoke thereof reacheth thee.
There is no medicine for thy sore infirmity, and the
physicians despair of healing thee.
Valencia! Valencia! from a broken heart have I uttered
all these things which I have said of thee.
And this grief would I keep unto myself that none
should know it, if it were not needful that it should be known to all.
XVIII
Now all the trouble and distress which the men of Valencia endured, pleased
Abeniaf well, because they had forsaken him and followed the sons of Aboegib;
and he said that it did not behove a man to give advice unto those who would not
listen to it, and that if the people had hearkened to him they would not have
been brought to this misery; and what evil they endured was because of the sons
of Aboegib, who lacked wit to be well with any one, or to do any thing. These
things Abeniaf said daily to all who came to visit him: so that the people great
as well as little began to talk thereof, saying that Abeniaf spake truly. And
the Christians fought against them every day, and prest them close, and the
price of food increased daily: and they withdrew themselves from the love of the
sons of Aboegib, and thought that they had been ill advised to follow their
counsel, and that because of them all this evil was come upon them, and they
held them for fools. And the people cried out upon Abeniaf that he should
forgive them for having forsaken him, and that he should protect them, and
devise means for their deliverance from this great trouble. And Abeniaf said
that he would have nothing to do with them more than as one of them; for if they
were in trouble, so was he: and what they stood in fear of, that did he fear
also; and that he could not give counsel to men who were divided among
themselves; and he said unto them that they must agree among themselves, and be
all of one mind to do one of these two things;... either to forsake the sons of
Aboegib and their counsel, or to stand by it. And when he should see that they
no longer opposed him with their evil counsels and the bad way in which they
were going on, that he would then take counsel for them in such guise that they
should be at peace; for they knew how they had sped so long as they let him
direct them, and he trusted in God so to speed as that they should have no war
with the Cid, neither with any other. And they made answer with one accord that
they would trust in him and obey him, and do all which he should command, for it
had always been well with them when they followed his advice.
XIX
Then the men of Valencia made Abeniaf their Adelantado, and promised to abide by
his counsel; howbeit this could not lightly be done, for many of the people held
with the others. And when Abeniaf saw that they would have him for their chief,
he said that they should make a writing, and the chief persons of the town
confirm it with their names; and the people accorded that it should be so, and
it was done accordingly. Then he made offers to the Cid that they should pay him
tribute, and took counsel with him how to put the sons of Aboegib, and those who
held with them, out of the town; and their counsel was, that the Cid should draw
nigh to the walls, and speak unto the men of the town, saying, that so long as
they followed after the ways of the sons of Aboegib, he would never grant them
his love; and that all the evil which he did unto them was because of them, and
because they were guided by them and by their evil counsel. And if they desired
to speed well they should send away the sons of Aboegib, and take Abeniaf to be
their chief, and give ear unto him. And the Cid came nigh unto the walls and
said these things, and moreover that he had great ruth for them, for he loved
them well; and if they would do according to his words he would help them and
protect them, as he had been wont to do in the days of King Yahia; and he bade
them look well to what they were doing, and not suffer themselves to be brought
to destruction. And Abeniaf also said these things to those of his household and
to all those who talked with him, and asked of them why they would let
themselves be brought to destruction by the counsel of foolish men and unwise.
And this he said so often that they thought it was truth, and they besought him
that as he was their Adelantado now, he would devise means for their
deliverance, and how they might live in peace; and he made answer that they were
not to think he had forgotten this, for he had laboured greatly with the Cid to
obtain his love for them, but the Cid had sworn that they should never have his
love till they had put the sons of Aboegib out of the town; when they had done
that, he would do whatsoever they should think good, but till they had done it
there should be no covenant between him and them. But when the men of the town
heard this they murmured greatly, and said that he demanded a hard thing, and
that it were better they should all die than do this; and they talked concerning
this matter three days, being in doubt what they should do. And when Abeniaf saw
that the people were thus at a stand, he took counsel privily with the Cid, and
the good men who were on his side, how he might take them. And one of the chief
persons of Abeniaf's household went out with a great company of horse and foot
to seize the sons of Aboegib; and they when they knew this, took shelter in the
house of an Alfaqui, that is to say, one learned in the law, who was held in
much honour by the Moors; and in this house, which was surrounded with an
embattled wall, they thought with the little company that they had with them, to
defend themselves, till the cry could go forth through the city, and their
friends come to their succour. And they who went to take them set fire to the
outer gates, and many of a baser sort gathered together to see what the stir
was. And they ascended the roof and threw down tiles upon the assailants till
they made them take shelter under the eaves, and then the house was forced, and
they plundered all that they could find, and laid hands on the sons of Aboegib
and carried them to prison. All this was done before the cry could go forth
through the town; and all the kinsmen of the sons of Aboegib were taken also:
they were kept that day in prison, and when it was night they were taken to the
Cid, to his lodging in Alcudia, and delivered into his hands.
XX
On the morrow there was a great stir among the men of the town, and they were
greatly troubled at this foul thing which Abeniaf had done. But Abeniaf thinking
that he should now have his desire, and that all was done, took horse and rode
forth with all his company to the Bridge-end, to see Ruydiez the Cid. And the
Bishop, as he was called, of Albarrazin, came to meet him with a great company
of knights, being the chiefs of the company of the Cid, and they did great
honour unto him, thinking that he would give them something. And they brought
him to the lodging of the Cid, which was in the Garden of the New Town; and the
Cid came out to meet him at the garden gate, and embraced him, and made much of
him. And the first thing which he said, was, to ask him why he had not put on
kingly garments, for King he was: and he bade him take off the coif which he
wore, for it was not what beseemed him now, and made semblance as if he would
have held his stirrups. And they stood talking awhile. Now the Cid thought
Abeniaf would not come to him with empty hands, and looked that he should give
him of the treasures and jewels that he had taken from King Yahia whom he had
slain; but when he saw that he brought nothing, then began the Cid to talk of
terms, and said unto him that if he desired to have his love, and that there
should be peace between them, he must divide with him the rents of the town, as
well what was collected within as without, and that he would have his own
Almoxarife to see to this and collect his share. And Abeniaf made answer that it
should be so. And the Cid demanded of him his son as hostage, that he might keep
him in Juballa, for otherwise he said he could not be secure. And Abeniaf agreed
to this also; so they parted for that day, having appointed that they should
meet on the morrow, and confirm this covenant by writings so that it should be
good. Then Abeniaf returned into the city, full sorrowful and taking great
thought; and then he saw the foolishness that he had done in sending away the
Almoravides out of the land, and in putting his trust in men of another law. And
on the morrow the Cid sent for him that he should come out and confirm the
covenant; but Abeniaf sent him word that he would not give him his son, even
though he knew he should lose his head for refusing. And the Cid sent him a
letter with great threats, saying, that since he had thus deceived him, there
should never more be love between them, nor would he ever believe aught which he
should say. And then the hatred between them waxed very great. And the Cid sent
unto that Moor who had taken the sons of Aboegib and bade him leave the town,
and go unto the Castle which was called Alcala; and he obeyed and went thither,
for he dared not do otherwise than as the Cid commanded. And he did great
honours to the sons of Aboegib and to their kinsmen, and gave orders that they
should be provided with all things which they needed, and gave them garments,
and promised that he would be their great friend. At this time three good men of
Valencia died, who were the most honourable of the town and of the most
discretion, and Abeniaf was left as Chief, for there was none to gainsay him.
XXI
And the Cid made war afresh upon the city as cruelly as he could, and the price
of bread was now three times as great as it had been at the beginning; the load
of wheat was worth a hundred maravedis of silver, and the pound of flesh was a
maravedi. And the Cid drew nigh unto the walls, so as to fight hand to hand with
the townsmen. And Abeniaf waxed proud and despised the people, and when any went
to make complaint before him, and ask justice at his hands, he dishonoured them,
and they were evil entreated by him. And he was like a King, retired apart, and
trobadors and gleemen and masters disported before him which could do the best,
and he took his pleasure. And they of the town were in great misery, from the
Christians who warred upon them from without, and the famine whereof they died
within. Moreover Abeniaf oppressed them greatly, and he took himself all the
goods of those who died, and he made all persons equal, the good and the bad,
and took from all all that he could; and those who gave him nothing he ordered
to be tormented with stripes, and cast into rigorous prisons, till he could get
something from them. And he had no respect neither for kinsman nor friend. There
was but one measure for all, and men cared nothing now for their possessions, so
that the sellers were many and the buyers none. And with all these miseries the
price of food became exceeding great, for the cafiz of wheat was priced at
ninety maravedis, and that of barley at eighty, and that of panic at eighty and
five, and that of all pulse at sixty, and the arroba of figs seven, and of honey
twenty, and of cheese eighteen, and of carobs sixteen, and of onions twelve, and
the measure of oil twenty: flesh there was none, neither of beast nor of
anything else; but if a beast died, the pound was worth three maravedis. And
they were so weak with hunger that the Christians came to the wars and threw
stones in with the hand, and there was none who had strength to drive them back.
XXII
And the Cid having it at heart to take the town, let make an engine, and placed
it at one of the gates, and it did great hurt both to the walls and within the
town; and the Moors made other engines, with the which they brake that of the
Cid. And the Cid in his anger let make three engines, and placed them at the
three gates of the town, and they did marvellous great hurt. And food waxed
dearer every day, till at last dear nor cheap it was not to be had, and there
was a great mortality for famine; and they ate dogs and cats and mice. And they
opened the vaults and privies and sewers of the town, and took out the stones of
the grapes which they had eaten, and washed them, and ate them. And they who had
horses fed on them. And many men, and many women, and many children watched when
the gates were open, and went out and gave themselves into the hands of the
Christians, who slew some, and took others, and sold them to the Moors in
Alcudia; and the price of a Moor was a loaf and a pitcher of wine: and when they
gave them food and they took their fill, they died. Them that were stronger they
sold to merchants who came there by sea from all parts. And the Moors of Alcudia,
and of the town which the Cid had made there, had plenty of all things, and as
great as was their abundance, even so great was the misery of those in the town:
and they spake the verse which sayeth, If I go to the right the water will
destroy me, and if I go to the left the lion will kill me, and if I turn back
there is the fire.
XXIII
Now the Moors of Valencia being in this great misery because of the siege which
the Cid laid unto the town, Abeniaf bethought him that he would send a messenger
to the King of Zaragoza, and beseech him to come to his succour, even as he had
succoured the grandson of Alimaymon, when the Lord of Denia and Tortosa came
against him. And the good men of the town took counsel whether they should say
in these letters, To you the King, or whether they should humble themselves
before him and call him Lord; and they debated upon this for three days, and
agreed that they would call him Lord, that he might have the more compassion
upon them. And though Abeniaf was troubled at heart at this determination,
nevertheless he said in the letter as they had appointed. And he called a Moor
who spake the mixed language, and instructed him how to get out of the city by
night, so that the Christians might not see him, and told him that when he had
given that letter to the King of Zaragoza, the King would give him garments, and
a horse, and a mule to ride on, and that he himself would show favour unto him
as long as he lived. So the messenger departed with the letter. And the famine
in the town waxed greater, and food was not now bought by the cafiz, neither by
the fanega, but by ounces, or at most by the pound. And the pound of wheat cost
a maravedi and a half, and that of barley a maravedi, and that of panic a
maravedi and a quarter, and of pulse a maravedi, and of flax-seed three parts of
a maravedi, and of cheese three dineros, and of honey three, and of figs one;
and the panilla of oil was eight dineros, and the pound of colewort five, and
the ounce of carobs three parts of a dinero, and the ounce of onions the same,
and the head of garlick the same; and a pound of beast's flesh was six maravedis,
and grape-stones were half a dinero the pound, and the skins of kine and of
beasts five dineros: the dinero was silver, for there was no money current save
silver and gold.
XXIV
When the King of Zaragoza saw the letter which Abeniaf and the men of Valencia
had sent him, he gave no heed to it, neither cared he for the messenger, neither
did he give him even a draught of water for his reward. And the messenger waited
for his answer from day to day for three weeks, and he dared not depart without
it for fear lest Abeniaf should slay him; and he thought also that some of the
King's people would come out after him and slay him upon the way: and he was
urgent for his answer, and began at last to cry aloud at the gate of the King's
house, so that the King asked of what that messenger was making his complaint.
Then they told the King that he wanted his answer that he might be gone. And the
King wrote an answer and said, that this aid which they besought of him he could
not give till he had sent to ask help of King Don Alfonso of Castille, for he
could not else venture to do battle with the Cid. And he exhorted them to defend
themselves the best they could while he procured horsemen from King Don Alfonso
to help them, and that they should from time to time send him word how they went
on. So the messenger returned in great sorrow that he had sped no better, and
that nothing had been given him as Abeniaf had promised: and all this which the
King of Zaragoza said was only delay, and meant nothing. And the famine now
waxed so great that there was no food to sell, and many died of hunger. And many
for great misery went out to the Christians, recking not whether they should be
made captive, or slain, for they thought it better to be slain than to perish
for lack of food. And Abeniaf searched all the houses in the town for food, and
where he found any store, he left only what would suffice for a fortnight, and
took the rest, saying that in that time the King of Zaragoza would come and
relieve them, for that he only tarried to collect great store of food, that he
might bring it with him. This he said to keep the people quiet, and to encourage
them. And of the food which he carried away he took the most part for himself
and for his guards, and the rest he ordered to be sold in such manner that none
should buy more than would suffice him for the day. And what he took he did not
pay for, and when the people demanded payment he put them off till another day;
and he bade them not complain, for they would be relieved from this misery, and
then he would pay them well. And they who had any food left buried it for fear,
and for this reason there was none to be bought, neither dear nor cheap. And
they who had nothing else, ate herbs, and leather, and electuaries from the
apothecaries which they bought at a great price, and the poor ate the dead
bodies.
XXV
Now Abeniaf had no hope of succour save only from the King of Zaragoza, who had
sent to bid him hold out; and he sent to him every night to tell him of the
great misery there was in Valencia, and the King of Zaragoza returned for answer
that King Don Alfonso had sent him a great body of horsemen with Garcia Ordonez,
and would come himself after them; and he sent in this letter another letter
written with his own hand, and which was to be shown to the good men of the
town, privily; and he said therein, with great oaths to confirm it, that he
would without fail come and deliver them, for it was a great grief to him to
think what they endured, and that this was as great sorrow to him, as theirs
could be. And certain of the King's favourites wrote to Abeniaf also after the
same manner, telling him that he would surely come; howbeit one of his
favourites who had compassion upon the men of Valencia sent a covert message to
warn them, saying, That the King of Zaragoza would build a tower in Alcudia de
Tudela; the meaning of this was, that all the King said, was only to put them
off. Abeniaf did not understand it, and sent to ask him what it was that he had
said; but the other made him no reply. Then the King of Zaragoza sent two
messengers to the Cid with jewels and rich presents, and besought him that he
would not distress the men of Valencia so greatly, and also that he would let
his messengers enter the town that they might speak with Abeniaf. This the Cid
would not permit; howbeit they found means to send in a letter, saying, Wit ye
that I send to entreat the Cid that he will not do so great evil unto you, and I
give him jewels and rich presents that he may do my will in this, and I believe
that he will do it. But if he should not, I will gather together a great host,
and drive him out of the land. Howbeit these were but dissembling words, for the
King of Zaragoza and the Cid were friends and were of one accord, that the Cid
should take Valencia and give it the King, who should give him great treasures
in return.
XXVI
Then the Cid began to treat with a great Moor of the town, named Abenmoxiz that
he should rise up against Abeniaf, and kill him or deliver him into his hands,
and that he would make him Lord over Valencia, and the country as far as Denia.
And Abenmoxiz took counsel with his friends, and they advised him that he should
do this: but Abeniaf knew of their counsel, and took them, and put them in
prison, and gave them in charge to two of his household in whom he had great
trust. And Abenmoxiz talked with his keepers, and told them all that he proposed
to do, and promised them, if they would release him, to reward them greatly when
he had succeeded, saying, that he undertook this with the consent and advice of
the King of Zaragoza: so they were persuaded and promised to join with him. And
when it was night Abenmoxiz and his friends and the two keepers agreed to seize
the Alcazar, which was the place wherein they were imprisoned, and to beat the
alarm, and raise a cry for the King of Zaragoza; and they thought the men of the
town would join with them, and then they would go to the house of Abeniaf and
lay hands on him. And they did accordingly, and beat a drum, and sent a cryer
upon the tower of the Mosque to bid all the people assemble at the Alcazar. And
when the people heard that drum and that cryer they were in great fear, and knew
not what to think: and they assembled some to guard their own houses, other some
to guard the tower, till they knew what it was. And when Abeniaf heard it, he
was greatly dismayed, and he asked of all whom he found at his gates, what the
uproar was, and what this thing might be. In short time all they who were on his
side, both horse and foot, assembled together, and then they knew what it was;
and he bade them go to the Alcazar and take Abenmoxiz, and all that held with
him. Abenmoxiz this while was at the gate of the Alcazar with his little
company, thinking that the whole town would join him; and behold Abeniaf's
company came up and charged him; and he thought to defend himself with the few
that were with him, but the most part fled, and he with four others was taken;
and they led them with great shame to the house of Abeniaf, who sent him to
prison, and gave orders to smite off the heads of the others. And Abeniaf sent
to lay hands on all whom he suspected, and took from them all that they had. And
he sent messengers to the King of Zaragoza to tell him what had chanced, and
they took with them Abenmoxiz prisoner, and they were charged to remain at
Zaragoza, and send him true tidings from thence.
XXVII
Now there was no food to be bought in the city, and the people were in the waves
of death: and men were seen to drop and die in the streets, and the Place of the
Alcazar round about the walls thereof was full of graves, and there was no grave
which had fewer than ten bodies in it. As many as could fled out of the town,
and delivered themselves up to the Christians to be made prisoners. The Cid
thought that they who were the Chiefs within the walls, thrust out the poor and
feeble, that they might be able to hold out longer; and it troubled him, for he
thought to take the town by starving it, and he feared the coming of the
Almoravides. Sometimes it troubled him, and at other times he seemed pleased
that the Moors should come out and give themselves prisoners to his people. Now
it befell that once, at such time as it seemed to please him, some of the chief
men of the town came out in this manner, and counselled him that he should
attack it, for they said the men at arms were few, and weak for hunger, and that
he might presently win it: and the Cid took thought upon this matter, and
resolved to do as they said; and he gathered together his host and advanced
against the gate which is called Belfanhanes, that is to say, the Gate of the
Snake, and they drew nigh unto the wall. And all the people of the town
assembled, even all the force which was therein, and threw down stones from the
gate and from the wall, and shot their arrows, so that neither stone nor arrow
fell in vain; and the Cid and they who had advanced with him went into a bath
which was near the wall, to be under cover from the arrows. And Abeniaf's
company opened the gate and sallied out, seeing that the stones and arrows from
the wall had hurt many, and made the Christians draw back; and the Cid and they
who were with him remained in the bath, being shut up there, for they could not
go out by the door whereat they had entered, and they broke through the wall on
the other side, and the Cid escaped that way, being thus put to rout. Then he
thought himself ill advised in having attacked the town, and in putting himself
into a place from whence he had escaped with such great danger; and he held that
the worst war which he could make upon the men of Valencia was to let them die
of hunger. So he ordered proclamation to be made so loud that all the Moors upon
the walls could hear, bidding all who had come out from the town to return into
it, or he would burn as many as he should find; and saying also that he would
slay all who came out from that time forth. Nevertheless they continued to let
themselves down from the walls, and the Christians took them without his
knowledge. But as many as he found he burnt alive before the walls, so that the
Moors could see them; in one day he burnt eighteen, and cast others alive to the
dogs, who tore them in pieces. They who could hide any sent them away by sea and
by land to be sold; the most whom they sent were young men and girls, for others
they would not take; and many virgins they kept for themselves. And if they knew
that any who came out, had left kinsmen or friends in the town who would give
anything for them, they tortured them before the walls, or hung them from the
towers of the Mosques which were without the city, and stoned them; and when
they in the town saw this they gave ransom for them, that they might be
permitted to dwell in Alcudia with the Moors who were in peace with the Cid.
This continued for two months, till there were only four beasts left in the
town, and one was a mule of Abeniaf's and another was a horse of his son's; and
the people were so wasted that there were but few who had strength to mount the
wall.
XXVIII
The company of Abeniaf and of his kinsmen despaired now of holding out, and of
the help of the King of Zaragoza, or of the Almoravides, and they desired rather
to die than endure this misery. And the good men of the city, as many as were
left, went to an Alfaqui, who was a good man, and one who was held in great
esteem, and besought him to give them counsel, for he saw their great distress,
and how they were out of all hope of succour; and they besought him that he
would go to Abeniaf, and know of him what he thought to do, or what hope he had,
that he let them all perish thus. The Alfaqui gave ear to them, and said that if
they would all hold together, and be of one heart, and show great anger at
having been brought to this misery, he would do all he could to relieve them;
and they promised to do whatever he should advise. Now Abeniaf knew of the talk
which the good men of the town had had with the Alfaqui, and understood that it
was because of the great misery which they endured; and he thought in his heart
that he would humble himself, and do whatever his people should think good. And
the Alfaqui thought that happy man was his dole now that the people had
committed themselves to his guidage, and he went to Abeniaf and communed with
him, and their accord was to give up all hope of succour. And Abeniaf put
himself in the hands of the Alfaqui, that he should go between him and the Cid
and the people of Valencia and make the best terms for them that he could,
seeing that they could no longer hold out, and maintain the town.
XXIX
Here the history relates that at this time Martin Pelaez the Asturian came with
a convoy of laden beasts, carrying provisions to the host of the Cid; and as he
passed near the town the Moors sallied out in great numbers against him; but he,
though he had few with him, defended the convoy right well, and did great hurt
to the Moors, slaying many of them, and drove them into the town. This Martin
Pelaez who is here spoken of, did the Cid make a right good knight, of a coward,
as ye shall hear. When the Cid first began to lay siege to the city of Valencia,
this Martin Pelaez came unto him; he was a knight, a native of Santillana in
Asturias, a hidalgo, great of body and strong of limb, a well made man and of
goodly semblance, but withal a right coward at heart, which he had shown in many
places when he was among feats of arms. And the Cid was sorry when he came unto
him, though he would not let him perceive this; for he knew he was not fit to be
of his company. Howbeit he thought that since he was come he would make him
brave whether he would or not. And when the Cid began to war upon the town, and
sent parties against it twice and thrice a day, as ye have heard, for the Cid
was always upon the alert, there was fighting and tourneying every day. One day
it fell out that the Cid and his kinsmen and friends and vassals were engaged in
a great encounter, and this Martin Pelaez was well armed; and when he saw that
the Moors and Christians were at it, he fled and betook himself to his lodging,
and there hid himself till the Cid returned to dinner. And the Cid saw what
Martin Pelaez did, and when he had conquered the Moors he returned to his
lodging to dinner. Now it was the custom of the Cid to eat at a high table,
seated on his bench, at the head. And Don Alvar Fanez, and Pero Bermudez, and
other precious knights, ate in another part, at high tables, full honourably,
and none other knights whatsoever dared take their seats with them, unless they
were such as deserved to be there; and the others who were not so approved in
arms ate upon estrados, at tables with cushions. This was the order in the house
of the Cid, and every one knew the place where he was to sit at meat, and every
one strove all he could to gain the honour of sitting to eat at the table of Don
Alvar Fanez and his companions, by strenuously behaving himself in all feats of
arms; and thus the honour of the Cid was advanced. This Martin Pelaez, thinking
that none had seen his badness, washed his hands in turn with the other knights,
and would have taken his Place among them. And the Cid went unto him, and took
him by the hand and said, You are not such a one as deserves to sit with these,
for they are worth more than you or than me; but I will have you with me: and he
seated him with himself at table. And he, for lack of understanding, thought
that the Cid did this to honour him above all the others. On the morrow the Cid
and his company rode towards Valencia, and the Moors came out to the tourney;
and Martin Pelaez went out well armed, and was among the foremost who charged
the Moors, and when he was in among them he turned the reins, and went back to
his lodging; and the Cid took heed to all that he did, and saw that though he
had done badly he had done better than the first day. And when the Cid had
driven the Moors into the town he returned to his lodging, and as he sate down
to meat he took this Martin Pelaez by the hand, and seated him with himself, and
bade him eat with him in the same dish, for he deserved more that day than he
had the first. And the knight gave heed to that saying, and was abashed; howbeit
he did as the Cid commanded him: and after he had dined he went to his lodging
and began to think upon what the Cid had said unto him, and perceived that he
had seen all the baseness which he had done; and then he understood that for
this cause he would not let him sit at board with the other knights who were
precious in arms, but had seated him with himself, more to affront him than to
do him honour, for there were other knights there better than he, and he did not
show them that honour. Then resolved he in his heart to do better than he had
done heretofore. Another day the Cid and his company and Martin Pelaez rode
towards Valencia, and the Moors came out to the tourney full resolutely, and
Martin Pelaez was among the first, and charged them right boldly; and he smote
down and slew presently a good knight, and he lost there all the bad fear which
he had had, and was that day one of the best knights there: and as long as the
tourney lasted there he remained, smiting and slaying and overthrowing the
Moors, till they were driven within the gates, in such manner that the Moors
marvelled at him, and asked where that Devil came from, for they had never seen
him before. And the Cid was in a place where he could see all that was going on,
and he gave good heed to him, and had great pleasure in beholding him, to see
how well he had forgotten the great fear which he was wont to have. And when the
Moors were shut up within the town, the Cid and all his people returned to their
lodging, and Martin Pelaez full leisurely and quietly went to his lodging also,
like a good knight. And when it was the hour of eating the Cid waited for Martin
Pelaez, and when he came, and they had washed, the Cid took him by the hand and
said, My friend, you are not such a one as deserves to sit with me from
henceforth, but sit you here with Don Alvar Fanez, and with these other good
knights, for the good feats which you have done this day have made you a
companion for them; and from that day forward he was placed in the company of
the good. And the history saith that from that day forward this knight Martin
Pelaez was a right good one, and a right valiant, and a right precious, in all
places where he chanced among feats of arms, and he lived always with the Cid,
and served him right well and truly. And the history saith, that after the Cid
had won the city of Valencia, on the day when they conquered and discomfited the
King of Seville, this Martin Pelaez was so good a one, that setting aside the
body of the Cid himself, there was no such good knight there, nor one who bore
such part, as well in the battle as in the pursuit. And so great was the
mortality which he made among the Moors that day, that when he returned from the
business the sleeves of his mail were clotted with blood, up to the elbow;
insomuch that for what he did that day his name is written in this history, that
it may never die. And when the Cid saw him come in that guise, he did him great
honour, such as he never had done to any knight before that day, and from
thenceforward gave him a place in all his actions and in all his secrets, and he
was his great friend. In this knight Martin Pelaez was fulfilled the example
which saith, that he who betaketh himself to a good tree, hath good shade, and
he who serves a good Lord winneth good guerdon; for by reason of the good
service which he did the Cid, he came to such good state that he was spoken of
as ye have heard: for the Cid knew how to make a good knight, as a good groom
knows how to make a good horse. The history now leaves to speak of him, and
returns to the accord of the Alfaqui and Abeniaf, which they propounded unto the
Cid.
XXX
This Alfaqui sent his messengers to an Almoxarife of the Cid whose name was
Abdalla Adiz, who was a good man and one whom the Cid loved, and who never left
him after he had obtained his favour. And when Abdalla Adiz heard that they
wished to propose terms, he spake with the Cid upon this matter, and the Cid
bade him enter the town, and speak with them, and know of them what they would
have. And he went into the town, and spake with them as the Cid had commanded,
and came out again, and reported unto him what they had said, till he had made
terms between them. Abeniaf sent three good men with him to confirm the terms
which were made, and the covenant was after this manner, that they of Valencia
should send messengers to the King of Zaragoza, and to Ali Abenaxa who was
Adelantado of the Almoravides and Lord of Murcia, beseeching them to succour
them within fifteen days; and if within that time they were not succoured they
should then give up the city to the Cid, with such conditions, that Abeniaf
should remain mighty in the town, as he had been before, his person being secure
and all that he had, and his wives, and his children, and that he should remain
Veedor, that is to say, Overseer, of all the rents of the town, he and the
Almoxarife of the Cid, and a Moor who was called Musa should be Guazil of the
town; this Musa had looked after the affairs of the Cid in the time of King
Yahia, and never forsook him after the death of the King his Lord; and the Cid
made him Alcayde of a Castle, and always found him loyal, and at his service,
and for this reason trusted he in him so as to make him Guazil, who should keep
the keys of the town, with a guard of Almocadenes, and of Christian foot-men of
Almogavares who had been born in the land of the Moors. And it was appointed
that the Cid should dwell in Juballa, in the town which he had made, and that he
should alter none of their privileges, nor of their customs, nor the rents which
they paid, nor their money.
XXXI
Presently on the morrow they sent five good men as messengers to the King of
Zaragoza, and as many more to Murcia; and it had been covenanted that neither of
these messengers should take with him more than fifty maravedis for his journey,
and that they should go by sea as far as Denia, in a ship of the Christians, and
from thence by land. These messengers embarked with their company on board that
ship, and the Cid sent orders to the master thereof not to sail till he came;
and the Cid came himself in his own body and bade them search the messengers to
see if they took with them more than had been agreed; and he found upon them
great riches in gold and in silver and in pearls and in precious stones; part
was their own, and part belonged to other merchants in the city, who thought to
send it to Murcia, not being minded to abide in Valencia: and he took it all,
leaving them no more than fifty maravedis each, according to the covenant. This
was the price of food on the day when these messengers departed: the pound of
wheat was three maravedis, and the pound of barley one and a half, and the pound
of panic three, saving a quarter; the ounce of cheese three dineros, and the
ounce of hemp seed four, and the pound of colewort one maravedi and two dineros
of silver, and the pound of neat-skin one maravedi. In the whole town there was
only one mule of Abeniaf's, and one horse: another horse which belonged to a
Moor he sold to a butcher for three hundred and eighty doblas of gold,
bargaining that he should have ten pounds of the flesh. And the butcher sold the
flesh of that horse at ten maravedis the short pound, and afterwards at twelve,
and the head for twenty doblas of gold.
XXXII
The Moors of Valencia were now something comforted, for they weened that they
should receive help, and the Christians did not now war upon them; nevertheless
they kept guard, and went the rounds, as before, and waited for the day
appointed, as one who looked to be released from prison. And for this reason men
began to bring out the food which they had hidden, and to sell of it, and thus
they went on till the time expired, and the messengers were not returned. And
Abeniaf besought them that they would wait yet three days more, but they made
answer that they would not, for they could bear it no longer. And the Cid sent
unto them bidding them yield up the town, as they had covenanted to do; and he
swore with great oaths, that if they delayed a single hour after the time was
expired, he would not keep the terms which he had made, and moreover that he
would slay the hostages; nevertheless they let a day pass over and above the
term. And then they who made the covenant with the Cid went out unto him and
besought him to come and receive the town, but the Cid said wrathfully to them
that he was not bound to keep the terms, seeing they had let the time appointed
pass; and they yielded themselves into his hands that he should do with them
according to his pleasure; then he was moved to compassion, and had pity upon
them. And Abeniaf and other good men came out, and the writings were made and
were confirmed on both sides, by the Chiefs of the Christians and of the Moors,
and the gates were opened at the hour of noon, upon Thursday the last day of
June, after the feast of St. John, which the Moors call Alhazaro. And when the
gate was opened Abeniaf was there within, with a great company round about him,
both of his own people and of those of the town; and the Christians as they
entered ascended the walls and towers. And Abeniaf asked why so many went up,
for it was not in the terms; but they would not cease for that, and they took
possession of all, little to his liking.
BOOK SEVEN
I
And all the people of the town gathered together, like men risen from their
graves,... yea, like the dead when the trumpet shall sound for the day of
judgment, and men shall come out of their graves and be gathered together before
the Majesty of God. And hucksters came from Alcudia and brought bread and pulse
to sell, and others of the town went out to Alcudia to buy food; and they who
were poor, and had not wherewith to buy, plucked of the herbs of the field and
ate them, and they held themselves rich because they could go out when they
would, and enter in again without fear. And such as were wise among them
abstained from taking much food, fearing what would happen, and they took it
little by little till they had gotten strength; all they who took their fill
died, and the mortality among them was so great that all the fields were full of
graves.
II
On the following day after the Christians had taken possession of the town, the
Cid entered it with a great company, and he ascended the highest tower of the
wall, and beheld all the city; and the Moors came unto him, and kissed his hand,
saying he was welcome. And the Cid did great honour unto them. And then he gave
order that all the windows of the towers which looked in upon the town should be
closed up, that the Christians might not see what the Moors did in their houses;
and the Moors thanked him for this greatly. And he commanded and requested the
Christians that they should show great honour to the Moors, and respect them,
and greet them when they met: and the Moors thanked the Cid greatly for the
honour which the Christians did them, saying that they had never seen so good a
man, nor one so honourable, nor one who had his people under such obedience. III
III
Now Abeniaf thought to have the love of the Cid; and calling to mind the wrath
with which he had formerly been received, because he had not taken a gift with
him, he took now great riches which he had taken from those who sold bread for
so great a price during the siege of Valencia, and this he carried to the Cid as
a present. Among those who had sold it were some men from the Islands of
Majorca, and he took from them all that they had. This the Cid knew, and he
would not accept his gifts. And the Cid caused proclamation to be made in the
town and throughout the whole district thereof, that the honourable men and
knights and castellans should assemble together in the garden of Villa Nueva,
where the Cid at that time sojourned. And when they were all assembled, he went
out unto them, to a place which was made ready with carpets and with mats, and
he made them take their seats before him full honourably, and began to speak
unto them, saying, I am a man who have never possessed a kingdom, neither I nor
any man of my lineage. But the day when I first beheld this city I was well
pleased therewith, and coveted it that I might be its Lord; and I besought the
Lord our God that he would give it me. See now what his power is, for the day
when I sate down before Juballa I had no more than four loaves of bread, and now
by God's mercy I have won Valencia. And if I administer right and justice here
God will let me enjoy it, but if I do evil, and demean myself proudly and
wrongfully, I know that he will take it away. Now then let every one go to his
own lands, and possess them even as he was wont to have and to hold them. He who
shall find his field, or his vineyard, or his garden, desert, let him
incontinently enter thereon; and he who shall find his husbanded, let him pay
him that hath cultivated it the cost of his labour, and of the seed which he
hath sown therein, and remain with his heritage, according to the law of the
Moors. Moreover I have given order that they who collect my dues take from you
no more than the tenth, because so it is appointed by the custom of the Moors,
and it is what ye have been wont to pay. And I have resolved in my heart to hear
your complaints two days in the week, on the Monday and the Thursday; but if
causes should arise which require haste, come to me when ye will and I will give
judgment, for I do not retire with women to sing and to drink, as your Lords
have done, so that ye could obtain no justice, but will myself see to these
things, and watch over ye as friend over his friend, and kinsman over his
kinsman. And I will be Cadi and Guazil, and when dispute happens among ye I will
decide it. When he had said these things they all replied that they prayed God
to preserve him through long and happy years, and four of the most honourable
among them rose and kissed his hands, and the Cid bade them take their seats
again.
IV
Then the Cid spake unto them and said, It is told me that Abeniaf hath done much
evil, and committed great wrong towards some of ye, in that he hath taken great
riches from ye to present them to me, saying, that this he did because ye sold
food for a great price during the siege. But I will accept of no such gift; for
if I were minded to have your riches, I could take them, and need not ask them
neither from him, nor from any other; but thing so unseemly as to take that
which is his from any one, without just cause, I will not do. They who have
gotten wealth thus, God hath given it them; let them go to Abeniaf, and take
back what he hath forced from them, for I will order him to restore the whole.
Then he said, Ye see the riches which I took from the messengers who went to
Murcia; it is mine by right, for I took it in war because they brake the
covenant which they had made, and would have deceived me: nevertheless I will
restore it to the uttermost farthing, that nothing thereof shall be lost. And ye
shall do homage to me that ye will not withdraw yourselves, but will abide here,
and do my bidding in all things, and never depart from the covenant which ye
make with me; for I love ye, and am grieved to think of the great evil and
misery which ye endured from the great famine, and of the mortality which there
was. And if ye had done that before which ye have done now, ye would not have
been brought to these sufferings and have bought the cafiz of wheat at a
thousand maravedis; but I trust in God to bring it to one maravedi. Be ye now
secure in your lands, and till your fields, and rear cattle; for I have given
order to my men that they offer ye no wrong, neither enter into the town to buy
nor to sell; but that they carry on all their dealings in Alcudia, and this I do
that ye may receive no displeasure. Moreover I command them not to take any
captive into the town, but if this should be done, lay ye hands on the captive
and set him free, without fear, and if any one should resist, kill him and fear
not. I myself will not enter your city nor dwell therein, but I will build me a
place beside the Bridge of Alcantara, where I may go and disport myself at
times, and repair when it is needful. When he had said these things he bade them
go their way.
V
Well pleased were the Moors when they departed from him, and they marvelled at
the greatness of his promises, and they set their hearts at rest, and put away
the fear which they had had, thinking all their troubles were over; for in all
the promises which the Cid had made unto them, they believed that he spake
truth; but he said these things only to quiet them, and to make them come to
what he wished, even as came to pass. And when he had done, he sent his
Almoxarife, Abdalla Adiz, to the Custom House, and made him appoint men to
collect the rents of the town for him, which was done accordingly. And when the
Cid had given order concerning his own affairs at his pleasure, the Moors would
fain have entered again into possession of their heritages as he told them; but
they found it all otherwise, for of all the fields which the Christians had
husbanded, they would not yield up one; albeit they let them enter upon such as
were left waste: some said that the Cid had given them the lands that year,
instead of their pay, and other some that they rented them and had paid rent for
the year. So the Moors seeing this, waited till Thursday, when the Cid was to
hear complaints, as he had said unto them. When Thursday came all the honourable
men went to the Garden, but the Cid sent to say unto them that he could not come
out that day, because of other causes which he had to determine; and he desired
that they would go their way for that time, and come again on the Monday: this
was to show his mastery. And when it was Monday they assembled again in the
Garden, and the Cid came out to them, and took his seat upon the estrado, and
the Moors made their complaint. And when he had heard them, he began to make
similitudes, and offer reasons which were not like those which he had spoken the
first day, for he said to them, I ask of ye, whether it is well that I should be
left without men? for if I were without them, I should be like unto one who hath
lost his right arm, or to a bird that hath no wings, or to one who should do
battle and hath neither spear nor sword. The first thing which I have to look to
is to the well-being of my people, that they may live in wealth and honour, so
that they may be able to serve me, and defend my honour: for since it has
pleased God to give me the city of Valencia, I will not that there be any other
Lord here than me. Therefore I say unto you and command you, if you would be
well with me, and would that I should show favour unto you, that ye see how to
deliver that traitor Abeniaf into my hands. Ye all know the great treason which
he committed upon King Yahia, his Lord and yours, how he slew him, and the
misery which he brought upon you in the siege; and since it is not fitting that
a traitor who hath slain his Lord should live among you, and that his treason
should be confounded with your loyalty, see to the obeyment of my command.
VI
When the honourable Moors heard this they were dismayed; verily they knew that
he spake truth touching the death of the King, but it troubled them that he
departed from the promise which he had made; and they made answer that they
would take counsel concerning what he had said, and then reply. Then five of the
best and most honourable among them withdrew, and went to Abdalla Adiz, and said
unto him, Areed us thy reed now the best and truest that thou canst, for thou
art of our law, and oughtest to do this: and the reason why we ask counsel of
thee is this. The Cid promised us many things, and now behold he says nothing to
us of what he said before, but moveth other new reasons, at which great dismay
hath seized us. And because thou better knowest his ways, tell us now what is
his pleasure, for albeit we might wish to do otherwise, this is not a time
wherein anything but what he shall command can be done. When the Almoxarife
heard this he made answer, Good men, it is easy to understand what he would
have, and to do what should be done. We all know the great treason which Abeniaf
committed against ye all in killing your Lord the King: for albeit at that time
ye felt the burden of the Christians, yet was it nothing so great as after he
had killed him, neither did ye suffer such misery. And since God hath brought
him who was the cause to this state, see now by all means how ye may deliver him
into the hands of the Cid. And fear not, neither take thought for the rest; for
though the Cid may do his pleasure in some things, better is it to have him for
Lord, than this traitor who hath brought so much evil upon ye. Moreover the
things of this world soon pass away, and my heart tells me that we shall ere
long come out of the bondage of the Cid, and of the Christians, for the Cid is
well nigh at the full of his days, and we who remain alive after his death,
shall then be masters of our city. When the good men heard what he said, they
thanked him much, and held themselves to be well advised, and said that they
would do willingly what he bade them: and they returned forthwith to the Cid,
and said unto him that they would fulfil his commandment. Incontinently did the
good men dispeed themselves of the Cid, and they went into the city, and
gathered together a great posse of armed men, and went to the place where
Abeniaf dwelt; and they assaulted the house and brake the doors, and entered in
and laid hands on him, and his son, and all his company, and carried them before
the Cid. And the Cid ordered Abeniaf to be cast into prison, and all those who
had taken counsel with him for the death of King Yahia. VII
VII
When this was done, the Cid said unto the good men, Now that ye have fulfilled
my bidding, I hold it good to show favour unto you in that which ye yourselves
shall understand to be fitting for me to grant. Say therefore what ye would
have, and I will do that which I think behoveth me: but in this manner, that my
dwelling place be within the city of Valencia, in the Alcazar, and that my
Christian men have all the fortresses in the city. And when the good men heard
this, they were greatly troubled: howbeit they dissembled the sorrow which they
resented, and said unto him, Sir Cid, order it as you think good, and we consent
thereto. Then said he unto them that he would observe towards them all the uses
and customs of their law, and that he would have the power, and be Lord of all;
and they should till their fields and feed their flocks and herds, and give him
his tenth, and he would take no more. When the Moors heard this they were well
pleased, and since they were to remain in the town, and in their houses and
their inheritances, and with their uses and customs, and that their Mosques were
to be left them, they held themselves not to be badly off. Then they asked the
Cid to let their Guazil be the same as he had first appointed, and that he would
give them for their Cadi the Alfaqui Alhagi, and let him appoint whom he would
to assist him in distributing justice to the Moors; and thus he himself would be
relieved of the wearisomeness of hearing them, save only when any great occasion
might befall. This Alhagi was he who made the lamentation for Valencia, as ye
have heard; and when the Cid was peaceably established in Valencia, he was
converted, and the Cid made him a Christian. And the Cid granted this which they
required, and they kissed his hand, and returned into the town. Nine months did
the Cid hold Valencia besieged, and at the end of that time it fell into his
power, and he obtained possession of the walls, as ye have heard. And one month
he was practising with the Moors that he might keep them quiet, till Abeniaf was
delivered into his hands; and thus ten months were fulfilled, and they were
fulfilled on Thursday the last day of June, in the year of the aera one thousand
one hundred and thirty and one, which was in the year one thousand ninety and
three of the Incarnation of our Lord Jesus Christ. And when the Cid had finished
all his dealings with the Moors, on this day he took horse with all his company
in good array, his banner being carried before him, and his arms behind: and in
this guise, with great rejoicings he entered the city of Valencia. And he
alighted at the Alcazar, and gave order to lodge all his men round about it, and
he bade them plant his banner upon the highest tower of the Alcazar. Glad was
the Campeador, and all they who were with him, when they saw his banner planted
in that place. And from that day forth was the Cid possessed of all the Castles
and fortresses which were in the kingdom of Valencia, and established in what
God had given him, and he and all his people rejoiced. VIII
VIII
On the morrow the Cid sent Abeniaf to Juballa, and they gave him great tortures
till he was at the point of death; and they kept him there two days, and then
brought him to Valencia to the Garden of the Cid, and the Cid gave order that he
should write with his own hand an account of all that he had. And he did this,
and wrote down the carkanets, and rings, and costly garments, and rich apparel
which he had, and also many other precious household things, and the debts which
were due unto him. This the Cid did that he might see if all was there which
Abeniaf had taken when he slew the King his Master; and the writing was read
before the Cid. And the Cid sent for certain Moors who were good and honourable
men, and made Abeniaf be brought before him, and demanded of him. if he had
nothing more than what was there written down; and he answered that he had not:
and he bade him swear this before the Moors, and Abeniaf swore accordingly. Then
the Cid sent privily to make search in all the houses of the friends of Abeniaf,
swearing unto them, that if they had any thing of his and denied it, and it
should afterwards be discovered, he would put them to death, and moreover take
from them all that they had. And they when they heard this, partly in the fear
of the Cid, and partly that they might find favour with him, brought each of
them great riches, saying, Sir, Abeniaf gave us this in keeping, that if it
might be saved, he might share it with us. And he gave order to search and dig
in the houses of Abeniaf, and they found great treasure there in gold and in
silver, and in pearls, and in precious stones, all which a servant discovered
unto them. And when the Cid saw it all before him it pleased him much, and he
called for the Moors before whom Abeniaf had taken the oath, and he took his
seat upon the estrado full nobly, and there in the presence of Christians and
Moors he ordered Abeniaf and all the other prisoners to be brought forth. And he
bade that Alfaqui whom he had made Cadi, and the other good men, judge by what
death he who had slain his Lord deserved to die, according to their law, and who
moreover was perjured, for he had sworn that he possessed nothing more than what
he had set down in writing: and the Cadi and the other Moors said that according
to their law, he and his accomplices should be stoned: This, they said, we find
in our law, but you will do as you think good. Nevertheless we ask mercy of you
for his son, who is but a child; may it please you to set him free, for he hath
no fault in what his father hath done. And the Cid answered, that for the love
of them he pardoned the child, but that he should depart from the city, for he
would not have the son of a traitor dwell therein. And he commanded them that
they should stone Abeniaf and all them who had taken counsel with him for the
death of the King, according as they had given sentence. Then the honourable
Moors rose and kissed his feet and his hands for the mercy which he had shown to
the son of Abeniaf; and they took out Abeniaf to stone him, and other twenty and
two with him. And the Cid bade them come again to him on the morrow, and he
would appoint what should be the manner of his dwelling among them.
IX
That night the Cid spake with Alvar Fanez and with Pero Bermudez, and all them
who were of his council, and they resolved in what manner they would live among
the Moors. And on the morrow the honourable Moors of Valencia assembled together
in the Alcazar as they had been commanded to do, and the Cid took his seat upon
the estrado, and all the honourable men round about him, and he spake unto them
after this manner: Good men of the Aljama of Valencia, ye know how I served and
defended King Yahia your Lord, and ye also, until his death. And I had great
sorrow for him, and strove to revenge him, as ye know, and endured great
hardships in winning Valencia. And since God hath thought it good that I should
be Lord thereof, I will have it for myself, and for those who have holpen me to
win it, saving the sovereignty of King Don Alfonso of Castille, my Lord, whom
God preserve for his service long and happy years. Ye are all now in my power,
to do with ye whatever I will, both with your persons and your riches, and your
wives and your children; but I will not do thus. And I hold it good that the
honourable men among ye who have always been loyal, remain in the city in their
dwellings and with all their family; and that none among ye keep more than one
beast, which shall be a mule, and that ye do not use arms, neither have them in
your possession, except when it is needful and I shall give command. And all the
rest of the people shall go out of the town and dwell in the suburb of Alcudia,
where I was wont to be. Ye shall have two Mosques, one in the city and one in
the suburb; and ye shall have your Alfaquis and follow your own law; and ye
shall have your Cadis, and your Guazil, as I have appointed; and ye shall have
your inheritances, and pay me the tenth of the fruits thereof as your service;
and the power of justice shall be mine, and I will order such money to be coined
as I shall think good. Do ye therefore who are minded to abide with me in the
land, abide: and let those who are not, go, in God's name, and good luck with
them, but they shall take only their own persons, and I will give command to see
them escorted in safety. When the Moors of Valencia heard this they were full
sorrowful; howbeit it was now a time when they could do no otherwise than as he
commanded. And incontinently they began to go out of the city with their wives
and children, all except those whom the Cid had commanded. abide there; and as
the Moors went out the Christians who dwelt in Alcudia entered in. And the
history saith, that so great was the multitude which departed, that they were
two whole days in going out. Great was the joy of the Cid and his people that
day, and from thenceforward he was called My Cid the Campeador, Lord of
Valencia.
X
Now was it bruited abroad throughout all lands, how the Cid Ruydiez had won the
noble city of Valencia. And when Ali Abenaxa the Adelantado of the Almoravides
knew it, he sent his son-in-law the King of Seville to besiege him in Valencia,
and gave him thirty thousand men at arms. And this King came in great haste to
Valencia, and besieged the Cid therein. And the Cid made ready with all his
people, and went out to fight him. And the battle was nigh unto Valencia, beside
the garden which is called the Garden of Villa Nueva; and it was a good battle,
and at length he of the good fortune conquered; and the pursuit continued as far
as Xativa; even so far did the Christians pursue them, smiting and slaying. And
at the passage of the Xucar there might you have seen confusion, and there the
Moors without liking it drank plenty of water. They say that fifteen thousand
Moors died in the river; and the King of Seville fled with three great blows.
This day did Martin Pelaez the Asturian approve himself a right good one: there
was no knight so good that day in arms as he, nor who bore away such honour. And
when the pursuit was ended the Cid returned to the field of battle, and ordered
the spoils of the field and of the tents to be collected. Be it known that this
was a profitable day's work. Every foot soldier shared a hundred marks of silver
that day. And the Cid returned full honourably to Valencia. Great was the joy of
the Christians in the Cid Ruydiez, he who was born in a good hour. His beard was
grown, and continued to grow at great length. My Cid said of his chin, For the
love of King Don Alfonso, who hath banished me from his land, no scissors shall
come upon it, nor shall a hair be cut away, and Moors and Christians shall talk
of it.
XI
That night the Cid took counsel with Alvar Fanez, who departed not from his
side, and with the other honourable men who were of his council, concerning what
should be done: for now that his people were all rich, he feared lest they
should return into their own country, for my Cid saw that if they might go they
would. And Minaya advised him that he should cause proclamation to be made
through the city, that no man should depart without permission of the Cid, and
if any one went who had not dispeeded himself and kist his hand, if he were
overtaken he should lose all that he had, and moreover be fixed upon a stake.
And that they might be more certain, he said unto Minaya that he would take
account of all the people who were with him, both horsemen and foot, and Pero
Bermudez and Martin Antolinez made the roll; and there were found a thousand
knights of lineage, and five hundred and fifty other horsemen, and of foot
soldiers four thousand, besides boys and others; thus many were the people of my
Cid, he of Bivar. And his heart rejoiced, and he smiled and said, Thanks be to
God, Minaya, and to Holy Mary Mother!... we had a smaller company when we left
the house of Bivar! XII
XII
At this time there came a crowned one from the parts of the East, that is to
say, one who was shaven and shorn; his name was the Bishop Don Hieronymo, a full
learned man and a wise, and one who was mighty both on horseback and afoot: and
he came enquiring for the Cid, wishing that he might see himself with the Moors
in the field, for if he could once have his fill of smiting and slaying them,
Christians should never lament him. And when the Cid knew this it pleased him in
his heart, and he took horse and went to visit him, and rejoiced greatly that he
was come; and he resolved to make Valencia a bishopric and give it to this good
Christian. And they took counsel, and it was that on the morrow the Bishop and
his clergy should turn the Mosques into Churches, wherein they might sing
masses, and sacrifice the body of Jesus Christ. And rents were appointed for the
table of the Bishop and for his Canons, and for all the clergy in the city of
Valencia. And nine parish Churches were made. And the greatest was called St.
Pedro's, and another was called St. Mary of the Virtues. This was near the
Alcazar, and there the Cid went oftenest to hear service. After this manner the
Cid ordered his city that it should be a Bishopric, for the honour of the
Catholic faith. God! how joyful was all Christendom that there was a Lord Bishop
in the land of Valencia! XIII
XIII
Now the Cid bethought him of Dona Ximena his wife, and of his daughters Dona
Elvira and Dona Sol, whom he had left in the Monastery of St. Pedro de Cardena;
and he called for Alvar Fanez and Martin Antolinez of Burgos, and spake with
them, and besought them that they would go to Castille, to King Don Alfonso his
Lord, and take him a present from the riches which God-had given them; and the
present should be a hundred horses, saddled and bridled; and that they would
kiss the King's hand for him, and beseech him to send him his wife Dona Ximena,
and his daughters, and that they would tell the King all the mercy which God had
shown him, and how he was at his service with Valencia and with all that he had.
Moreover he bade them take a thousand marks of silver to the Monastery of St.
Pedro de Cardena, and give them to the Abbot, and thirty marks of gold for his
wife and daughters, that they might prepare themselves and come in honourable
guise. And he ordered three hundred marks of gold to be given them, and three
hundred marks of silver, to redeem the chests full of sand which he had pledged
in Burgos to the Jews; and he bade them ask Rachel and Vidas to forgive him the
deceit of the sand, for he had done it because of his great need: and he said,
You, Martin Antolinez, were aiding and abetting herein, but praised be the name
of the Lord for ever, he hath let me quit myself truly; tell them that they
shall have more profit than they asked. And he bade them each take with him his
whole company, that they might be better advised and accompanied, and that Dona
Ximena might come with the greater honour: and the company was this: two hundred
knights who were of Don Alvar Fanez, and fifty of Martin Antolinez: and he
ordered money to be given them for their disbursement, and for all things
needful, in abundance. XIV
XIV
Alvar Fanez and Martin Antolinez went their way, and they found the King in the
city of Palencia. When they arrived he was coming from mass, and seeing this
goodly company of horsemen he stopped in the church porch, and asked who they
were. And it was told him that they were people of the Cid, who came to him with
a full great present. And Alvar Fanez and Martin Antolinez alighted, and came to
the King, and kissed his hand; and he received them right well, and said, What
tidings bring ye me of the Cid, my true vassal, the most honourable knight that
ever was knighted in Castille? Well was Minaya pleased when he heard this, and
he said, A boon, Sir King Don Alfonso, for the love of your Maker! My Cid
sendeth to kiss your hands and your feet, as his natural Lord, at whose service
he is, and from whom he expecteth much bounty and good. You banished him from
the land; but though in another's country, he hath only done you service. Five
pitched battles hath he won since that time, some with Moors and some with bad
Christians; and he hath taken Xerica, and Ondra, and Almenar, and Monviedro
which is a bigger place, and Cebola also, and Castrejon, and Pena Cadiella which
is a strong eminence, and with all the right noble city of Valencia, for the
honour of the faith of Jesus Christ, and of you our Lord and King; and he hath
made it a Bishopric, and made the Honourable Don Hieronymo Bishop thereof with
his own hand. And behold here are a hundred horses of the spoils which he hath
won; they are great and swift, and are all bridled and saddled, and he kisseth
your hand and beseecheth you as his natural Lord to receive them. When the King
heard this he was greatly astonished, and he lifted up his right hand and
blessed himself, and said, As St. Isidro shall keep me, I rejoice in the good
fortune of the Cid, and receive his gift full willingly. But though this pleased
the King it did not please Garcia Ordonez, and he said, It seemeth there is not
a man left in the land of the Moors, that the Cid can thus do his pleasure! And
the King said unto him, Hold thy peace, for in all things he serves me better
than thou. Then Alvar Fanez kissed the King's hand again, and said, Sir, the Cid
beseecheth you of your bounty that he may have his wife Dona Ximena and his two
daughters, that they may go to Valencia unto him, from the Monastery where he
left them, for it is many days since he saw them, and if it please you this
would rejoice him. And the King made answer, It pleases me well, and I will give
them a guard throughout my dominions, that they may be conducted honourably to
the border: when they have past it, the Campeador himself will look to them. And
he said, Hear me! all those whom I have disseized of their inheritances for
following the Campeador, I restore again to the possession thereof, and all
those who desire to serve him I freely licence: let them go in the grace of God.
Moreover the King said, I grant him Valencia and all that he hath won and shall
win hereafter, that he be called Lord thereof, and that he hold it of no other
Lordship save of me, who am his liege Lord. Alvar Fanez and Martin Antolinez
kissed his hand for this in the Cid's name. And the King called a porter, who
should go with them, bearing a writing from the King, that all things needful
should be given unto them so long as they were in his lands. Then Alvar Fanez
and Martin Antolinez dispeeded themselves of the King, and took their way
towards Burgos.
XV
When they reached Burgos they sent for Rachel and for Vidas, and demanded from
them the chests, and paid unto them the three hundred marks of gold and the
three hundred of silver as the Cid had commanded, and they besought them to
forgive the Cid the deceit of the chests, for it was done because of his great
necessity. And they said they heartily forgave him, and held themselves well
paid; and they prayed God to, grant him long life and good health, and to give
him power to advance Christendom, and put down Pagandom. And when it was known
through the city of Burgos the goodness and the gentleness which the Cid had
shown to these merchants in redeeming from them the chests full of sand and
earth and stones, the people held it for a great wonder, and there was not a
place in all Burgos where they did not talk of the gentleness and loyalty of the
Cid; and they besought blessings upon him, and prayed that he and his people
might be advanced in honour. When they had done this, they went to the Monastery
of St. Pedro de Cardena, and the porter of the King went with them, and gave
order everywhere that every thing which they wanted should be given them. If
they were well received, and if there was great joy in St. Pedro de Cardena over
them, it is not a thing to ask, for Dona Ximena and her daughters were like
people beside themselves with the great joy which they had, and they came
running out on foot to meet them, weeping plenteously for great joy. And Alvar
Fanez and Martin Antolinez, when they saw them coming, leapt off their horses,
and went to them, and Minaya embraced Dona Ximena and both his cousins, Dona
Elvira and Dona Sol, and so great was the rejoicing which they made together
that no man can tell it you. And when this great joy was somewhat abated, Dona
Ximena asked how the Cid fared, for since he had parted from her she had heard
no news of him. And Alvar Fanez said he had left him safe and sound in Valencia;
and he bade her and her daughters thank God for the great favour that he had
shown him, for he had won sundry castles from the Moors, and the noble city of
Valencia, whither he was now come to carry her and her daughters, for the Cid
had sent for them, and when he should see them his heart's desire would be
accomplished. When Dona Ximena and her daughters heard this, they set their
knees to the ground, and lifted up their hands and thanked God for the favour he
had shown to the Cid, and to them with him, in giving him the Lordship of
Valencia. While they were preparing for the journey, Alvar Fanez sent three
knights to the Cid to tell him how they had sped with the King, and of the great
favour which they had found at his hands, and how he only tarried now to equip
Dona Ximena, that she might come full honourably. That good one Minaya then
began to deck them out for the journey with the best trappings which could be
found in Burgos: right noble garments did he provide for them, and a great
company, of damsels, and good palfreys, and great mules, which were not bad
ones. And he gave the Abbot the thousand marks of silver which the Cid had sent
for the Monastery, with which to discharge all the debt that Dona Ximena and his
daughters had contracted. Great was the stir throughout all that land of the
honour of the Cid, and of the licence which the King gave to as many as should
chuse to join him; and for this reason full sixty knights came to St. Pedro de
Cardena, and a great number of squires on foot. Don Alvar Fanez was well pleased
to see them, and he promised them that he would obtain the Cid's grace for them,
and would befriend them all he could. Great dole did the Abbot make when they
departed; and he said, As God shall help you, Minaya, kiss the hand of the
Campeador for me. This Monastery will never forget him, to pray for him every
day in the year. The Cid will always prosper more and more. Minaya promised to
do this, and dispeeded himself, and they went their way. Five days they
travelled, and then they came to Medina Celi; and always the porter of the King
was with them, and made all that they wanted be given unto them, even as the
King had commanded. XVI
XVI
Now the three knights whom Alvar Fanez had sent, came to the Cid and delivered
their message. When my Cid heard it his heart rejoiced and he was glad, and he
spake with his mouth and said, He who sends good messengers looks for good
tidings. Blessed be the name of God, since King Don Alfonso rejoices in my good
fortune. And he called for Muno Gustios, and Pero Bermudez, and the Bishop Don
Hieronymo, and bade them take a hundred knights lest there should be need to
fight, and go to Molina, to Abencano, who was his friend and vassal, and bid him
take another hundred knights, and go with them to Medina Celi as fast as they
could go. There, said he, ye will find Alvar Fanez and my wife and daughters;
bring them to me with great honour: I will remain here in Valencia which has
cost me so much; great folly would it be if I were to leave it: I will remain in
it, for I hold it for my heritage. And they did as he commanded them. And when
they came to Molina, Abencano received them right well, and did them great
honour; and though the Cid had bidden him take only one hundred horse, he took
two. On the morrow they went to horse: they crossed the mountains which are
great and wild, and they passed Mata de Toranz without fear, and they thought to
come through the valley of Arbuxedo. There was good look out kept in Medina, and
Alvar Fanez sent two knights to know who they were. They made no tarriance in
doing this, for they had it at heart; one tarried with them, and the other
returned, and said it was the host of the Campeador with Pero Bermudez, and Muno
Gustios, and the Bishop Hieronymo, and the Alcayaz Abencano. This instant, said
Minaya, let us to horse; incontinently this was done, for they would make no
delay. And they rode upon goodly horses with bells at their poitrals and
trappings of sandall silk, and they had their shields round their necks, and
lances with streamers in their hands. Oh, how Alvar Fanez went out from Castille
with these ladies! They who pricked forward, couched their spears and then
raised them, and great joy was there by Salon where they met. The others humbled
themselves to Minaya: when Abencano came up he kissed him on the shoulder, for
such was his custom. In a good day, Minaya, said he, do you bring these ladies,
the wife and daughters of the Cid, whom we all honour. Whatever ill we may wish
him we can do him none;... in peace or in war he will have our wealth, and he
must be a fool who does not acknowledge this truth. Alvar Fanez smiled and told
him he should lose nothing by this service which he had done the Cid; and now,
said he, let us go rest, for the supper is ready. Abencano said he was well
pleased to partake it, and that within three days he would return him the
entertainment two-fold. Then they entered Medina, and Minaya served them; all
were full glad of the service which they had undertaken, and the King's porter
paid for all. The night is gone, morning is come, mass is said, and they go to
horse. They left Medina and past the river Salon, and pricked up Arbuxuelo, and
they crost the plain of Torancio. That good Christian the Bishop Don Hieronymo,
night and day he guarded the ladies; on a goodly horse he rode, and they went
between him and Alvar Fanez. They came to Molina and there were lodged in a good
and rich house, and Abencano the Moor waited on them. Nothing did they want
which they could wish to have; he even had all their beasts new shod, and for
Minaya and the ladies, Lord! how he honoured them! On the morrow they left
Molina, and the Moor went with them. When they were within three leagues of
Valencia, news of their coming was brought to the Cid. Glad was the Cid, never
was he more joyful, never had he such joy, for tidings were come to him of what
he loved best. Two hundred knights did he order out to meet them, others he bade
to keep the Alcazar, and the other high towers, and all the gates and entrances.
And he commanded that they should bring him Bavieca. It was but a short time
since he had won this horse; my Cid, he who girt on sword in a happy hour, did
not yet know if he was a good goer, and if he stopt well. The Bishop Don
Hieronymo, he pricked forward and entered the city. He left his horse and went
to the Church, and collected all the clergy; they put on their surplices, and
with crosses of silver went out to meet the ladies, and that good one Minaya. He
who was born in happy hour made no tarriance; they saddled him Bavieca and threw
his trappings on. My Cid wore light armour, and his surcoat over it: long was
his beard. He went out upon this horse, and ran a career with him; Bavieca was
the name of the horse, and when he was running all marvelled at him: from that
day Bavieca was famous all over Spain. At the end of the course my Cid alighted
and went toward his wife and his daughters. Who can tell the joy that was made
at their meeting? They fell at his feet, and their joy was such that they could
not speak. And he raised them up and embraced them, and kissed them many times,
weeping for joy that he saw them alive. Hear what he said who was born in happy
hour! You dear and honoured wife, and ye my daughters, my heart and my soul;
enter with me into Valencia;... this is the inheritance which I have won for
you. While they were thus rejoicing the Bishop Don Hieronymo came with the
procession. Dona Ximena brought good relicks and other sacred things, which she
gave to ennoble the new Church of Valencia. In this guise they entered the city.
Who can tell the rejoicings that were made that day, throwing at the board, and
killing bulls! My Cid led them to the Alcazar, and took them up upon the highest
tower thereof, and there they looked around and beheld Valencia, how it lay
before them, and the Great Garden with its thick shade, and the sea on the other
side; and they lifted up their hands to thank God. Great honour did the Cid do
to Abencano the Lord of Molina, for all the service which he had done to Dona
Ximena. Then said Abencano, This, Sir, I was bound to do, for since I have been
your vassal I have always been respected, and defended from all my enemies, and
maintained in good estate; how then should I do otherwise than serve you? If I
did not, I should lack understanding. And the Cid thanked him for what he had
done, and what he had said, and promised also to show favour unto him. And
Abencano took his leave and returned to Molina. XVII
XVII
The winter is past, and March is coming in. Three months Dona Ximena had been in
Valencia, when tidings came to the Cid from beyond sea, that King Yucef, the son
of the Miramamolin, who dwelt in Morocco, was coming to lay siege unto Valencia
with fifty thousand men. When the Cid heard this he gave command to store all
his Castles, and had them well repaired. And he had the walls of the city
prepared, and stored it well with food and with all things needful for war, and
gathered together a great power of Christians and of the Moors of his seignory.
Hardly had he done this before he heard that Yucef was near at hand, and coming
as fast as he could come. Then the Cid assembled together the Christians in the
Alcazar, and when they were assembled, he rose upon his feet and said, Friends
and kinsmen and vassals, praised be God and holy Mary Mother, all the good which
I have in the world I have here in Valencia; with hard labour I won the city,
and hold it for my heritage, and for nothing less than death will I leave it. My
daughters and my wife shall see me fight,... they shall see with their own eyes
our manner of living in this land, and how we get our bread. We will go out
against the Moors and give them battle, and God who hath thus far shown favour
unto us will still continue to be our helper. When they heard this they cried
out with one accord that they would do his bidding, and go out with him and
fight under his banner, for certain they were that by his good fortune the Moors
would be overthrown. XVIII
XVIII
On the morrow the Cid took Dona Ximena by the hand, and her daughters with her,
and made them go up upon the highest tower of the Alcazar, and they looked
towards the sea and saw the great power of the Moors, how they came on and drew
nigh, and began to pitch their tents round about Valencia, beating their
tambours and with great uproar. And Ximena's heart failed her, and she asked the
Cid if peradventure God would deliver him from these enemies. Fear not, honoured
woman, said he; you are but lately arrived, and they come to bring you a
present, which shall help marry your daughters. Fear not, for you shall see me
fight by the help of God and holy Mary Mother; my heart kindles because you are
here! The more Moors the more gain! The tambours sounded now with a great
alarum, and the sun was shining... Cheer up, said my Cid;... this is a glorious
day. But Ximena was seized with such fear as if her heart would have broken; she
and her daughters had never been in such fear since the day that they were born.
Then the good Cid Campeador stroked his beard and said, Fear not, all this is
for your good. Before fifteen days are over, if it please God, those tambours
shall be laid before you, and shall be sounded for your pleasure, and then they
shall be given to the Bishop Don Hieronymo, that he may hang them up in the
Church of St. Mary, Mother of God. This vow the Cid Campeador made. Now the
Moors began to enter the gardens which were round about the town, and the
watchman saw them and struck the bell. My Cid looked back and saw Alvar
Salvadores beside him, and he said, Go now, take two hundred horse, and sally
upon yonder Moors who are entering the gardens; let Dona Ximena and her
daughters see the good will you have to serve them. Down went Alvar Salvadores
in great haste, and ordered a bell to be rung which was a signal for two hundred
knights to make ready; for the history saith, that the Cid, by reason that he
was always in war, had appointed such signals for his people, that they knew
when one hundred were called for, and when two, and so forth. Presently they
were ready at the place of meeting, and the gate was opened which was nearest
the gardens where the Moors had entered, without order; and they fell fiercely
upon them, smiting and slaying. Great was the pleasure of the Cid at seeing how
well they behaved themselves. And Dona Ximena and her daughters stood trembling,
like women who had never seen such things before: and when the Cid saw it he
made them seat themselves, so as no longer to behold it. Great liking had the
Bishop Don Hieronymo to see how bravely they fought. Alvar Salvadores and his
companions bestirred themselves so well that they drove the enemy to their
tents, making great mortality among them, and then they turned back, whereat my
Cid was well pleased; but Alvar Salvadores went on, hacking and hewing all
before him, for he thought the ladies were looking on, and he pressed forward so
far, that being without succour he was taken. The others returned to the city,
falling back in brave order till they were out of reach of the enemy: and they
had done no little in that exploit, for they slew above two hundred and fifty
Moors. When my Cid saw that they who eat his bread were returned, he went down
from the tower, and received them right well, and praised them for what they had
done like good knights: howbeit he was full sorrowful for Alvar Salvadores that
he should be in the hands of the Moors, but he trusted in God that he should
deliver him on the morrow. XIX
XIX
And the Cid assembled his chief captains and knights and people, and said unto
them, Kinsmen and friends and vassals, hear me: to-day has been a good day, and
to-morrow shall be a better. Be you all armed and ready in the dark of the
morning; mass shall be said, and the Bishop Don Hieronymo will give us
absolution, and then we will to horse, and out and smite them in the name of the
Creator and of the Apostle Santiago. It is fitter that we should live than that
they should gather in the fruits of this land. But let us take counsel in what
manner we may go forth, so as to receive least hurt, for they are a mighty
power, and we can only defeat them by great mastery in war. When Alvar Fanez
Minaya heard this, he answered and said, Praised be God and your good fortune,
you have achieved greater things than this, and I trust in God's mercy that you
will achieve this also. Give me three hundred horse, and we will go out when the
first cock crows, and put ourselves in ambush in the valley of Albuhera; and
when you have joined battle we will issue out and fall upon them on the other
side, and on one side or the other God will help us. Well was the Cid pleased
with this counsel, and he said that it should be so; and he bade them feed their
horses in time and sup early, and as soon as it was cock-crow come to the Church
of St. Pedro, and hear mass, and shrive themselves, and communicate, and then
take horse in the name of the Trinity, that the soul of him who should die in
the business might go without let to God.
XX
Day is gone, and night is come. At cock-crow they all assembled together in the
Church of St. Pedro, and the Bishop Don Hieronymo sung mass, and they were
shriven and assoyled, and houselled. Great was the absolution which the Bishop
gave them: He who shall die, said he, fighting face forward, I will take his
sins, and God shall have his soul. Then said he, A boon, Cid Don Rodrigo; I have
sung mass to you this morning: let me have the giving the first wounds in this
battle! and the Cid granted him this boon in the name of God. Then being all
ready they went out through the gate which is called the Gate of the Snake, for
the greatest power of the Moors was on that side, leaving good men to guard the
gates. Alvar Fanez and his company were already gone forth, and had laid their
ambush. Four thousand, lacking thirty, were they who went out with my Cid, with
a good will, to attack fifty thousand. They went through all the narrow places,
and bad passes, and leaving the ambush on the left, struck to the right hand, so
as to get the Moors between them and the town. And the Cid put his battles in
good array, and bade Pero Bermudez bear his banner. When the Moors saw this they
were greatly amazed; and they harnessed themselves in great haste, and came out
of their tents. Then the Cid bade his banner move on, and the Bishop Don
Hieronymo pricked forward with his company, and laid on with such guise, that
the hosts were soon mingled together. Then might you have seen many a horse
running about the field with the saddle under his belly, and many a horseman in
evil plight upon the ground. Great was the smiting and slaying in short time;
but by reason that the Moors were so great a number, they bore hard upon the
Christians, and were in the hour of overcoming them. And the Cid began to
encourage them with a loud voice, shouting God and Santiago! And Alvar Fanez at
this time issued out from ambush, and fell upon them, on the side which was
nearest the sea; and the Moors thought that a great power had arrived to the
Cid's succour, and they were dismayed, and began to fly. And the Cid and his
people pursued, punishing them in a bad way. If we should wish to tell you how
every one behaved himself in this battle, it is a thing which could not be done,
for all did so well that no man can relate their feats. And the Cid Ruydiez did
so well, and made such mortality among the Moors, that the blood ran from his
wrist to his elbow! great pleasure had he in his horse Bavieca that day, to find
himself so well mounted. And in the pursuit he came up to King Yucef, and smote
him three times: but the King escaped from under the sword, for the horse of the
Cid passed on in his course, and when he turned, the King being on a fleet
horse, was far off, so that he might not be overtaken; and he got into a Castle
called Guyera, for so far did the Christians pursue them, smiting and slaying,
and giving them no respite, so that hardly fifteen thousand escaped of fifty
that they were. They who were in the ships, when they saw this great overthrow,
fled to Denia. XXI
XXI
Then the Cid and his people returned to the field and began to plunder the
tents. And the spoil was so great that there was no end to the riches, in gold
and in silver, and in horses and arms, so that men knew not what to leave and
what to take. And they found one tent which had been King Yucef's; never man saw
so noble a thing as that tent was; and there were great riches therein, and
there also did they find Alvar Salvadores, who had been made prisoner the
yesterday, as ye have heard. Greatly did the Cid rejoice when he saw him alive
and sound, and he ordered his chains to be taken off; and then he left Alvar
Fanez to look to the spoil, and went into Valencia with a hundred knights. His
wrinkled brow was seen, for he had taken off his helmet, and in this manner he
entered, upon Bavieca, sword in hand. Great joy had Dona Ximena and her
daughters, who were awaiting him, when they saw him come riding in; and he stopt
when he came to them, and said, Great honour have I won for you, while you kept
Valencia this day! God and the Saints have sent us goodly gain, upon your
coming. Look, with a bloody sword, and a horse all sweat, this is the way that
we conquer the Moors! Pray God that I may live yet awhile for your sakes, and
you shall enter into great honour, and they shall kiss your hands. Then my Cid
alighted when he had said this, and the ladies knelt down before him, and kissed
his hand, and wished him long life. Then they entered the Palace with him, and
took their seats upon the precious benches. Wife Dona Ximena, said he, these
damsels who have served you so well, I will give in marriage to these my
vassals, and to every one of them two hundred marks of silver, that it may be
known in Castille what they have got by their services. Your daughters' marriage
will come in time. And they all rose and kissed his hand; and great was the joy
in the Palace, and it was done according as the Cid had said. XXII
XXII
Alvar Fanez this while was in the field writing and taking account of the spoil:
but the tents and arms and precious garments were so many that they cannot be
told, and the horses were beyond all reckoning; they ran about the field, and
there was no body to take them, and the Moors of the land got something by that
great overthrow. Nevertheless so many horses were taken that the Campeador had
to his share of the good ones a thousand and five hundred. Well might the others
have good store when he had so many. And my Cid won in this battle from King
Yucef, his good sword Tizona, which is to say, the firebrand. The tent of the
King of Morocco, which was supported by two pillars wrought with gold, he gave
order not to be touched, for he would send it to Alfonso the Castillian. The
Bishop Don Hieronymo, that perfect one with the shaven crown, he had his fill in
that battle, fighting with both hands; no one could tell how many he slew. Great
booty came to him, and moreover the Cid sent him the tithe of his fifth. Glad
were the Christian folk in Valencia for the great booty which they had gotten,
and glad was Dona Ximena and her daughters, and glad were all those ladies who
were married. XXIII
XXIII
King Yucef, after the pursuit was given over, and he saw that he might come
forth from the Castle, fled to Denia, and embarked in his ships, and returned to
Morocco. And thinking every day how badly he had sped, and how he had been
conquered by so few, and how many of his people he had lost, he fell sick and
died. But before he died he besought his brother, who was called Bucar, that for
the tie there was between them, he would take vengeance for the dishonour which
he had received from the Cid Campeador before Valencia; and Bucar promised to do
this, and swore also upon the Koran, which is the book of their law. And
accordingly he came afterwards across the sea, with nine and twenty Kings, as
shall be related when the time comes. XXIV
XXIV
Then the Cid sent Alvar Fanez and Pero Bermudez with a present to King Alfonso
his Lord. And the present which he sent was two hundred horses saddled and
bridled, with each a sword hanging from the saddle-bow: and also the noble tent
which he had won from King Yucef of Morocco. This present he gave, because the
King had sent him his wife and daughters when he asked for them, and because of
the honour which he had done them, and that the King might not speak ill of him
who commanded in Valencia. Alvar Fanez and Pero Bermudez went their way towards
Castille, over sierras and mountains and waters; and they asked where the King
was, and it was told them that he was at Valladolid, and thither they went. And
when they drew nigh unto the city, they sent to let him know of their coming,
and to ask of him whether he thought it good for them to come into the city unto
him, or if he would come out to them, for they were a great company, and the
present a full great one, which he would see better without, than in the town.
And the King thought this best, and he went to horse, and bade all the hidalgos
who were with him do the like. Now the Infantes of Carrion were there, Diego
Gonzalez and Ferrando Gonzalez, the sons of Count Don Gonzalo. And they found
the company of the Cid about half a league from the town, and when the King saw
how many they were, he blest himself, for they seemed like a host. And Minaya
and Pero Bermudez pricked on when they saw him, and came before him, and
alighted, and knelt down, and kissed the ground and kissed both his feet: and he
bade them rise and mount their horses, and would not hear them till they had
mounted, and taken their places one at his right hand, and the other at his
left. And they said, Sir, the Cid commends himself to your grace as his liege
Lord, and thanks you greatly for having sent him with such honour his wife and
daughters. And know, Sir, that since they arrived, he hath achieved a great
victory over the Moors, and their King Yucef of Morocco, the Miramamolin, who
besieged him in Valencia with fifty thousand men. And he went out against them,
and smote them, and hath sent you these two hundred horses from his fifth. Then
Alvar Fanez gave order that the horses should be led forward. And this was the
manner in which they came. The two hundred horses came first, and every one was
led by a child, and every one had a sword hanging from the saddle, on the left
side; and after them came the pages of all the knights in company, carrying
their spears, and then the company, and after them a hundred couple with spears
in rest. And when they had all past by, the King blest himself again, and he
laughed and said that never had so goodly a present been sent before to King of
Spain by his vassal. And Alvar Fanez said moreover, Sir, he hath sent you a
tent, the noblest that ever man saw, which he won in this battle: and the King
gave order that the tent should be spread, and he alighted and went into it, he
and all his people, and he was greatly pleased; and they all said that they had
never seen so noble a tent as this: and the King said he had won many from the
Moors, but never such as this. But albeit that all the others were well pleased,
Count Don Garcia was not so; and he and ten of his lineage talked apart, and
said that this which the Cid had done was to their shame, for they hated the Cid
in their hearts. And King Don Alfonso said, Thanks be to God and to Sir Saint
Isidro of Leon, these horses may do me good service; and he gave three of them
to Minaya, and Pero Bermudez, and bade them chuse, and he ordered food and
clothing to be given them while they remained, and said that he would give them
compleat armour when they returned, such as was fit for them to appear in before
my Cid. And they were lodged, and all things that were needful provided for them
and their people. XXV
XXV
When the Infantes of Carrion, Diego Gonzalez and Ferrando Gonzalez, saw the
noble present which the Cid had sent unto the King, and heard how his riches and
power daily increased, and thought what his wealth must needs be when he had
given those horses out of the fifth of one battle, and moreover that he was Lord
of Valencia: they spake one with the other, and agreed, that if the Cid would
give them his daughters to wife, they should be well married, and become rich
and honourable. And they agreed together that they would talk with the King in
private upon this matter. And they went presently to him, and said, Sir, we
beseech you of your bounty to help us in a thing which will be to your honour;
for we are your vassals, and the richer we are the better able shall we be to
serve you. And the King asked of them what it was they would have, and they then
told him their desire. And the King thought upon it awhile, and then came to
them, and said, Infantes, this thing which you ask lies not in me, but in the
Cid; for it is in his power to marry his daughters, and peradventure he will not
do it as yet. Nevertheless so that ye may not fail for want of my help, I will
send to tell him what ye wish. Then they kissed his hand for this favour. And
the King sent for Alvar Fanez and Pero Bermudez, and went apart with them, and
praised the Cid, and thanked him for the good will which he had to do him
service, and said that he had great desire to see him. Say to him, he said, that
I beseech him to come and meet me, for I would speak with him concerning
something which is to his good and honour. Diego and Ferrando, the Infantes of
Carrion, have said unto me that they would fain wed with his daughters, if it
seemeth good to him; and methinks this would be a good marriage. When Alvar
Fanez and Pero Bermudez heard this, they answered the King, and said, Certain we
are, Sir, that neither in this, nor in anything else will the Cid do aught but
what you, Sir, shall command or advise. When ye have your meeting ye will agree
concerning it as is best. Then they kissed his hand, and took their leave. XXVI
XXVI
On the morrow the messengers of the Cid departed from Valladolid, and took their
way towards Valencia; and when the Cid knew that they were nigh at hand he went
out to meet them, and when he saw them he waxed joyful; and he embraced them,
and asked what tidings of his Lord Alfonso. And they told him how they had sped,
and how greatly the King loved him; and when we departed, said they, he bade us
beseech you to come and meet him anywhere where you will appoint, for he
desireth to speak with you, concerning the marriage of your daughters with the
Infantes of Carrion, if it should please you so to bestow them: now by what the
King said it seemeth unto us that this marriage pleaseth him. And when the Cid
heard this he became thoughtful, and he said to them after awhile, What think ye
of this marriage? And they answered him, Even as it shall please you. And he
said to them, I was banished from my own country, and was dishonoured, and with
hard labour I gained what I have got; and now I stand in the King's favour, and
he asketh of me my daughters for the Infantes of Carrion. They are of high blood
and full orgulous, and I have no liking to this match; but if our Lord the King
adviseth it we can do no otherwise: we will talk of this, and God send it for
the best. So they entered Valencia, and the Cid spake with Dona Ximena touching
this matter, and when she heard it it did not please her; nevertheless she said,
if the King thought it good they could do no otherwise. Then the Cid gave order
to write letters to the King, saying, that he would meet the King as he
commanded, and whatever the King wished that he would do. And he sealed the
letters well, and sent two knights with them. And when the King saw the letters
he was well pleased, and sent others to say that the time of their meeting
should be three weeks after he received these letters, and the place appointed
was upon the Tagus, which is a great river. XXVII
XXVII
Now began they to prepare on both sides for this meeting. He who should relate
to you the great preparations, and the great nobleness which were made for the
nonce, would have much to recount. Who ever saw in Castille so many a precious
mule, and so many a good- going palfrey, and so many great horses, and so many
goodly streamers set upon goodly spears, and shields adorned with gold and with
silver, and mantles, and skins, and rich sendals of Adria? The King sent great
store of food to the banks of the Tagus, where the place of meeting was
appointed. Glad were the Infantes of Carrion, and richly did they bedight
themselves; some things they paid for, and some they went in debt for: great was
their company, and with the King there were many Leonese and Galegos, and
Castillians out of number. My Cid the Campeador made no tarriance in Valencia;
he made ready for the meeting: there was many a great mule, and many a palfrey,
and many a good horse, and many a goodly suit of arms, cloaks, and mantels both
of cloth and of peltry;... great and little are all clad in colours. Alvar Fanez
Minaya, and Pero Bermudez, and Martin Munoz, and Martin Antolinez that worthy
Burgalese, and the Bishop Don Hieronymo that good one with the shaven crown, and
Alvar Alvarez, and Alvar Salvadores, and Muno Gustios that knight of prowess,
and Galind Garcia of Aragon; all these and all the others made ready to go with
the Cid. But he bade Alvar Salvadores and Galind Garcia and all those who were
under them, remain and look with heart and soul to the safety of Valencia, and
not open the gates of the Alcazar neither by day nor by night, for his wife and
daughters were there, in whom he had his heart and soul, and the other ladies
with them; he like a good husband gave order that not one of them should stir
out of the Alcazar till he returned. Then they left Valencia and pricked on more
than apace; more than a thousand knights, all ready for war, were in this
company. All those great horses that paced so well and were so soft of foot, my
Cid won; they were not given to him. XXVIII
XXVIII
King Don Alfonso arrived first by one day at the place of meeting, and when he
heard that the Cid was at hand, he went out with all his honourable men, more
than a long league to meet him. When he who was born in a good hour had his eye
upon the King, he bade his company halt, and with fifteen of the knights whom he
loved best he alighted, and put his hands and his knees to the ground, and took
the herbs of the field between his teeth, as if he would have eaten them,
weeping for great joy;... thus did he know how to humble himself before Alfonso
his Lord; and in this manner he approached his feet and would have kissed them.
And the King drew back and said, The hand, Cid Campeador, not the foot! And the
Cid drew nigh upon his knees and besought grace, saying, In this guise grant me
your love, so that all present may hear. And the King said that he forgave him,
and granted him his love with his heart and soul. And the Cid kissed both his
hands, being still upon his knees; and the King embraced him, and gave him the
kiss of peace. Well pleased were all they who beheld this, save only Alvar Diez
and Garcia Ordonez, for they did not love the Cid. Then went they all towards
the town, the King and the Cid talking together by the way. And the Cid asked
the King to eat with him, and the King answered, Not so, for ye are not
prepared; we arrived yesterday, and ye but now. Eat you and your company
therefore with me, for we have made ready. Today, Cid Campeador, you are my
guest, and to-morrow we will do as pleases you. Now came the Infantes of Carrion
up and humbled themselves before the Cid, and he received them well, and they
promised to do him service. And the company of the Cid came up, and kissed the
King's hand. So they alighted and went to meat; and the King said unto the Cid
that he should eat with him at his table; howbeit he would not. And when the
King saw that he would not take his seat with him, he ordered a high table to be
placed for the Cid and for Count Don Gonzalo, the father of the Infantes of
Carrion. All the while that they ate the King could never look enough at the
Cid, and he marvelled greatly at his beard, that it had grown to such length.
And when they had eaten they were merry, and took their pleasure. And on the
morrow the King and all they who went with him to this meeting, ate with the
Cid, and so well did he prepare for them that all were full joyful, and agreed
in one thing, that they had not eaten better for three years. There was not a
man there who did not eat upon silver, and the King and the chief persons ate
upon dishes and trenchers of gold. And when the Infantes saw this, they had the
marriage more at heart than before. XXIX
XXIX
On the morrow as soon as it was day, the Bishop Don Hieronymo sung mass before
the King, in the oratory of the Cid; and when it was over, the King said before
all who were there assembled, Counts and Infanzones and knights, hear what I
shall say unto the Cid. Cid Ruydiez, the reason wherefore I sent for you to this
meeting was twofold: first, that I might see you, which I greatly desired, for I
love you much because of the many and great services which you have done me,
albeit that at one time I was wroth against you and banished you from the land.
But you so demeaned yourself that you never did me disservice, but contrariwise,
great service both to God and to me, and have won Valencia, and enlarged
Christendom, wherefore I am bound to show favour unto you and to love you
always. The second reason was, that I might ask you for your two daughters Dona
Elvira and Dona Sol, that you would give them in marriage to the Infantes of
Carrion, for this methinks would be a fit marriage, and to your honour and good.
When the Cid heard this, he was in a manner bound to consent, having them thus
demanded from him; and he answered and said, Sir, my daughters are of tender
years and if it might please you, they are yet too young for marriage. I do not
say this as if the Infantes of Carrion were not worthy to match with them, and
with better than they. And the King bade him make no excuse, saying, that he
should esteem himself well served if he gave his consent. Then the Cid said,
Sir, I begat them, and you give them in marriage; both I and they are yours,...
give them to whom you please, and I am pleased therewith. When the King heard
this he was well pleased, and he bade the Infantes kiss the hand of the Cid
Campeador, and incontinently they changed swords before the King, and they did
homage to him, as sons- in-law to their father-in-law. Then the King turned to
the Cid, and said, I thank thee, Ruydiez, that thou hast given me thy daughters
for the Infantes of Carrion: and here I give them to the Infantes to be their
brides; I give them and not you, and I pray God that it may please him, and that
you also may have great joy herein. The Infantes I put into your hands; they
will go with you, and I shall return from hence, and I order that three hundred
marks of silver be given to them for their marriage, and they and your daughters
will all be your children. XXX
XXX
Eight days this meeting lasted; the one day they dined with the King, and the
other with the Cid. Then was it appointed that on the morrow at sunrise every
one should depart to his own home. My Cid then began to give to every one who
would take his gifts, many a great mule, and many a good palfrey, and many a
rich garment,... every one had what he asked,... he said no to none. Threescore
horses did my Cid give away in gifts; well pleased were all they who went to
that meeting. And now they were about to separate, for it was night. The King
took the Infantes by the hand, and delivered them into the power of my Cid the
Campeador,... See here your sons: from this day, Campeador, you will know what
to make of them. And the Cid answered, Sir, may it please you, seeing it is you
who have made this marriage for my daughters, to appoint some one to whom I may
deliver them, and who may give them, as from your hand, to the Infantes. And the
King called for Alvar Fanez Minaya, and said, You are sib to the damsels: I
command you, when you come to Valencia, to take them with your own hands, and
give them to the Infantes, as I should do if that I were there present: and be
you the brides' father. Then said the Cid, Sir, you must accept something from
me at this meeting. I bring for you twenty palfreys, these that are gaily
trapped, and thirty horses fleet of foot, these that are well caparisoned,...
take them, and I kiss your hand. Greatly have you bound me, said King Don
Alfonso; I receive this gift, and God and all Saints grant that it may well be
requited; if I live you shall have something from me. Then my Cid sprung up upon
his horse Bavieca, and he said, Here I say before my Lord the King, that if any
will go with me to the wedding, I think they will get something by it! and he
besought the King that he would let as many go with him as were so minded; and
the King licensed them accordingly. And when they were about to part, the
company that went with the Cid was greater than that which returned with the
King. And the Cid kissed the King's hand and dispeeded himself with his favour,
and the King returned to Castille. XXXI
XXXI
My Cid went his way towards Valencia, and he appointed Pero Bermudez and Muno
Gustios, than whom there were no better two in all his household, to keep
company with the Infantes of Carrion and be their guard, and he bade them spy
out what their conditions were; and this they soon found out. The Count Don
Suero Gonzalez went with the Infantes; he was their father's brother, and had
been their Ayo and bred them up, and badly had he trained them, for he was a man
of great words, good of tongue, and of nothing else good; and full scornful and
orgulous had he made them, so that the Cid was little pleased with them, and
would willingly have broken off the marriage; but he could not, seeing that the
King had made it. And when they reached Valencia, the Cid lodged the Infantes in
the suburb of Alcudia, where he had formerly lodged himself; and all the company
who were come to the marriage were quartered with them. And he went to the
Alcazar. XXXII
XXXII
On the morrow the Cid mounted his horse and rode into Alcudia, and brought the
Infantes his sons-in-law from thence with him into the city to the Alcazar, that
they might see their brides Dona Elvira and Dona Sol. Dona Ximena had her
daughters ready to receive them in full noble garments, for since midnight they
had done nothing but prink and prank themselves. Full richly was the Alcazar set
out that day, with hangings both above and below, purple and samite, and rich
cloth. The Cid entered between the Infantes, and all that noble company went in
after them; and they went into the chief hall of the Alcazar, where Dona Ximena
was with her daughters; and when they saw the Cid and the Infantes, they rose up
and welcomed them right well. And the Cid took his seat upon his bench with one
of the Infantes on one side of him, and one on the other, and the other
honourable men seated themselves on the estrados, each in the place where he
ought to be, and which belonged to him; and they remained awhile silent. Then
the Cid rose and called for Alvar Fanez and said, Thou knowest what my Lord the
King commanded; fulfil now his bidding,... take thy cousins, and deliver them to
the Infantes, for it is the King who gives them in marriage, and not I. And
Alvar Fanez arose and took the damsels one in each hand, and delivered them to
the Infantes, saying, Diego Gonzalez, and Ferrando Gonzalez, I deliver unto you
these damsels, the daughters of the Cid Campeador, by command of King Don
Alfonso my Lord, even as he commanded. Receive you them as your equal helpmates,
as the law of Christ enjoineth. And the Infantes took each his bride by the
hand, and went to the Cid and kissed his hand, and the same did they to their
mother Dona Ximena Gomez: and the Bishop Don Hieronymo espoused them, and they
exchanged rings. When this was done, the Cid went and seated himself on the
estrado with the ladies, he and Dona Ximena in the middle, and beside him he
placed Dona Elvira his eldest daughter, and by her, her spouse the Infante Diego
Gonzalez; and Dona Sol was seated on the other side, by her mother, and the
Infante Ferrando by her. And when they had solaced themselves awhile, the Cid
said that now they would go eat, and that the marriage should be performed on
the morrow, and he besought and commanded the Bishop Don Hieronymo to perform it
in such a manner that no cost should be spared, but that every thing should be
done so compleatly, that they who came from Castille to this wedding might
always have something to tell of. XXXIII
XXXIII
On the morrow they went to the Church of St. Mary, and there the Bishop Don
Hieronymo sate awaiting them, and he blest them all four at the altar. Who can
tell the great nobleness which the Cid displayed at that wedding, the feasts and
the bull-fights, and the throwing at the target, and the throwing canes, and how
many joculars were there, and all the sports which are proper at such weddings?
As soon as they came out of Church they took horse and rode to the Glera; three
times did the Cid change his horse that day; seven targets were set up on the
morrow, and before they went to dinner all seven were broken. Fifteen days did
the feasts at this wedding continue; then all they who had come there to do
honour to the Cid took leave of him and of the Infantes. Who can tell the great
and noble gifts which the Cid gave to them, both to great and little, each
according to his quality, vessels of gold and silver, rich cloth, cloaks, furs,
horses, and money beyond all reckoning, so that all were well pleased. And when
it was told in Castille with what gifts they who had been to the wedding were
returned, many were they who repented that they had not gone there.
BOOK EIGHT
I
Now the history relateth that Gilbert, a sage who wrote the history of the
Moorish Kings who reigned in Africa, saith, that Bucar remembering the oath
which he had made to his brother King Yucef, how he would take vengeance for him
for the dishonour which he had received from the Cid Ruydiez before Valencia,
ordered proclamation to be made throughout the dominions of his father, and
gathered together so great a power of Moors, that among the Captains of his host
there were twenty and nine Kings; this he could well do, for his father was
Miramamolin, which is as much as to say Emperor. And when he had gathered
together this mighty host, he entered into his ships and crost the sea, and came
unto the port of Valencia, and what there befell him with the Cid the history
shall relate in due time.
II
Two years after their marriage did the Infantes of Carrion sojourn in Valencia
in peace and pleasure, to their own great contentment, and their uncle Suero
Gonzalez with them; and at the end of those two years, there came to pass a
great misadventure, by reason of which they fell out with the Cid, in whom there
was no fault. There was a lion in the house of the Cid, who had grown a large
one, and a strong, and was full nimble: three men had the keeping of this lion,
and they kept him in a den which was in a court yard, high up in the palace; and
when they cleansed the court they were wont to shut him up in his den, and
afterward to open the door that he might come out and eat: the Cid kept him for
his pastime, that he might take pleasure with him when he was minded so to do.
Now it was the custom of the Cid to dine every day with his company, and after
he had dined, he was wont to sleep awhile upon his seat. And one day when he had
dined there came a man and told him that a great fleet was arrived in the port
of Valencia, wherein there was a great power of the Moors, whom King Bucar had
brought over, the son of the Miramamolin of Morocco. And when the Cid heard
this, his heart rejoiced and he was glad, for it was nigh three years since he
had had a battle with the Moors. Incontinently he ordered a signal to be made
that all the honourable men who were in the city should assemble together. And
when they were all assembled in the Alcazar and his sons-in-law with them, the
Cid told them the news, and took counsel with them in what manner they should go
out against this great power of the Moors. And when they had taken counsel the
Cid went to sleep upon his seat, and the Infantes and the others sate playing at
tables and chess. Now at this time the men who were keepers of the lion were
cleaning the court, and when they heard the cry that the Moors were coming, they
opened the den, and came down into the palace where the Cid was, and left the
door of the court open. And when the lion had ate his meat and saw that the door
was open he went out of the court and came down into the palace, even into the
hall where they all were; and when they who were there saw him, there was a
great stir among them; but the Infantes of Carrion showed greater cowardice than
all the rest. Ferrando Gonzalez having no shame, neither for the Cid nor for the
others who were present, crept under the seat whereon the Cid was sleeping, and
in his haste he burst his mantle and his doublet also at the shoulders. And
Diego Gonzalez, the other, ran to a postern door, crying, I shall never see
Carrion again! This door opened upon a court yard where there was a wine press,
and he jumped out, and by reason of the great height could not keep on his feet,
but fell among the lees and defiled himself therewith. And all the others who
were in the hall wrapt their cloaks around their arms, and stood round about the
seat whereon the Cid was sleeping, that they might defend him. The noise which
they made awakened the Cid, and he saw the lion coming towards him, and he
lifted up his hand and said, What is this?... and the lion hearing his voice
stood still; and he rose up and took him by the mane, as if he had been a gentle
mastiff, and led him back to the court where he was before, and ordered his
keepers to look better to him for the time to come. And when he had done this he
returned to the hall and took his seat again; and all they who beheld it were
greatly astonished. III
III
After some time Ferrando Gonzalez crept from under the seat where he had hidden
himself, and he came out with a pale face, not having yet lost his fear, and his
brother Diego got from among the lees: and when they who were present saw them
in this plight you never saw such sport as they made; but my Cid forbade their
laughter. And Diego went out to wash himself and change his garments, and he
sent to call his brother forth, and they took counsel together in secret, and
said to each other, Lo now, what great dishonour this Ruydiez our father-in-law
hath done us, for he let this lion loose for the nonce, to put us to shame. But
in an evil day were we born if we do not revenge this upon his daughters. Badly
were we matched with them, and now for the after-feast he hath made this mockery
of us! But we must keep secret this which we bear in mind, and not let him wit
that we are wroth against him, for otherwise he would not let us depart from
hence, neither give us our wives to take with us, and he would take from us the
swords Colada and Tizona which he gave us.... We will therefore turn this thing
into merriment before him and his people, to the end that they may not suspect
what we have at heart. While they were thus devising their uncle Suero Gonzalez
came in, and they told him of their intent. And he counselled them to keep their
wrath secret, as they said, till this stir of the Moors from beyond sea was
over, and then they should demand their wives of the Cid that they might take
them to their own country; This, said he, the Cid can have no reason to deny,
neither for detaining ye longer with him; and when ye are got away far out of
his land, then may ye do what ye will with his daughters, and ill will ye do if
ye know not how to revenge yourselves; so shall ye remove the dishonour from
yourselves, and cast it upon him and his children. This wicked counsel did Suero
Gonzalez give unto his nephews, which he might have well excused giving, and
then both he and they would not have come off so badly as the history will in
due season relate.
IV
After Suero Gonzalez and his nephews had taken this evil counsel together, they
went to their lodging, and on the morrow they went to the Alcazar and came to
the Cid where he was preparing for business. And when they drew nigh, the Cid
rose and welcomed them right well, and they carried a good countenance towards
him, and made sport of what had happened about the lion. And the Cid began to
give order in what array they should go out to battle. While they were in this
discourse, a great cry was heard in the town and a great tumult, and this was
because King Bucar was come with his great power into the place which is called
the Campo del Quarto, which is a league from Valencia, and there he was pitching
his tents; and when this was done the camp made a mighty show, for the history
saith that there were full five thousand pavilions, besides common tents. And
when the Cid heard this, he took both his sons-in-law and Suero Gonzalez with
them, and went upon the highest tower of the Alcazar, and showed them the great
power which King Bucar of Morocco had brought; and when he beheld this great
power he began to laugh and was exceeding glad: but Suero Gonzalez and his
nephews were in great fear: howbeit they would not let it be seen. And when they
came down from the tower the Cid went foremost, and they tarried behind, and
said, If we go into this battle we shall never return to Carrion. Now it so
chanced that Muno Gustios heard them, and he told it to the Cid, and it grieved
the Cid at heart; but he presently made sport of it, and turned to his sons-in-
law, and said, You my sons shall remain in Valencia and guard the town, and we
who are used to this business will go out to battle; and they when they heard
this were ashamed, for they weened that some one had overheard what they said;
and they made answer, God forefend, Cid, that we should abide in Valencia! we
will go with you to the work, and protect your body as if we were your sons, and
you were the Count Don Gonzalo Gomez our father. And the Cid was well pleased
hearing them say this.
V
While they were thus saying, word was brought to the Cid that there was a
messenger from King Bucar at the gate of the town, who would fain speak with
him. The name of this Moor was Ximen de Algezira, and the Cid gave order that he
should be admitted. Now the history saith, God had given such grace to my Cid
that never Moor beheld his face without having great fear of him; and this Ximen
began to gaze upon his countenance, and said nothing, for he could not speak.
And so great was the fear which came upon him that the Cid perceived it, and
bade him take courage and deliver the bidding of his Lord, without fear or
shame, for he was a messenger. And when the Moor heard this he laid aside his
fear, and recovered heart, and delivered his bidding fully, after this wise. Sir
Cid Campeador, King Bucar my Lord hath sent me to thee saying, great wrong hast
thou done him in holding Valencia against him, which belonged to his
forefathers; and moreover thou hast discomfited his brother King Yucef. And now
he is come against thee with twenty and nine Kings, to take vengeance for his
brother, and to win Valencia from thee in spite of thee and of all who are with
thee. Nevertheless, King Bucar saith, that inasmuch as he hath heard that thou
art a wise man and of good understanding, he will show favour unto thee, and let
thee leave Valencia with all the lands thereof, and go into Castille, and take
with thee all that is thine. And if thou wilt not do this he sends to say that
he will fight against Valencia, and take thee and thy wife and thy daughters,
and torment thee grievously, in such manner that all Christians who shall hear
tell of it shall talk thereof for evermore. This is the bidding of my Lord King
Bucar.
VI
When the Cid heard this, notwithstanding he was wroth at heart, he would not
manifest it, but made answer in few words and said, Go tell thy Lord King Bucar
I will not give him up Valencia: great labour did I endure in winning it, and to
no man am I beholding for it in the world, save only to my Lord Jesus Christ,
and to my kinsmen and friends and vassals who aided me to win it. Tell him that
I am not a man to be besieged, and when he does not expect it I will give him
battle in the field; and would that even as he has brought with him twenty and
nine Kings, so he had brought all the Moors of all Pagandom, for with the mercy
of God in which I trust, I should think to conquer them all. Bear this answer to
your Lord, and come here no more with messages, neither on this account nor on
any other. When Ximen de Algezira, the Moorish messenger, heard this, he left
Valencia, and went unto his Lord and told him before the twenty and nine Kings
all that the Cid had said. And they were astonished at the brave words of the
Cid, for they did not think that he would have resisted, so great was their
power, neither did they ween that he would so soon come out to battle. And they
began to give order to set their siege round about Valencia, as the history, and
as Gilbert also relateth. This King Bucar and his brother King Yucef were
kinsmen of Alimaymon, who had been King of Toledo and Valencia, and this was the
reason why Bucar said that Valencia had belonged to his forefathers. VII
VII
No sooner had Ximen, the messenger of King Bucar, left the city, than the Cid
ordered the bell to be struck, at the sound of which all the men at arms in
Valencia were to gather together. Incontinently they all assembled before the
Cid, and he told them all to be ready full early on the morrow to go out and
give battle to the Moors. And they made answer with one accord that they were
well pleased to do this, for they trusted in God and in his good fortune that
they should overcome them. On the morrow therefore at the first cock-crow, they
confessed and communicated, as was their custom, and before the morning brake
they went forth from Valencia. And when they had got through the narrow passes
among the gardens, the Cid set his army in array. The van he gave to Alvar Fanez
Minaya, and to Pero Bermudez who bore his banner; and he gave them five hundred
horsemen, and a thousand and five hundred men a-foot. In the right wing was that
honourable one with the shaven crown, Don Hieronymo the Bishop, with the like
number both of horse and foot; and in the left Martin Antolinez of Burgos and
Alvar Salvadores, with as many more. The Cid came in the rear with a thousand
horsemen all in coats of mail, and two thousand five hundred men a-foot. And in
this array they proceeded till they came in sight of the Moors. As soon as the
Cid saw their tents he ordered his men to slacken their pace, and got upon his
horse Bavieca, and put himself in the front before all his army, and his
sons-in-law the Infantes of Carrion advanced themselves with him. Then the
Bishop Don Hieronymo came to the Cid and said, This day have I said the mass of
the Holy Trinity before you. I left my own country and came to seek you, for the
desire I had to kill some Moors, and to do honour to my order and to my own
hands. Now would I be the foremost in this business; I have my pennon and my
armorial bearing, and will employ them by God's help, that my heart may rejoice.
And my Cid, if you do not for the love of me grant this I will my ways from you.
But the Cid bade him do his pleasure, saying that it would please him also. And
then the great multitude of the Moors began to come out of their tents, and they
formed their battle in haste, and came against the Christians, with the sound of
trumpets and tambours, and with a great uproar; and as they came out upon the
alarm, not expecting that the Cid would come against them so soon, they did not
advance in order, as King Bucar had commanded. And when the Cid saw this, he
ordered his banner to be advanced, and bade his people lay on manfully. The
Bishop Don Hieronymo he pricked forward; two Moors he slew with the two first
thrusts of the lance; the haft broke, and he laid hand on his sword. God,... how
well the Bishop fought! two he slew with the lance and five with the sword; the
Moors came round about him and laid on load of blows, but they could not pierce
his arms. He who was born in happy hour had his eyes upon him, and he took his
shield and placed it before him, and lowered his lance, and gave Bavieca the
spur, that good horse. With heart and soul he went at them, and made his way
into their first battle; seven the Campeador smote down, and four he slew. In
short time they joined battle in such sort that many were slain and many
overthrown, on one side and on the other, and so great was the din of strokes
and of tambours that none could hear what another said; and they smote away
cruelly, without rest or respite. VIII
VIII
Now it came to pass in this battle that the Infante Diego Gonzalez encountered a
Moor of Africa who was of great stature and full valiant withal, and this Moor
came fiercely against him; and when the Infante saw how fiercely he was coming,
he turned his back and fled. No one be. this but Felez Munoz the nephew of the
Cid, who was a squire; he set himself against the Moor with his lance under his
arm, and gave him such a thrust in the breast, that the streamer of the lance
came out all red with blood between his shoulders, and he down'd with the dead
man and took his horse by the bridle, and began to call the Infante Diego
Gonzalez. When the Infante heard himself called by his name he turned his head
to see who called him, and when he saw that it was his cousin Felez Munoz, he
turned and awaited him. And Felez Munoz said, Take this horse, cousin Diego
Gonzalez, and say that you killed the Moor; nobody shall ever know otherwise
from me, unless you give just cause. While they were talking the Cid came up,
after another Moorish knight, whom he reached just as he came up to them, and
smote him with his sword upon the head, so that he split it down to the teeth.
When Felez Munoz saw the Cid, he said, Sir, your son-in-law Don Diego Gonzalez
hath great desire to serve and help you in this day's work, and he hath just
slain a Moor from whom he hath won this horse: and this pleased the Cid much,
for he weened that it was true. And then they all three advanced themselves
towards the midst of the battle, giving great strokes, and smiting and slaying.
Who can tell how marvellously the Bishop Don Hieronymo behaved himself in this
battle, and how well all the rest behaved, each in his way, and above all, the
Cid Campeador, as the greatest and best of all! nevertheless the power of the
Moors was so great that they could not drive them to flight, and the business
was upon the balance even till the hour of nones. Many were the Christians who
died that day among the foot-soldiers; and the dead, Moors and Christians
together, were so many, that the horses could scant move among their bodies. But
after the hour of nones the Cid and his people smote the Moors so sorely that
they could no longer stand against them, and it pleased God and the good fortune
of the Cid that they turned their backs; and the Christians followed, hewing
them down, and smiting and slaying; and they tarried not to lay hands on those
whom they felled, but went on in the pursuit as fast as they could. Then might
you have seen cords broken, and stakes plucked up as the Christians came to the
tents; my Cid's people drove King Bucar's through their camp, and many an
arm with its sleeve-mail was lopt off, and many a head with its helmet fell to
the ground; and horses ran about on all sides without riders. Seven full miles
did the pursuit continue. And while they were thus following their flight the
Cid set eyes upon King Bucar, and made at him to strike him with the sword; and
the Moorish King knew him when he saw him coming; Turn this way, Bucar, cried
the Campeador, you who came from beyond sea, to see the Cid with the long beard.
We must greet each other and cut out a friendship! God confound such friendship,
cried King Bucar, and turned his bridle, and began to fly towards the sea, and
the Cid after him, having great desire to reach him. But King Bucar had a good
horse and a fresh, and the Cid went spurring Bavieca who had had hard work that
day, and he came near his back; and when they were nigh unto the ships, and the
Cid saw that he could not reach him, he darted his sword at him, and struck him
between the shoulders; and King Bucar being badly wounded rode into the sea, and
got to a boat, and the Cid alighted and picked up his sword. And his people came
up, hewing down the Moors before them, and the Moors in their fear of death ran
into the sea, so that twice as many died in the water as in the battle;
nevertheless so many were they who were slain in the field, that they were
thought to be seventeen thousand persons and upward: but a greater number died
in the sea. And so many were they who were taken prisoner, that it was a wonder;
and of the twenty and nine Kings who came with King Bucar, seventeen were slain.
And when the Cid saw that of the Moors some had gotten to the ships and the
others were slain or taken, he returned towards their tents.
IX
My Cid Ruydiez the Campeador returned from the slaughter; the hood of his mail
was thrown back, and the coif upon his head bore the marks of it. And when he
saw his sons-in-law the Infantes of Carrion, he rejoiced over them, and said to
them to do them honour, Come here, my sons, for by your help we have conquered
in this battle. Presently Alvar Fanez came up: the shield which hung from his
neck was all battered: more than twenty Moors had he slain, and the blood was
running from his wrist to his elbow. Thanks be to God, said he, and to the
Father who is on high, and to you, Cid, we have won the day. All these spoils
are yours and your vassals. Then they spoiled the field, where they found great
riches in gold, and in silver, and in pearls, and in precious stones, and in
sumptuous tents, and in horses, and in oxen, which were so many that it was a
wonder. The poorest man among the Christians was made full rich that day. So
great was the spoil that six hundred horses fell to the Cid as his fifth, beside
sumpter beasts and camels, and twelve hundred prisoners; and of the other things
which were taken no man can give account, nor of the treasure which the Cid won
that day in the Campo del Quarto. God be praised! said the Campeador... once I
was poor, but now am I rich in lands and in possessions, and in gold and in
honour. And Moors and Christians both fear me. Even in Morocco, among their
Mosques, do they fear lest I should set upon them some night. Let them fear it!
I shall not go to seek them, but here will I be in Valencia, and by God's help
they shall pay me tribute. Great joy was made in Valencia for this victory, and
great was the joy of the Infantes of Carrion; five thousand marks came to them
for their portion of the spoil. And when they saw themselves so rich, they and
their uncle Suero Gonzalez took counsel together, and confirmed the wicked
resolution which they had taken.
X
One day the companions of the Cid were talking before him of this victory, and
they were saying who were the young knights that had demeaned themselves well in
the battle and in the pursuit, and who had not; but no mention was made of the
Infantes; for though some there were who whispered to each other concerning
them, none would speak in of them before the Cid. And the Infantes saw this, and
took counsel with their uncle, who ought not to have given them the evil counsel
that he did, and they determined forthwith to put their wicked design in
execution. So they went before the Cid, and Ferrando Gonzalez, having enjoined
silence, began to say thus. Cid, thou knowest well the good tie which there is
between thee and us, for we hold thee in the place of a father, and thou didst
receive us as thy sons on the day when thou gavest us thy daughters to be our
wives; and from that day we have always abode with thee, and have always
endeavoured to do that which was to thy service; and if we have at any time
failed therein it hath not been wilfully, but for lack of better understanding.
Now inasmuch as it is long time since we departed from Castille, from our father
and from our mother, and because neither we know how it fares with them, nor
they how it fares with us, we would now, if you and Dona Ximena should so think
good, return unto them, and take our wives with us: so shall our father and our
mother and our kinsmen see how honourably we are mated, and how greatly to our
profit, and our wives shall be put in possession of the towns which we have
given them for their dower, and shall see what is to be the inheritance of the
children whom they may have. And whensoever you shall call upon us, we will be
ready to come and do you service. Then the Cid made answer, weening that this
was spoken without deceit, My sons, I am troubled at what ye say, for when ye
take away my daughters ye take my very heartstrings: nevertheless, it is fitting
that ye do as ye have said. Go when ye will, and I will give unto you such gifts
that it shall be known in Galicia and in Castille and in Leon, with what riches
I have sent my sons-in-law home.
XI
When the Cid had made this reply, he rose from his seat and went to Dona Ximena
his wife, and spake with her and with Alvar Fanez, and told them what had passed
with his sons-in-law, and what answer he had given. Greatly was Dona Ximena
troubled at this, and Alvar Fanez also, that he had consented to what they
asked; and she said, I do not think it is wisely done to let them take our
daughters from us, and carry them into another country; for these our
sons-in-law are traitorous and false at heart, and if I areed them right they
will do some dishonour to our daughters, when there will be none there to call
them to account. And Alvar Fanez was of the same mind; but the Cid was
displeased at this, and marvelled greatly at what they said; and he bade them
speak no more thereof, for God would not let it be so,... neither were the
Infantes of such a race as that they should do this; neither, quoth he, would it
come into their minds to do it, if only because our Lord King Don Alfonso was he
who made the marriage; but if the Devil should tempt them, and they should
commit this wickedness, dearly would it cost them! XII
XII
So the Infantes of Carrion made ready for their departure, and there was a great
stir in Valencia. And the two sisters Dona Elvira and Dona Sol, came and knelt
before the Cid and before Dona Ximena their mother, and said, You send us to the
lands of Carrion, and we must fulfil your command; now then give us your
blessing, and let us have some of your people with us in Carrion, we beseech
you. And the Cid embraced them and kissed them, and the mother kissed them and
embraced them twice as much, and they gave them their blessing, and their
daughters kissed their hands. And the Cid gave unto his sons-in-law great store
of cloth of gold, and of serge, and of wool, and a hundred horses bridled and
saddled, and a hundred mules with all their trappings, and ten cups of gold, and
a hundred vessels of silver, and six hundred marks of silver in dishes and
trenchers and other things. When all this was done they took their departure and
went out of Valencia, and the Cid rode out a long league with them. He looked at
the birds, and the augury was bad, and he thought that these marriages would not
be without some evil. And his heart smote him, and he began to think on what
Dona Ximena had said, and to fear lest evil should befall him from these
sons-in-law, for the manner of their speech was not as it was wont to be. Where
art thou my nephew, where art thou Felez Munoz? thou art the cousin of my
daughters, said he, both in heart and in soul. Go with them even unto Carrion,
and see the possessions which are given them, and come back with tidings
thereof. And Felez Munoz said that he would do this. And the Cid bade him salute
the Moor Abengalvon in his name, with whom they should tarry a night at Molina,
and bid him do service unto his daughters, and his sons-in-law, and accompany
them as far as Medina; and for all that he shall do, said the Cid, I will give
him good guerdon. And when the ladies came to take their leave of their father
the Cid, and of their mother Dona Ximena, great were the lamentations on both
sides, as if their hearts had divined the evil which was to come; and the Cid
strove to comfort them, saying, that he should always think of them, and would
maintain them in good estate: and he gave them his blessing and turned back
towards Valencia, and they went their way with their husbands, and that parting
was like plucking the nail from the flesh. XIII
XIII
So the Infantes of Carrion went their way, by the Campo del Quarto to Chiva, and
to Bonilla, and to Requena, and to Campo-Robres, and they took up their lodging
at Villa Taxo. And on the morrow they took the road to Amaja, and leaving it on
the right came to Adamuz, and passed by Colcha, and rested at Quintana. And when
Abengalvon knew that the daughters of the Cid were coming, he went out joyfully
from Molina to meet them, and pitched tents for them in the field, and had food
brought there in abundance. God, how well he served them! and on the morrow the
Moor gave full rich and noble gifts to the daughters of his Lord the Cid, and to
each of the Infantes he gave a goodly horse. And he took horse himself and rode
on with them, having two hundred knights in his company. They crossed the
mountains of Luzon and passed Arbuxuelo, and came to Salon, and the Moor lodged
them in the place which is called Ansarera; all this he did for the love of the
Cid Campeador. Now the Infantes seeing the riches which this Moor had with him,
took counsel together for treason, and said, Lo now if we could slay this Moor
Abengalvon, we should possess all these riches as safely as if we were in
Carrion, and the Cid could never take vengeance. And a Moor who understood the
Latin of the country, heard them and knew what they said, and he went to
Abengalvon, and said unto him, Acaiaz, that is to say, Sire, take heed, for I
heard the Infantes of Carrion plotting to kill thee. Abengalvon the Moor was a
bold Baron, and when this was told him, he went with his two hundred men before
the Infantes, and what he said to them did not please them. Infantes of Carrion,
he said, tell me, what have I done? I have served ye without guile, and ye have
taken counsel for my death. If it were not for the sake of my Cid, never should
you reach Carrion! I would carry back his daughters to the loyal Campeador, and
so deal with you that it should be talked of over the whole world. But I leave
ye for traitors as ye are. Dona Elvira and Dona Sol, I go with your favour. God
grant that this marriage may please your father! Having said this the good Moor
returned to Molina. XIV
XIV
They went on by Valdespino, and by Parra, and Berrocal, and Val de Endrinas, and
they left Medina Celi on the right, and crost the plain of Barahona, and past
near Berlanga; and they crost the Douro by a ford below the town, and rode on
and came into the Oak-wood of Corpes. The mountains were high, and the trees
thick and lofty, and there were wild beasts in that place. And they came to a
green lawn in the midst of that oak forest, where there was a fountain of clear
water, and there the Infantes gave order that their tents should be pitched; and
they passed the night there, making show of love to their wives, which they
badly fulfilled when the sun was risen, for this was the place where they
thought to put them to shame. Early in the morning they ordered the sumpter
beasts to be laden, and the tent struck, and they sent all their company on, so
that none remained with them, neither man nor woman, but they and their wives
were left alone that they might disport with them at pleasure. And Dona Elvira
said to her husband, Why wouldst thou that we should remain alone in this place?
And he said, Hold thy peace, and thou shalt see! And the Infantes tore away the
mantles from of their wives, and the garments which they wore, save only their
inner garment, and they held them by the hair of their head with one hand and
with the other took the girths of their horses. And the women said, Don Diego
and Don Ferrando, ye have strong swords and of sharp edge; the one is called
Colada and the other Tizona; cut off our heads and we shall become martyrs! But
set not this evil example upon us, for whatever shame ye do unto us shall be to
your own dishonour. But the Infantes heeded not what they said, and beat them
cruelly with the saddle-girths, and kicked them with their spurs, so that their
garments were torn, and stained with blood. Oh, if the Cid Campeador had come
upon them at that hour! And the women cried out, and called upon God and Holy
Mary to have mercy upon them; but the more they cried, the more cruelly did
those Infantes beat and kick them, till they were covered with blood, and
swooned away. Then the Infantes took their mantles and their cloaks, and their
furs of ermine and other garments, and left them for dead, saying, Lie there,
daughters of Cid of Bivar, for it is not fitting that ye should be our wives,
nor that ye should have your dower in the lands of Carrion! We shall see how
your father will avenge you, and we have now avenged ourselves for the shame he
did us with the Lion. And they rode away as they said this, leaving them to the
mountain birds and to the beasts of the forest. Oh, if the Cid Campeador had
come upon them at that hour! And the Infantes rode on glorying in what they had
done, for they said that the daughters of the Cid were worthy to be their
harlots, but not their wives.
XV
When the Infantes, before they committed this great cruelty, ordered their
company to ride forward, Felez Munoz the nephew of the Cid, rode on with the
rest: but this order nothing pleased him, and he was troubled at heart, insomuch
that he went aside from his companions, and struck into the forest, and there
waited privily till he should see his cousins come, or learn what the Infantes
had done to them. Presently he saw the Infantes, and heard what they said to
each other. Certes if they had espied him he could not have escaped death. But
they pricked on not seeing him, and he rode back to the fountain, and there he
found the women lying senseless, and in such plight as ye have heard. And he
made great lamentation over them, saying, Never can it please God that ye my
cousins should receive such dishonour! God and St. Mary give them who have done
this an evil guerdon! for ye never deserved this, neither are ye of a race to
deserve that this or any other evil should betide ye! By this time the women
began to come to themselves, but they could not speak, for their hearts were
breaking. And Felez Munoz called out to them, Cousins! Cousins! Dona Elvira!
Dona Sol! for the love of God rouse yourselves that we may get away before night
comes, or the wild beasts will devour us! and they came to themselves and began
to open their eyes, and saw that he who spake to them was Felez Munoz; and he
said to them, For the love of God take heart and let us be gone; for the
Infantes will soon seek for me, and if God do not befriend us we shall all be
slain. And Dona Sol said to him in her great pain, Cousin, for all that our
father hath deserved at your hands, give us water. Felez Munoz took his hat and
filled it with water and gave it to them. And he comforted them and bade them
take courage, and besought them to bear up. And he placed them upon his horse,
and covered them both with his cloak, and led them through the oak forest, into
the thickest part thereof, and there he made a bed of leaves and of grass, and
laid them on it, and covered them with his cloak, and he sate down by them and
began to weep, for he knew not what he should do; for he had no food, and if he
went to seek it, great danger was there because they were wounded and bloody,
that the wild beasts and the birds of the mountain would attack them; and on the
other hand, unless he went to his uncle the Cid, to tell him of this wickedness,
none other knew what had been done, and thus there would be no vengeance taken.
XVI
XVI
While Felez Munoz was in this great trouble the Infantes joined their company,
and their spurs were bloody and their hands also from the wounds which they had
given their wives. And when their people saw them in this plight, and that their
wives were not with them, they weened that some wickedness had been done; and
all they who were of good heart and understanding among them went apart, to the
number of a hundred, with one who was named Pero Sanchez; and he spake unto
them, saying, Friends, these Infantes have done a foul deed upon their wives,
the daughters of our Lord the Cid; and they are our liege Ladies, for we did
homage to them before their father, and accepted them such; and the Cid made us
knights that we should discharge the duty which we owe to them. Now then, it
behoveth us that we arm ourselves, and demand of the Infantes what they have
done with our ladies, and require them at their hands. And if they will not
deliver them to us, then will we fight against them even to death; for thus
shall we do right, and otherwise we shall be ill spoken of, and not worthy to
live in the world. This was the counsel which Pero Sanchez gave, and they all
held it good and did accordingly. And the Infantes, when they saw them coming
and heard their demand, were greatly afraid, and they said, Go to the fountain
in the Oak-forest of Corpes, and there ye may find them; we left them safe and
sound, and no harm have we done unto them; but we would not take them with us. M
have ye done, replied those knights, to forsake such wives, and the daughters of
such a father, and ill will ye fare for it! And from henceforward, we renounce
all friendship with ye, and defy ye for the Cid, and for ourselves, and for all
his people. And the Infantes could not reply. And when they saw that the
Infantes did not answer, they said, Get ye gone for traitors and false caitiffs:
there is no way in the world by which ye can escape from the enemies whom ye
have now made! But for all this the Infantes made no reply, and went their way.
XVII
XVII
Pero Sanchez and those other knights rode back to the green lawn in the
Oak-forest, where they had left the dames; and when they came to the fountain
they saw that there was blood round about, but the dames were not there; and
they were greatly troubled, and knew not where to seek them. And they went about
the forest seeking them, calling them aloud, and making great lamentation for
the ill that had befallen, and also, because they could not find them. Now Felez
Munoz and the women heard their voices, and were in great fear, for they weened
that it was the Infantes and their company, who were returned with intent to
kill them; and in their great fear they remained still, and would fain have been
far from that place. So Pero Sanchez and they who were with him went about
seeking them in vain. Then spake up a knight called Martin Ferrandez, who was a
native of Burgos, saying, Friends, it boots us to turn back from hence and
follow after the Infantes, and do battle with them, even unto death, because of
this wickedness which they have committed, rather than return to the Cid; for if
we do not strive to take vengeance, we are not worthy to appear before him. And
if, peradventure, we cannot come up with them upon the road, let us go before
the King Don Alfonso, and discover unto him this foul deed, and tell him the
truth thereof, to the intent that he may order justice to be done for such a
thing; for certes, greatly will he be troubled when he knoweth it, and greatly
will he be incensed against them, inasmuch as he it was who besought the Cid to
give them his daughters to wife. And we will not depart from the King's house,
nor take unto ourselves any other Lord till the Cid shall have obtained justice
in this matter. And all those knights held this counsel to be good, and agreed
to do so. And they took their way and followed after the Infantes as fast as
they could, taking no rest; but the Infantes had ridden away full speed, and
they could not overtake them. And when they saw this they went their way to King
Don Alfonso who was at Palencia, and they came before him and kissed his hands,
and then with sorrowful hearts told him of the evil which had befallen the Cid,
in this dishonour done unto his daughters by the Infantes of Carrion. And when
the King heard it he was grievously offended, as one who had great part therein;
and he said unto them, It must needs be, that before many days we shall receive
tidings of this from the Cid Campeador, and then upon his complaint we will
enter the business in such wise, that every one shall have justice. Then Pero
Sanchez and the other knights kissed the King's hands for what he had said; and
they abode in his court, waiting tidings from the Cid. XVIII
XVIII
When Felez Munoz saw that the voices which they heard had ceased, he went after
awhile to a village which was at hand, to seek food for the dames and for
himself; and in this manner he kept them for seven days. And in that village he
found a good man, who was a husbandman, and who lived a godly life with his wife
and with his daughters; and this good man knew the Cid Ruydiez, for the Cid had
lodged in his house, and he had heard tell of his great feats. And when Felez
Munoz knew this he took the man aside, seeing how good a man he was, and how
well he spake of the Cid, and told him what had befallen those dames, and how he
had hidden them in the wood. And when the good man heard it he had great ruth
for them, but he held himself a happy man in that he could do them service; and
he took two asses and went with Felez Munoz to the place where they were hidden,
and took with him his two sons, who were young men. And when the dames saw them
they marvelled who they might be, and were ashamed and would have hidden
themselves; but they could not. And the good man bent his knees before them,
weeping, and said, Ladies, I am at the service of the Cid your father, who hath
many times lodged in my house, and I served him the best I could, and he always
was bountiful towards me. And now, this young man, who saith his name is Felez
Munoz, hath told me the great wrong and dishonour which your husbands, the
Infantes of Carrion, have done unto you. And when I heard it I was moved to
great sorrow, and for the great desire I have to do service to the Cid and to
you, I am come hither, to carry you, if you will be so pleased, upon these
beasts, to my house; for you must not remain in this wild forest, where the
beasts would devour you. And when you are there, I and my wife and my daughters
will serve you the best we can; and you may then send this squire to your
father, and we will keep you secretly and well till your father shall send for
you; this place is not fit for you, for you would die of cold and hunger. When
the good man had said this, Dona Sol turned to Dona Elvira and said, Sister, the
good man saith well, and it is better that we should go with him than remain and
die here, for so shall we see the vengeance which I trust in God our father will
give us. So they gave thanks to God, and to that good man. And he set them upon
his beasts, and led them to the village, when it was now night; and they entered
his house secretly, so that none knew of their coming save the good man and his
family, whom he charged that they should tell no man thereof. And there his wife
and his daughters ministered unto them with pure good will. XIX
XIX
Then these dames wrote a letter to their father the Cid, which was a letter of
credence, that he should believe the tidings which Felez Munoz would deliver,
and they wrote it with the blood from their wounds. And Felez Munoz went his way
towards Valencia; and when he came to Santesteban he spake with Diego Tellez,
who had been of the company of Alvar Fanez, and told him of what had befallen.
He, so soon as he heard this great villainy, took beasts and seemly raiment, and
went for those dames, and brought them from the house of that good man to
Santesteban, and did them all honour that he could. They of Santesteban were
always gentlemen; and they comforted the daughters of the Cid, and there they
were healed of their hurts. In the meantime Felez Munoz proceeded on his
journey, and it came to pass that he met Alvar Fanez Minaya, and Pero Bermudez
on the way, going to the King with a present which the Cid had sent him; and the
present was this,... two hundred horses, from those which he had won in the
battle of Quarto from King Bucar, and a hundred Moorish prisoners, and many good
swords, and many rich saddles. And as Alvar Fanez and Pero Bermudez rode on in
talk, they thought that it was he, and marvelled greatly; and he when he drew
nigh began to tear his hair, and make great lamentation, so that they were
greatly amazed. And they alighted, asking him what it was. And he related unto
them all that had befallen. But when they heard this, who can tell the
lamentation which they made? And they took counsel together what they should do,
and their counsel was this,... that they should proceed to the King, and demand
justice at his hands in the name of the Cid, and that Felez Munoz should proceed
to Valencia. So he told them the name of the good man with whom he had left the
dames, and the place where he dwelt, and also how he had spoken with Diego
Tellez at Santesteban, and then they parted.
XX
Alvar Fanez and Pero Bermudez held on their way, and came to the King, whom they
found in Valladolid. And he received them right well, and asked them for the
Cid, and they kissed his hand and said, Sir, the Cid commends himself to your
grace; he hath had a good affair with King Bucar of Morocco, and hath defeated
him, and nine and twenty Kings came with him, in the field of Quarto, and great
booty did he gain there in gold and in silver, and in horses and tents and
cattle; and he hath slain many and taken many prisoners. And in acknowledgment
of you as his natural Lord, he sends you two hundred horses, and a hundred black
Moors, and many rich saddles and precious swords, beseeching you to accept them
at his hand, in token of the desire he hath to do service to God and to you,
maintaining the faith of Jesus Christ. And King Don Alfonso made answer and
said, that he took the present of the Cid with a right good will, as of the
truest and most honourable vassal that ever Lord had: and he gave order to his
people to receive it, and bade Alvar Fanez and Pero Bermudez seat themselves at
his feet. After a while Alvar Fanez rose and said, Sir, when we departed from
the Cid we left him in great honour and prosperity; but on our way we met a
squire who is his nephew, by name Felez Munoz, and he hath told us the evil and
the dishonour which both we and the Cid endure in the villainy which the
Infantes of Carrion have committed upon his daughters. You, Sir, know how great
this villainy hath been, and how nearly it toucheth you, for the marriage was of
your appointment, and I gave them by your command to the Infantes. Pero Sanchez
hath told you that the dames were dead, as he believed them to be; but we, Sir,
know that they are yet alive, having been grievously hurt and wounded with
bridles and spurs, and stript of their garments,... in which plight Felez Munoz
found them. Certes such a thing as this cannot please God in heaven, and ought
to offend you who are Lord here in your own realm. Now therefore we beseech you
that you take justice for yourself, and give us and the Cid ours. And let not
the Cid be dishonoured in your time, for blessed be God, he hath never been
dishonoured yet, but hath gone on always advancing in honour since King Don
Ferrando your father knighted him in Coimbra. To this the King made answer and
said, God knoweth the trouble which I resent for this dishonour which hath been
done to the Cid, and the more I hear of it the more doth it trouble me, and many
reasons are there why it should; for my own sake, and for the sake of the Cid,
and for the sake of his daughters; but since they are yet alive the evil is not
so great, for as they have been wrongfully put to shame, not meriting such
treatment, they may be rightfully avenged, as my Cortes shall determine.
Moreover it is a grief to me that my vassals the Infantes of Carrion should have
erred so badly and with such cruelty; but since it hath been so I cannot but do
justice. I hold it good therefore to summon them to my Cortes, which I will
assemble for this matter in Toledo, and the time assigned them shall be three
months from this day; and do ye tell the Cid to come there with such of his
people as he shall think good. Glad were Alvar Fanez and Pero Bermudez of this
reply, and they kissed his hand, and dispeeded themselves. And the King ordered
mules to be given them for the dames, with right noble saddles and trappings of
gold and cloth of gold and of wool, with menever and gris. XXI
XXI
Then Alvar Fanez and Pero Bermudez went their way, and Pero Sanchez and his
company departed with them. They went up Val de Esgueva to Penafiel, and by Roa
and Arrueco, and they entered the Oak-forest of Corpes, and Pero Sanchez showed
the place beside the fountain where the villainy had been committed; and they
made such lamentation there as if they had seen the dames lie dead before them.
Then rode they to the village where the good man dwelt, and went to his
dwelling, and good guerdon did they give unto him for the service which he had
done, so that he was full well requited. And they took with them the two sons
and the two daughters of the good man, that they might recompense them for the
good deeds of their father; and the dames gave them in marriage, and made them
full rich, and held them even as brothers and as sisters, because of the service
which they had received from them. When it was known at Santesteban that Minaya
was coming for his kinswomen, the men of that town welcomed him and his company,
and they brought him in payment the efurcion, that is to say, the supper-money,
and it was full great. But Minaya would not accept it at their hands, and he
thanked them, and said, Thanks, men of Santesteban, for what ye have done, and
my Cid the Campeador will thank ye, as I do, and God will give ye your guerdon.
Then went they to visit their kinswomen, and when they saw the dames, who can
tell the great lamentation which was made on both sides? albeit that they
rejoiced to see each other. And Minaya said unto them, By God, cousins, he
knoweth the truth, and your father and mother know it also,... I misdoubted this
when you went away with those false ones; and it grieved me when your father
said that he had given his consent that ye should go, and your mother gainsaid
it also; but we could not prevail, for he said he had consented. Howbeit, since
ye are alive, of evils let us be thankful for the least: you have lost one
marriage, and may gain a better, and the day will come when we shall avenge ye.
That night they rested at Santesteban, and on the morrow they set forward and
took the road towards Atienza, and the men of Santesteban escorted them as far
as the river Damor, to do them pleasure. And they past Alcoceba, and went on to
the King's Ford, and there took up their lodging at the Casa de Berlanga. On the
morrow they lodged at Medina Celi, and from thence they went to Molina, and
Abengalvon came out with a right good will to welcome them, for love of the Cid,
and he did them all the honour that he could. And it was accorded between them
that the dames should rest there some days, because of their weakness, and that
they should send and let the Cid know what had been done. XXII
XXII
Then Pero Bermudez went on to Valencia, and Alvar Fanez and the rest of his
company abode with the dames in Molina. And when Pero Bermudez arrived he found
the Cid Ruydiez just risen with his chivalry from dinner, and when the Cid saw
him he welcomed him right well; howbeit he could not refrain from weeping; for
before this Felez Munoz had told him all. And he stroked his beard and said,
Thanks be to Christ, the Lord of this world, by this beard which no one hath
ever cut, the Infantes of Carrion shall not triumph in this! And he began to
take comfort, hearing how King Don Alfonso had appointed the Cortes. And he took
Pero Bermudez by the hand and led him to Dona Ximena, who wept greatly at seeing
him, and said, Ah, Pero Bermudez, what tidings bringest thou of my daughters?
And he comforted her and said, Weep not, Lady, for I left them alive and well at
Molina, and Alvar Fanez with them; by God's blessing you shall have good
vengeance for them! Then the Cid seated himself near his wife, and Pero Bermudez
took his seat before them, and told them all that he had done, and how the King
had summoned them to the Cortes at Toledo. And he said unto the Cid, My uncle
and Lord, I know not what to say, but ill is my luck that I could not take
vengeance before I returned here; and certes, if I could have found them I would
have died, or have compleated it: but they when they had done this villainy
dared not appear before the King, neither in his Court, and therefore he hath
issued this summons to them that they should come. Manifestly may it be seen
that the King well inclineth to give you justice, if you fail not to demand it.
Now then I beseech you tarry not, but let us to horse and confront them and
accuse them, for this is not a thing to be done leisurely. And the Cid answered
and said, Chafe not thyself, Pero Bermudez, for the man who thinketh by chafing
to expedite his business, leaveth off worse than he began. Be you certain, that
if I die not I shall take vengeance upon those traitors, and I trust in God not
to die till I have taken it. Now therefore, give me no more anger than I feel in
my own heart, for Felez Munoz hath given me enough. I thank my Lord King Don
Alfonso for the answer which he gave you, and for appointing the Cortes, and in
such guise will I appear there as shall gall them who wish ill to me. God
willing, we will take our departure in good time! Do you now return to Molina,
and bring on my daughters, for I would fain see them; and I will talk with them
that they may tell me the whole truth of this thing, that I may know the whole
when I go to the court of the King to demand vengeance. XXIII
XXIII
Pero Bermudez returned the next day to Molina, where Abengalvon had done great
honour to the dames, and to Alvar Fanez, and all that were with him. And they
departed from Molina, and Abengalvon with them, for he would not leave them till
he had brought them to Valencia to his Lord the Cid. And when the Cid knew that
they were drawing nigh he rode out two leagues to meet them, and when they saw
him they made great lamentation, they and all his company, not only the
Christians but the Moors also who were in his service. But my Cid embraced his
daughters, and kissed them both, and smiled and said, Ye are come, my children,
and God will heal you! I accepted this marriage for you, but I could do no
other; by God's pleasure ye shall be better mated hereafter. And when they
reached Valencia and went into the Alcazar to their mother Dona Ximena, who can
tell the lamentation which was made by the mother over her daughters, and the
daughters with their mother, and by the women of their household. Three days did
this great lamentation last. And the Cid thanked Abengalvon, his vassal, for the
honour which he had shown to his children and their company, and promised to
protect him from all who should come against him. And Abengalvon returned to
Molina well pleased.
BOOK NINE
I
My Cid the Campeador made ready to appear at the Cortes in Toledo, and he left
the Bishop Don Hieronymo, and Martin Pelaez the Asturian, to command in
Valencia, and five hundred knights with them, all hidalgos. And he spake with
his daughters, and commanded and besought them to tell him the whole truth, how
this matter had been, and not say the thing which was false; and they did
accordingly, and related unto him all, even as it had befallen them. And the Cid
departed from Valencia, and with him went Alvar Fanez Minaya with two hundred
knights, and Pero Bermudez with one hundred, and Martin Antolinez with fifty,
and Martin Ferrandez with other fifty, and Felez Ferruz and Benito Sanchez with
fifty each;... these were five hundred knights. And there went fifty with Martin
Garcia and Martin Salvadorez, and fifty with Pero Gonzalvez and Martin Munoz,
and Diego Sanchez of Arlanza went with fifty, and Don Nuno, he who colonized
Cubiella, and Alvar Bermudez he who colonized Osma, went with forty, and Gonzalo
Munoz of Orbaneja, and Muno Ravia, and Yvanez Cornejo with sixty, and Muno
Fernandez the Lord of Monteforte, and Gomez Fernandez he who colonized Pampliego
with sixty; and Don Garcia de Roa and Serrazin his brother, Lord of Aza, with
ninety; and Antolin Sanchez of Soria took with him forty knights who were his
children or his kin:... nine hundred knights were they in all. And there went
with them five hundred esquires on foot, all hidalgos, beside those who were
bred in his household, and beside other foot-men, who were many in number. All
these went well clad in right good garments, and with good horses, to serve the
Cid both in Cortes and in the war.
II
King Don Alfonso made no delay, but sent out his letters through Leon and
Santiago, to the Portugueze and the Galicians, and they of Carrion, and the
Castillians, that he would hold a Cortes in Toledo at the end of seven weeks,
and that they who did not appear should no longer be accounted his vassals. At
this greatly were the Infantes of Carrion troubled, for they feared the coming
of my Cid the Campeador. And they took counsel with their kin and prayed the
King that he would hold them excused from that Cortes; and the King made answer,
that nothing but God should excuse them from it, for the Campeador was coming to
demand justice against them, and he, quoth the King, who will not appear, shall
quit my kingdoms. So when they saw that they must needs appear, they took
counsel with the Count Don Garcia, the enemy of my Cid, who always wished him
ill, and they went with the greatest company that they could assemble, thinking
to dismay my Cid the Campeador. And they arrived before him. III
III
When my Cid drew nigh unto Toledo, he sent Alvar Fanez forward to kiss the
King's hand, and let him wit that he should be there that night. When the King
heard this it rejoiced his heart, and he took horse and went out with a great
company to meet him who was born in happy hour; and there went with him his
sons-in-law, the Count Don Anrrich, and the Count Don Remond; this one was the
father of the good Emperor. When they came in sight, the Cid dismounted and fell
to the ground, and would have abased himself to honour his Lord, but the King
cried out to him and said, By St. Isidro this must not be to-day! Mount, Cid, or
I shall not be well pleased! I welcome you with heart and soul;... and my heart
is grieved for your grief. God send that the court be honoured by you! Amen,
said my Cid the Campeador, and he kissed his hand, and afterwards saluted him.
And the Cid said, I thank God that I see you, Sir; and he humbled himself to
Count Don Anrrich, and Count Don Remond, and the others, and said, God save all
our friends, and chiefly you, Sir! my wife Dona Ximena kisses your hand, and my
daughters also, that this thing which hath befallen us, may be found displeasing
unto you. And the King said, That will it be, unless God prevent. So they rode
towards Toledo. And the King said unto him, I have ordered you to be lodged in
my Palaces of Galiana, that you may be near me. And the Cid answered, Gramercy,
Sir! God grant you long life and happy, but in your Palaces there is none who
should be lodged save you. When you hold your Cortes let it be in those Palaces
of Galiana, for there is better room there than in the Alcazar. I will not cross
the Tagus to-night, but will pass the night in St. Servans on this side, and
hold a vigil there. To-morrow I will enter the city, and be in the court before
dinner. The King said that it pleased him well, and he returned into Toledo. And
the Cid went into the Church of St. Servans, and ordered candles to be placed
upon the altar, for he would keep a vigil there; and there he remained with
Minaya and the other good ones, praying to the Lord, and talking in private. The
tents of his company were pitched upon the hills round about. Any one who beheld
them might well have said, that it looked like a great host.
IV
When the King entered the city, he bade his seneschal, Benito Perez, make ready
the Palaces of Galiana for the next day, when the Cortes should begin; and he
fitted the great Palace after this manner. He placed estrados with carpets upon
the ground, and hung the walls with cloth of gold. And in the highest place he
placed the royal chair in which the King should sit; it was a right noble chair
and a rich, which he had won in Toledo, and which had belonged to the Kings
thereof; and round about it right noble estrados were placed for the Counts and
honourable men who were come to the Cortes. Now the Cid knew how they were
fitting up the Palaces of Galiana, and he called for a squire, who was a young
man, one whom he had brought up and in whom he had great trust; he was an
hidalgo, and hight Ferran Alfonso: and the Cid bade him take his ivory seat
which he had won in Valencia, and which had belonged to the Kings thereof, and
place it in the Palace, in the best place, near the seat of the King; and that
none might hurt or do dishonour unto it, he gave him a hundred squires, all
hidalgos, to go with him, and ordered them not to leave it till he should come
there the next day. So when they had dined, they made the seat be taken up, and
went with it to the Palaces of Galiana, and placed it near the seat of the King,
as the Cid had commanded; and all that day and night they remained there
guarding the ivory seat, till the Cid should come and take his place thereon;
every one having his sword hung from his neck. This was a right noble seat, and
of subtle work, so that whoso beheld it would say it was the seat of a good man,
and that it became such a one as the Cid. It was covered with cloth of gold,
underneath which was a cushion.
V
On the morrow, after the King had heard mass, he went into the Palace of Galiana,
where the Cortes was to assemble, and the Infantes of Carrion and the other
Counts and Ricos-omes with him, save the Cid who was not yet come; and when they
who did not love the Cid beheld his ivory seat, they began to make mock of it.
And Count Garcia said to the King, I beseech your Grace, tell me, for whom that
couch is spread beside your seat: for what dame is it made ready; will she come
drest in the almexia... or with white alquinales on her head, or after what
fashion will she be apparelled? Sir, a seat like that is fit for none but your
Grace: give order to take it for yourself, or that it be removed. When Ferran
Alfonso, who was there to guard the ivory seat heard this, he answered and said,
Count, you talk full foolishly, and speak ill of one against whom it behoves you
not to talk. He who is to sit upon this seat is better than you, or than all
your lineage; and he hath ever appeared a man to all his enemies, not like a
woman as you say. If you deny this I will lay hands upon you, and make you
acknowledge it before my Lord the King Don Alfonso, who is here present. And I
am of such a race that you cannot acquit yourself by saying I am not your peer,
and the vantage of half your arms I give you! At these words was the King
greatly troubled, and the Counts also, and all the honourable men who were there
present. And Count Garcia who was an angry man, wrapt his mantle under his arm,
and would have struck Ferran Alfonso, saying, Let me get at the boy who dares
me! And Ferran Alfonso laid hand upon his sword and came forward to meet him,
saying, that if it were not for the King, he would punish him thereright for the
folly which he had uttered. But the King seeing that these words went on from
bad to worse, put them asunder that farther evil might not happen, and he said,
None of ye have reason to speak thus of the seat of the Cid; he won it like a
good knight and a valiant, as he is. There is not a King in the world who
deserves this seat better than my vassal the Cid, and the better and more
honourable he is, the more am I honoured through him. This seat he won in
Valencia, where it had belonged to the Kings thereof: and much gold and silver,
and many precious stones hath he won; and many a battle hath he won both against
Christians and Moors: and of all the spoil which he hath won, he hath always
sent me part, and great presents and full rich, such as never other vassal sent
to his Lord; and this he hath done in acknowledgment that I am his Lord. Ye who
are talking here against him, which of ye hath ever sent me such gifts as he? If
any one be envious, let him achieve such feats as he hath done, and I will seat
him with myself to do him honour.
VI
Now the Cid had performed his vigil in the Church of St. Servans, matins and
primes were said, and mass performed; and then he made ready to go to the Cortes,
and with him went Alvar Fanez Minaya, whom he called his right arm, and Pero
Bermudez, and Muno Gustios, and Martin Antolinez that doughty Burgalese, and
Alvar Alvarez, and Alvar Salvadorez, and Martin Munoz, and Felez Munoz the Cid's
nephew, and Malanda who was a learned man, and Galin Garciez the good one of
Aragon: these and others made ready to go with him, being a hundred of the best
of his company. They wore velmezes under their harness, that they might be able
to bear it, and then their mail, which was as bright as the sun: over this they
had ermine or other skins, laced tight that the armour might not be seen, and
under their cloaks, their swords which were sweet and sharp. He who was born in
happy hour made no tarriance; he drew on his legs hose of fine cloth, and put on
over them shoes which were richly worked. A shirt of ranzal he wore, which was
as white as the sun; all the fastenings were wrought with gold and silver: over
this a brial of gold tissue; and over this a red skin with points of gold. My
Cid the Campeador always wore it. On his head he had a coif of scarlet wrought
with gold, which was made that none might clip the hair of the good Cid. His was
a long beard, and he bound it with a cord. And he bade Alvar Fanez and Pero
Bermudez assemble their companions, and when he saw them he said, If the
Infantes of Carrion should seek a quarrel, where I have a hundred such as these
I may be well without fear! And he said, Let us mount now and go to the Cortes.
We go to make one defiance, and peradventure it may be two or three, through the
folly of those who may stir against us. Ye will be ready to aid me, saying and
doing as I shall call upon ye, always saving the honour and authority of King
Don Alfonso our Lord; see now that none of ye say or do ought amiss, for it
would be unseemly. Then called he for his horse, and bestrode it, and rode to
the Cortes. VII
VII
My Cid and his company alighted at the gate of the Palaces of Galiana, and he
and his people went in gravely, he in the midst and his hundred knights round
about him. When he who was born in happy hour entered, the good King Don Alfonso
rose up, and the Counts Don Anrrich and Don Remond did the like, and so did all
the others, save the curly-headed one of Granon, and they who were on the side
of the Infantes of Carrion. All the others received him with great honour. And
he said unto the King, Sir, where do you bid me sit with these my kinsmen and
friends who are come with me? And the King made answer, Cid, you are such a one,
and have past your time so well to this day, that if you would listen to me and
be commanded by me, I should hold it good that you took your seat with me; for
he who hath conquered Kings, ought to be seated with Kings. But the Cid
answered, That, Sir, would not please God, but I will be at your feet: for by
the favour of the King your father Don Ferrando was I made, his creature and the
creature of your brother King Don Sancho am I, and it behoveth not that he who
receiveth bounty should sit with him who dispenseth it. And the King answered,
Since you will not sit with me, sit on your ivory seat, for you won it like a
good man; and from this day I order that none except King or Prelate sit with
you, for you have conquered so many high-born men, and so many Kings, both
Christians and Moors, that for this reason there is none who is your peer, or
ought to be seated with you. Sit therefore like a King and Lord upon your ivory
seat. Then the Cid kissed the King's hand, and thanked him for what he had said,
and for the honour which he had done him; and he took his seat, and his hundred
knights seated themselves round about him. All who were in the Cortes sate
looking at my Cid and at his long beard which he had bound with a cord; but the
Infantes of Carrion could not look upon him for shame. VIII
VIII
When they were all seated the King gave command that they should be silent; and
when the Cid saw that they were all still, he rose and spake after this manner.
Sir King Don Alfonso, I beseech you of your mercy that you would hear me, and
give command that I should be heard, and that you would suffer none to interrupt
me, for I am not a man of speech, neither know I how to set forth my words, and
if they interrupt me I shall be worse. Moreover, Sir, give command that none be
bold enough to utter unseemly words, nor be insolent towards me, lest we should
come to strife in your presence. Then King Don Alfonso rose and said, Hear me,
as God shall help you! Since I have been King I have held only two Cortes, one
in Burgos, and one in Carrion. This third I have assembled here in Toledo for
the love of the Cid, that he may demand justice against the Infantes of Carrion
for the wrongs which we all know. The Counts Don Anrrich and Don Remond shall be
Alcaldes in this cause; and these other Counts who are on either side, give ye
all good heed, for ye are to take cognizance that the right may be decreed. And
I give order, and forbid any one to speak without my command, or to utter aught
insolent against the Cid; and I swear by St. Isidro, that whosoever shall
disturb the Cortes shall lose my love and be banished from the kingdom. I am on
the side of him who shall be found to have the right. Then those Counts who were
appointed Alcaldes were sworn upon the Holy Gospels, that they would judge
between the Cid and the Infantes of Carrion, rightly and truly, according to the
law of Castille and Leon.
IX
When this was done the King bade the Cid make his demand; and the Cid rose and
said, Sir, there is no reason for making long speeches here, which would detain
the Cortes. I demand of the Infantes of Carrion, before you, two swords which I
gave into their keeping; the one is Colada and the other Tizona. I won them like
a man, and gave them to the keeping of the Infantes that they might honour my
daughters with them, and serve you. When they left my daughters in the
Oak-forest of Corpes they chose to have nothing to do with me, and renounced my
love; let them therefore give me back the swords, seeing that they are no longer
my sons- in-law. Then the King commanded the Alcaldes to judge upon this demand
according as they should find the right; and they took counsel and judged, that
the swords should be restored unto the Cid. And Count Don Garcia said they would
talk concerning it; and the Infantes of Carrion talked apart with those who were
on their side, and they thought that they were well off; for that the Cid would
demand nothing more of them, but would leave the Cortes when he had recovered
the swords. So they brought the swords Colada and Tizona, and delivered them to
the King. The King drew the swords, and the whole Court shone with their
brightness: their hilts were of solid gold; all the good men of the Cortes
marvelled at them. And the Cid rose and received them, and kissed the King's
hand, and went back to his ivory seat; and he took the swords in his hand and
looked at them; they could not change them, for the Cid knew them well, and his
whole frame rejoiced, and he smiled from his heart. And he laid them upon his
lap and said, Ah, my swords, Colada and Tizona, truly may I say of you, that you
are the best swords in Spain; and I won you, for I did not get you either by
buying or by barter. I gave ye in keeping to the Infantes of Carrion that they
might do honour to my daughters with ye. But ye were not for them! they kept ye
hungry, and did not feed ye with flesh as ye were wont to be fed. Well is it for
you that ye have escaped that thraldom and are come again to my hands, and happy
man am I to recover you. Then Alvar Fanez rose and kissed the hand of the Cid,
and said, I beseech you give Colada into my keeping while this Cortes shall
last, that I may defend you therewith: and the Cid gave it him and said, Take
it, it hath changed its master for the better. And Pero Bermudez rose and made
the same demand for the sword Tizona, and the Cid gave it him in like manner.
Then the Cid laid hand upon his beard as he was wont to do, and the Infantes of
Carrion and they who were of their side thought that he meant to disturb the
Cortes, and they were greatly afraid; but he sate still like a man of good
understanding, for he was not one who did things lightly.
X
Then the Cid rose and said, Thanks be to God and to you, Sir King, I have
recovered my swords Colada and Tizona. I have now another demand against the
Infantes of Carrion. King Don Alfonso, you well know that it was your pleasure
to bid me meet you at Requena, and I went there in obedience to your command.
And you asked of me my daughters in marriage for the Infantes, and I did not
refuse, in that I would not disobey your command; and you bade me deliver them
to my kinsman here Don Alvar Fanez, and he gave them to the Infantes to be their
wives, and the blessing was given them in the church of St. Mary, according to
the law of Rome. You, Sir, gave them in marriage, not I; and you did it for
good, not for evil; but what they did was after another wise. And though they
are of great blood and honourable, yet would I not have given my daughters to
them, unless in obedience to your command; and this, Sir, you well know, for so
I said unto you. I gave them, when they took my daughters from Valencia, horses
and mules, and cups and vessels of fine gold, and much wrought silver, and many
noble garments, and other gifts, three thousand marks of silver in all, thinking
that I gave it to my daughters whom I loved. Now, Sir, since they have cast my
daughters off, and hold themselves to have been dishonoured in marrying them,
give command that they restore unto me this which is my own, or that they show
cause why they should not. Then might you have seen the Infantes of Carrion in
great chafing. And Count Don Remond called upon them to speak; and they said, We
gave his swords to the Cid Campeador, that he might ask nothing more of us, if
it please the King. But the King said that they must answer to the demand. And
they asked to consult together concerning it; and the King bade them take
counsel and make answer incontinently. So they went apart, and with them eleven
Counts and Ricos-omes who were on their side, but no right or reason could they
find for opposing this demand which the Cid had made. Howbeit Count Don Garcia
spake for them and said, Sir, this which the Cid demands back from them, it is
true that he gave it, but they have expended it in your service; we hold
therefore that they are not bound to make restitution of it, seeing how it hath
been expended. Nevertheless if you hold it to be lawful that they should restore
this money, give order that time be given them to make the payment, and they
will go to Carrion, their inheritance, and there discharge the demand as you
shall decree. When the Count had thus said he sate down. And the Cid arose and
said, Sir, if the Infantes of Carrion have expended aught in your service, it
toucheth not me. You and the Alcaldes whom you have appointed have heard them
admit that I gave them this treasure, and this excuse which they set up; I pray
you let judgment be given whether they are bound to pay it or not. Then King Don
Alfonso answered and said, If the Infantes of Carrion have expended aught in my
service, I am bound to repay it, for the Cid must not lose what is his own: and
he bade the Alcaldes consult together and judge according to what they should
find right. And the Alcaldes having taken counsel gave judgment, that seeing the
Infantes acknowledged the Cid had given them this treasure with his daughters,
and they had abandoned them, they must needs make restitution in the Cortes of
the King thereright: and the King confirmed this sentence, and the Cid rose and
kissed the King's hand. Greatly were the Infantes of Carrion troubled at this
sentence, and they besought the King that he would obtain time for them from the
Cid, in which to make their payment; and the King besought him to grant them
fifteen days, after this manner, that they should not depart from the Court till
they had made the payment, and that they should plight homage for the observance
of this. And the Cid granted what the King desired, and they plighted homage
accordingly in the hands of the King. Then made they their account with the
King, and it was found that what they had expended for his service was two
hundred marks of silver, and the King said that he would repay this, so that
there remained for them two thousand and eight hundred to pay. Who can tell the
trouble in which the Infantes were, to pay this treasure to the Cid, they and
all their kindred and friends, for it was full hard for them to accomplish. And
they took up upon trust horses and mules and wrought silver, and other precious
things, and as they could get them, delivered them over to the Cid. Then might
you have seen many a good-going horse brought there, and many a good mule, and
many a good palfrey, and many a good sword with its mountings. And they sent to
Carrion to their father and mother to help them, for they were in great trouble:
and they raised for them all they could, so that they made up the sum within the
time appointed. And then they thought that the matter was at an end, and that
nothing more would be demanded from them.
XI
After this payment had been made the Cortes assembled again, and the King and
all the honourable men being each in his place, the Cid rose from his ivory
seat, and said, Sir, praise be to God and your favour, I have recovered my
swords, and my treasure; now then I pray you let this other demand be heard
which I have to make against the Infantes. Full hard it is for me to make it,
though I have it rooted in my heart! I say then, let them make answer before
you, and tell why it was that they besought you to marry them with my daughters,
and why they took them away from me from Valencia, when they had it in heart to
dishonour me, and to strike them, and leave them as they were left, in the
Oak-forest of Corpes? Look, Sir, what dishonour they did them! they stript them
of the garments which they had not given them, as if they had been bad women,
and the children of a bad father. With less than mortal defiance I shall not let
them go!... How had I deserved this, Infantes, at your hands? I gave you my
daughters to take with you from Valencia; with great honour and great treasures
gave I them unto you;... Dogs and Traitors,... ye took them from Valencia when
ye did not love them, and with your bridles ye smote and with your spurs ye
spurned and wounded them, and ye left them alone in the Oak-forest, to the wild
beasts, and to the birds of the mountain! King Don Alfonso, they neither
remembered God, nor you, nor me, nor their own good fortune! And here was
fulfilled the saying of the wise man, that harder it is for those who have no
understanding to bear with good than with evil. Praise be to God and to your
grace, such a one am I, and such favour hath God shown me, from the day when I
first had horse and arms, until now, that not only the Infantes of Carrion, but
saving yourself, Sir, there is not a King in Christendom who might not think
himself honoured in marrying with either of my daughters,... how much more then
these traitors!... I beseech you give me justice upon them for the evil and
dishonour which they have done me! And if you and your Cortes will not right me,
through the mercy of God and my own good cause, I will take it myself, for the
offence which they have committed against God d and To the faith, and the faith,
and the truth which they promised and vowed to their wives. I will pull them
down from the honour in which they now are; better than they have I conquered
and made prisoners ere now! and with your license, Sir, to Carrion will I follow
them, even to their inheritance, and there will I besiege them and take them by
the throat, and carry them prisoners to Valencia to my daughters, and there make
them do penance for the crime which they have committed, and feed them with the
food which they deserve. If I do not perform this, call me a flat traitor. When
the King heard this he rose up and said, that it might be seen how he was
offended in this thing. Certes, Cid Ruydiez Campeador, I asked your daughters of
you for the Infantes of Carrion, because, as they well know, they besought me to
do so, I never having thought thereof. It well seemeth now that they were not
pleased with this marriage which I made at their request, and great part of the
dishonour which they have done you, toucheth me. But seeing ye are here in my
presence, it is not fitting that you demand this in any other manner than
through my Cortes; do you therefore accuse them, and let them acquit themselves
if they can before my Alcaldes, who will pass sentence according to what is
right. And the Cid kissed the King's hand, and returned to his place upon the
ivory seat. XII
XII
Then the Cid arose and said, God prosper you, Sir, in life, and honour, and
estate, since you have compassion for me and for the dishonour which my
daughters have received. And he turned towards the Infantes of Carrion, and
said, Ferrando Gonzalez and Diego Gonzalez, I say that ye are false traitors for
leaving your wives as ye left them in the Oak-forest; and here before the King I
attaint you as false traitors, and defy you, and will produce your peers who
shall prove it upon you, and slay you or thrust you out of the lists, or make
you confess it in your throats. And they were silent. And the King said, that
seeing they were there present, they should make answer to what the Cid had
said. Then Ferrando Gonzalez the elder arose and said, Sir, we are your
subjects, of your kingdom of Castille, and of the best hidalgos therein, sons of
the Count Don Gonzalo Gonzalez; and we hold that men of such station as
ourselves were not well married with the daughters of Ruydiez of Bivar. And for
this reason we forsook them, because they come not of blood fit for our wives,
for one lineage is above another. Touching what he says, that we forsook them,
he saith truly; and we hold that in so doing we did nothing wrong, for they were
not worthy to be our wives, and we are more to be esteemed for having left them,
than we were while they were wedded with us. Now then, Sir, there is no reason
why we should do battle upon this matter with any one. And Diego Gonzalez his
brother arose and said, You know, Sir, what perfect men we are in our lineage,
and it did not befit us to be married with the daughters of such a one as
Ruydiez; and when he had said this he held his peace and sate down. Then Count
Don Garcia rose and said, Come away, Infantes, and let us leave the Cid sitting
like a bridegroom in his ivory chair:... he lets his beard grow and thinks to
frighten us with it!... The Campeador put up his hand to his beard, and said,
What hast thou to do with my beard, Count? Thanks be to God, it is long because
it hath been kept for my pleasure; never son of woman hath taken me by it; never
son of Moor or of Christian hath plucked it, as I did yours in your castle of
Cabra, Count, when I took your castle of Cabra, and took you by the beard; there
was not a boy of the host but had his pull at it. What I plucked then is not yet
methinks grown even!... And the Count cried out again, Come away, Infantes, and
leave him! Let him go back to Rio de Ovierna, to his own country, and set up his
mills, and take toll as he used to do!... he is not your peer that you should
strive with him. At this the knights of the Cid looked at each other with fierce
eyes and wrathful countenances; but none of them dared speak till the Cid bade
them, because of the command which he had given. XIII
XIII
When the Cid saw that none of his people made answer he turned to Pero Bermudez
and said, Speak, Pero Mudo, what art thou silent for? He called him Mudo, which
is to say, Dumb-ee, because he snaffled and stuttered when he began to speak;
and Pero Bermudez was wroth that he should be so called before all that
assembly. And he said, I tell you what, Cid, you always call me Dumb-ee in
Court, and you know I cannot help my words; but when anything is to be done, it
shall not fail for me. And in his anger he forgot what the Cid had said to him
and to the others that they should make no broil before the King. And he
gathered up his cloak under his arm and went up to the eleven Counts who were
against the Cid, to Count Garcia, and when he was nigh him he clenched his fist,
and gave him a blow which brought him to the ground. Then was the whole Cortes
in an uproar by reason of that blow, and many swords were drawn, and on one side
the cry was Cabra and Granon, and on the other side it was Valencia and Bivar;
but the strife was in such sort that the Counts in short time voided the Palace.
King Don Alfonso meantime cried out aloud, forbidding them to fight before him,
and charging them to look to his honour; and the Cid then strove what he could
to quiet his people, saying to the King, Sir, you saw that I could bear it no
longer, being thus maltreated in your presence; if it had not been before you,
well would I have had him punished. Then the King sent to call those Counts who
had been driven out; and they came again to the Palace, though they fain would
not, complaining of the dishonour which they had received. And the King said
unto them that they should defend themselves with courtesy and reason, and not
revile the Cid, who was not a man to be reviled; and he said that he would
defend as far as he could the rights of both parties. Then they took their seats
on the estrados as before. XIV
XIV
And Pero Bermudez rose and said to Count Garcia, Foul mouth, in which God hath
put no truth, thou hast dared let thy tongue loose to speak of the Cid's beard.
His is a praiseworthy beard, and an honourable one, and one that is greatly
feared, and that never hath been dishonoured, nor overcome! and if you please
you may remember when he fought against you in Cabra, hundred to hundred, he
threw you from your horse, and took thee by the beard, and made thee and thy
knights prisoners, and carried thee prisoner away across a pack-saddle; and his
knights pulled thy beard for thee, and I who stand here had a good handful of
it: how then shall a beard that hath been pulled speak against one that hath
always been honourable! If you deny this, I will fight upon this quarrel before
the King our Lord. Then Count Suero Gonzalez rose in great haste and said,
Nephews, go you away and leave these rascally companions: if they are for
fighting, we will give them their fill of that, if our Lord the King should
think good so to command; that shall not fail for us, though they are not our
peers. Then Don Alvar Fanez Minaya arose and said, Hold thy peace, Count Suero
Gonzalez! you have been to breakfast before you said your prayers, and your
words are more like a drunkard's than one who is in his senses. Your kinsmen
like those of the Cid!... if it were not out of reverence to my Lord and King, I
would teach you never to talk again in this way. And then the King saw that
these words were going on to worse, and moreover that they were nothing to the
business; and he commanded them to be silent, and said, I will determine this
business of the defiance with the Alcaldes, as shall be found right; and I will
not have these disputes carried on before me, lest you should raise another
uproar in my presence.
XV
Then the King rose and called to the Alcaldes, and went apart with them into a
chamber, and the Cid and all the others remained in the Hall. And when the King
and the Alcaldes had taken counsel together concerning what was right in this
matter, they came out from the chamber, and the King went and seated himself in
his chair, and the Alcaldes each in his place, and they commanded all persons to
be silent and hear the sentence which the King should give. Then the King spake
thus: I have taken counsel with these Counts whom I appointed to be Alcaldes in
this cause between the Cid and the Infantes of Carrion, and with other
honourable and learned men: and this is the sentence which I give; that both the
Infantes and Count Suero Gonzalez their fosterer and uncle, forasmuch as it is
given me to understand that he was the adviser and abettor in the dishonour
which they did unto the daughters of the Cid, shall do battle with such three of
the Cid's people as it may please him to appoint, and thereby acquit themselves
if they can. When the King had given this sentence, the Cid rose and kissed his
hand and said, May God have you, Sir, in his holy keeping long and happy years,
seeing you have judged justly, as a righteous King and our natural Lord. I
receive your sentence; and now do I perceive that it is your pleasure to show
favour unto me, and to advance mine honour, and for this reason I shall ever be
at your service. Then Pero Bermudez rose up and went to the Cid and said, A
boon, Sir! I beseech you let me be one of those who shall do battle on your
part, for such a one do I hold myself to be, and this which they have done is so
foul a thing, that I trust in God to take vengeance for it. And the Cid made
answer that he was well pleased it should be so, and that he should do battle
with Ferrando Gonzalez the eldest; and upon that Pero Bermudez kissed his hand.
Then Martin Antolinez of Burgos rose and besought the Cid that he might be
another, and the Cid granted his desire, and said that he should do battle with
Diego Gonzalez the younger brother. And then Muno Gustioz of Linquella rose and
besought the Cid that he might be the third, and the Cid granted it, and
appointed him to do battle with Count Suero Gonzalez. And when the Cid had
appointed his three champions, the King gave command that the combat should be
performed on the morrow; but the Infantes were not prepared to fight so soon,
and they besought him of his favour that he would let them go to Carrion, and
that they would come prepared for the battle. And the King would not allow this
time which they requested; howbeit the Counts Don Anrrich and Don Remond his
sons-in-law, and Count Don Nuno, spake with him, and besought him of his grace
that he would allow them three weeks; and the King at their intreaty granted it
with the pleasure of the Cid. XVI
XVI
Now when all this had been appointed, as ye have heard, and while they were all
in the court, there came into the Palace messengers from the Kings of Aragon and
of Navarre, who brought letters to King Don Alfonso, and to the Cid Campeador,
wherein those Kings sent to ask the daughters of the Cid in marriage, the one
for the Infante Don Sancho of Aragon, the other for the Infante Garcia Ramirez
of Navarre. And when they came before the King, they bent their knees and gave
him the letters, and delivered their message; the like did they to the Cid. Much
were the King and the Cid also pleased at this news, and the King said unto him,
What say you to this? And the Cid answered, I and my daughters are at your
disposal, do you with us as you shall think good. And the King said, I hold it
good that they wed with these Infantes, and that from henceforward they be
Queens and Ladies; and that for the dishonour which they have received, they now
receive this honour. And the Cid rose and kissed the hands of the King, and all
his knights did the like. These messengers hight, he of Aragon Ynigo Ximenez,
and he of Navarre Ochoa Perez. And the King gave order that his letters of
consent to these marriages should be given, and the Cid did the like. And those
knights did homage before the King, that in three months from that day the
Infantes of Aragon and of Navarre should come to Valencia, to the Cid, to be
wedded to his daughters. Great joy had the companions of the Cid that these
marriages were appointed, seeing how their honour was increased; and
contrariwise, great was the sorrow of the Infantes of Carrion and their friends,
because it was to their confusion and great shame. And King Don Alfonso said
aloud unto the Cid before them all, Praised be the name of God, because it hath
pleased him that the dishonour which was done to me and to you and your
daughters, should thus be turned into honour: for they were the wives of the
sons of Counts, and now shall they be the wives of the sons of Kings, and Queens
hereafter. Great was the pleasure of the Cid and his company at these words of
the King, for before they had sorrow, and now it was turned into joy. And the
Infantes went away from the Palace full sadly, and went to their lodging, and
prepared to go to Carrion that they might make ready for the combat, which was
to be in three weeks from that time. XVII
XVII
Then the Cid said unto the King, Sir, I have appointed those who are to do
battle with the Infantes and their uncle for the enmity and treason which they
committed against me and my daughters; and now, Sir, as there is nothing more
for me to do here, I will leave them in your hand, knowing that you will not
suffer them to receive any displeasure or wrong soever, and that you will defend
their right. And if it please you I would fain return to Valencia, where I have
left my wife and daughters, and my other companions; for I would not that the
Moors should rise up against me during my absence, thinking peradventure that I
have not sped so well in this matter as I have done, praised be God and you. And
moreover I have to make ready for these marriages which you have now appointed.
And the King bade him go when he pleased, and good fortune with him, and said
that he would protect his knights and maintain his right in all things. Then the
Cid kissed the King's hand for this which he had said, and commended the knights
to his keeping. And the King called for Count Don Remond his son-in-law, and
gave the knights of the Cid to his charge, and bade them not depart from him;
and then the King rose and returned to the Alcazar. XVIII
XVIII
Then the Cid took off his coif of ranzal, which was as white as the sun, and he
loosed his beard, and took it out of the cord with which it was bound. All they
who were there could not be satisfied with looking at him. And the Counts Don
Anrrich and Don Remond came up to him, and he embraced them, and thanked them
and the other good men who had been Alcaldes in this business, for maintaining
his right; and he promised to do for them in requital whatever they might
require; and he besought them to accept part of his treasures. And they thanked
him for his offer, but said that it was not seemly. Howbeit he sent great
presents to each of them, and some accepted them and some did not. Who can tell
how nobly the Cid distributed his treasure before he departed? And he forgave
the King the two hundred marks which should have been paid on account of the
Infantes. And to the knights who had come from Aragon and Navarre concerning the
marriages, he gave many horses, and money in gold, and sent them with great
honour into their own country. XIX
XIX
On the morrow the Cid went to take leave of the King, and the King went some way
out of the town with him, and all the good men who were in the court also, to do
him honour as he deserved. And when he was about to dispeed himself of the King
they brought him his precious horse Bavieca, and he turned to the King and said,
Sir, I should depart ill from hence if I took with me so good a horse as my
Bavieca, and did not leave him for you, for such a horse as this is fit for you
and for no other master: and that you may see what he is, I will do before you
what it is long since I have done except in the battles which I have had with my
enemies. Then he mounted his horse, with his ermine housings, and gave him the
spur. Who can tell the goodness of the horse Bavieca, and of the Cid who rode
him? And as the Cid was doing this the horse brake one of his reins, yet he came
and stopt before the King as easily as if both the reins had been whole. Greatly
did the King and all they who were with him marvel at this, saying that they had
never seen or heard of so good a horse as that. And the Cid besought the King
that he would be pleased to take the horse, but the King answered, God forbid
that I should take him!... rather would I give you a better if I had one, for he
is better bestowed on you than on me or any other, for upon that horse you have
done honour to yourself, and to us, and to all Christendom, by the good feats
which you have achieved. Let him go as mine, and I will take him when I please.
Then the Cid kissed the King's hand and dispeeded himself, and the King embraced
him and returned to Toledo.
XX
Now when the Cid had taken leave of the King, and of the other honourable men
and Counts, and Ricos- omes who were with him, Pero Bermudez and Martin
Antolinez and Muno Gustioz went on yet awhile with him: and he counselled them
all how to demean themselves so as to clear him of the shame which had been done
him, and to be held for good knights themselves, and to take vengeance for King
Don Alfonso, and for him, and for themselves, that he might receive good tidings
from them in Valencia. And they took his counsel well, as they afterwards
manifested when there was occasion. But Martin Antolinez made answer, Why do you
say this, Sir? we have undertaken the business and we shall go through it; and
they said unto him, God have you in his guidance, Sir, and be you sure and
certain, that by the mercy and help of God we shall so demean ourselves as to
come to you without shame. But if for our sins it should betide otherwise, never
more shall we appear before you dead or living,... for slain we may be, but
never vanquished. Then he bade them return to the King, praying to God to have
them in his keeping, and assist them in fulfilling their demand, as he knew that
their cause was right.
BOOK TEN
I
Now King Alfonso misdoubted the Infantes of Carrion that they would not appear
at the time appointed, and therefore he said that he would go to Carrion, and
the battle should be fought there. And he took with him the Counts whom he had
appointed Alcaldes, and Pero Bermudez and Martin Antolinez and Muno Gustioz went
with the Count Don Remond, to whose charge the King had given them. And on the
third day after the Cid departed from Toledo the King set forth for Carrion; but
it so chanced that he fell sick upon the road, and could not arrive within the
three weeks, so that the term was enlarged to five. And when the King's health
was restored he proceeded and reached Carrion, and gave order that the combat
should be performed, and appointed the day, and named the plain of Carrion for
the place thereof. And the Infantes came there with a great company of all their
friends and kindred, for their kinsmen were many and powerful; and they all came
with one accord, that if before the battle they could find any cause they would
kill the knights of the Cid: nevertheless, though they had determined upon this
they dared not put it in effect, because they stood in fear of the King.
II
And when the night came of which the morrow was appointed for the combat, they
on one side and on the other kept vigil in the Churches, each in that Church to
which he had the most devotion. Night is past away, and the dawn is now
breaking; and at day-break a great multitude was assembled in the field, and
many Ricos-omes came there for the pleasure which they would have in seeing this
battle, and the King sent and commanded the champions to make ready. Moreover he
made the two Counts his sons-in-law, Don Anrrich and Don Remond, and the other
Counts and their people, arm themselves and keep the field, that the kinsmen of
the Infantes might not make a tumult there. Who can tell the great dole and
sorrow of Count Gonzalo Gonzalez for his sons the Infantes of Carrion, because
they had to do battle this day! and in the fullness of his heart he curst the
day and the hour in which he was born, for his heart divined the sorrow which he
was to have for his children. Great was the multitude which was assembled from
all Spain to behold this battle. And there in the field near the lists the
champions of the Cid armed themselves on one side, and the Infantes on the
other. And Count Don Remond armed the knights of the Cid, and instructed them
how to do their devoir, and Count Garcia Ordonez helped arm the Infantes of
Carrion and their uncle Suero Gonzalez, and they sent to ask the King his favour
that he would give command that the swords Colada and Tizona should not be used
in that combat. But the King would not, and he answered that each must take the
best sword and the best sword and the best arms that he could, save only that
the one should not have more than the other. Greatly were they troubled at this
reply, and greatly did they fear those good swords, and repent that they had
taken them to the Cortes of Toledo. And from that hour the Infantes and Suero
Gonzalez bewrayed in their countenances that they thought ill of what they had
done, and happy men would they have thought themselves if they had not committed
that great villainy, and he if he had not counselled it; and gladly would they
have given all that they had in Carrion so that it could now have been undone.
III
III
And the King went to the place where the Infantes were arming, and said unto
them, If ye feared these swords ye should have said so in the Cortes of Toledo,
for that was the place, and not this;... there is now nothing to be done but to
defend yourselves stoutly, as ye have need against those with whom ye have to
do. Then went he to the knights of the Cid, whom he found armed; and they kissed
his hand and said unto him, Sir, the Cid hath left us in your hand, and we
beseech you see that no wrong be done us in this place, where the Infantes of
Carrion have their party; and by God's mercy we will do ourselves right upon
them. And the King bade them have no fear for that. Then their horses were
brought, and they crost the saddles, and mounted, with their shields hanging
from the neck; and they took their spears, each of which had its streamer, and
with many good men round about they went to the lists; and on the other side the
Infantes and Count Suero Gonzalez came up with a great company of their friends
and kinsmen and vassals. And the King said with a loud voice, Hear what I say,
Infantes of Carrion!... this combat I would have had waged in Toledo, but ye
said that ye were not ready to perform it there, and therefore I am come to this
which is your native Place, and have brought the knights of the Cid with me.
They are come here under my safeguard. Let not therefore you nor your kinsmen
deceive yourselves, thinking to overpower them by tumult, or in any other way
than by fair combat; for whosoever shall begin a tumult, I have given my people
orders to cut him in pieces upon the spot, and no enquiry shall be made touching
the death of him who shall so have offended. Full sorrowful were the Infantes of
Carrion for this command which the King had given. And the King appointed twelve
knights who were hidalgos to be true- men and place the combatants in the lists,
and show them the bounds at what point they were to win or to be vanquished, and
to divide the sun between them. And he went with a wand in his hand, and saw
them placed on both sides; then he went out of the lists, and gave command that
the people should fall back, and not approach within seven spears- length of the
lines of the lists.
IV
Now were the six combatants left alone in the lists, and each of them knew now
with whom he had to do battle. And they laced their helmets, and put shield upon
the arm, and laid lance in rest. And the knights of my Cid advanced against the
Infantes of Carrion, and they on their part against the champions of the
Campeador. Each bent down with his face to the saddle-bow, and gave his horse
the spur. And they met all six with such a shock, that they who looked on
expected to see them all fall dead. Pero Bermudez and Ferrando Gonzalez
encountered, and the shield of Pero Bermudez was pierced, but the spear past
through on one side, and hurt him not, and brake in two places; and he sat firm
in his seat. One blow he received, but he gave another; he drove his lance
through Ferrando's shield, at his breast, so that nothing availed him.
Ferrando's breast-plate was threefold; two plates the spear went clean through,
and drove the third in before it, with the velmez and the shirt, into the
breast, near his heart;... and the girth and the poitral of his horse burst, and
he and the saddle went together over the horse's heels, and the spear in him,
and all thought him dead. Howbeit Ferrando Gonzalez rose, and the blood began to
run out of his mouth, and Pero Bermudez drew his sword and went against him; but
when he saw the sword Tizona over him, before he received a blow from it, he
cried out that he confessed himself conquered, and that what Pero Bermudez had
said against him was true. And when Pero Bermudez heard this he stood still, and
the twelve true-men came up and heard his confession, and pronounced him
vanquished. This Ferrando did thinking to save his life; but the wound which he
had got was mortal.
V
Martin Antolinez and Diego Gonzalez brake their lances on each other, and laid
hand upon their swords. Martin Antolinez drew forth Colada, the brightness of
which flashed over the whole field, for it was a marvellous sword; and in their
strife he dealt him a back-handed blow which sheared off the crown of his
helmet, and cut away hood and coif, and the hair of his head and the skin also:
this stroke he dealt him with the precious Colada. And Diego Gonzalez was sorely
dismayed therewith, and though he had his own sword in his hand he could not for
very fear make use of it, but he turned his horse and fled: and Martin Antolinez
went after him, and dealt him another with the flat part of the sword, for he
mist him with the edge, and the Infante began to cry out aloud, Great God, help
me and save me from that sword! And he rode away as fast as he could, and Martin
Antolinez called out after him, Get out, Don Traitor! and drove him out of the
lists, and remained conqueror.
VI
Muno Gustioz and Suero Gonzalez dealt each other such strokes with their spears
as it was marvellous to behold. And Suero Gonzalez being a right hardy knight
and a strong, and of great courage, struck the shield of Muno Gustioz and
pierced it through; but the stroke was given aslant, so that it passed on and
touched him not. Muno Gustioz lost his stirrups with that stroke, but he
presently recovered them, and dealt him such a stroke in return that it went
clean through the midst of the shield, and through all his armour, and came out
between his ribs, missing the heart; then laying hand on him he wrenched him out
of the saddle, and threw him down as he drew the spear out of his body; and the
point of the spear and the haft and the streamer all came out red. Then all the
beholders thought that he was stricken to death. And Muno Gustioz turned to
smite again. But when Gonzalo Ansures his father saw this, he cried out aloud
for great ruth which he had for his son, and said, For God's sake do not strike
him again, for he is vanquished. And Muno Gustioz, like a man of good
understanding, asked the true-men whether he were to be held as conquered for
what his father said, and they said not, unless he confirmed it with his own
mouth. And again Muno Gustioz turned to Suero Gonzalez where he lay wounded, and
lifted his spear against him, and Suero Gonzalez cried out, Strike me not, for I
am vanquished. And the judges said it was enough, and that the combat was at an
end. VII
VII
Then the King entered the lists, and many good knights and hidalgos with him,
and he called the twelve true-men, and asked them if the knights of the Cid had
aught more to do to prove their accusation; and they made answer that the
knights of the Cid had won the field and done their devoir; and all the hidalgos
who were there present made answer, that they said true. And King Don Alfonso
lifted up his voice and said, Hear me, all ye who are here present: inasmuch as
the knights of the Cid have conquered, they have won the cause; and the twelve
true-men made answer, that what the King said was the truth, and all the people
said the same. And the King gave command to break up the lists, and gave
sentence that the Infantes of Carrion and their uncle Suero Gonzalez were
notorious traitors, and ordered his seneschal to take their arms and horses. And
from that day forth their lineage never held up its head, nor was of any worth
in Castille; and they and their uncle fled away, having been thus vanquished and
put to shame. And thus it was that Carrion fell to the King after the days of
Gonzalo Gonzalez, the father of the Infantes. Great was their shame, and the
like or worse betide him who abuseth fair lady, and then leaveth her. VIII
VIII
Then the King went to meat, and he took the knights of the Cid with him; and
great was the multitude which followed after them, praising the good feat which
they had achieved. And the King gave them great gifts, and sent them away by
night, and with a good guard to protect them till they should be in safety; and
they took their leave of the King, and travelled by night and day, and came to
Valencia. When the Cid knew that they drew nigh, he went out to meet them, and
did them great honour. Who can tell the great joy which he made over them? And
they told him all even as it had come to pass, and how the King had declared the
Infantes of Carrion and their uncle to be notorious traitors. Great was the joy
of the Cid at these tidings, and he lifted up his hands to heaven, and blest the
name of God because of the vengeance which he had given him for the great
dishonour which he had received. And he took with him Martin Antolinez and Pero
Bermudez and Muno Gustioz, and went to Dona Ximena and her daughters, and said
to them, Blessed be the name of God, now are you and your daughters avenged! and
he made the knights recount the whole unto them, even as it had come to pass.
Great was the joy of Dona Ximena and her daughters, and they bent their knees to
the ground, and praised the name of Jesus Christ, because he had given them this
vengeance for the dishonour which they had received; and Dona Elvira and Dona
Sol embraced those knights many times, and would fain have kissed their hands
and their feet. And the Cid said unto Dona Ximena, Now may you without let marry
your daughters with the Infantes of Aragon and Navarre, and I trust in God that
they will be well and honourably married, better than they were at first. Eight
days did the great rejoicings endure which the Cid made in Valencia, for the
vengeance which God had given him upon the Infantes of Carrion, and their uncle
Suero Gonzalez, the aider and abettor in the villainy which they had committed.
IX
Now it came to pass after this, that the Great Soldan of Persia, having heard of
the great goodness of the Cid, and of his great feats in arms, and how he had
never been vanquished by mortal man, and how he had conquered many Kings, Moor
and Christian, and had won the noble city of Valencia, and had defeated King
Bucar Lord of Africa and Morocco, and twenty nine Kings with him, all these
things made him greatly desirous of his love. And holding him to be one of the
noble men of the world, he sent messengers to him with great gifts, which will
be recounted hereafter, and with them he sent one of his kinsmen, a full
honourable man, with letters of great love. When this kinsman reached the port
of Valencia, he sent word to the Cid that he was arrived there with a message
from the Great Soldan of Persia, who had sent a present by him; and when the Cid
knew this he was well pleased. And in the morning the Cid took horse, and went
out with all his company, all nobly attired, and his knights rode before him
with their lances erect. And when they had gone about a league they met the
messenger of the Soldan coming to Valencia: and when he beheld them in what
order they came, he understood what a noble man the Cid Campeador was. And when
he drew nigh, the Cid stopt his horse Bavieca, and waited to receive him. And
when the messenger came before the Cid and beheld him, all his flesh began to
tremble, and he marvelled greatly that his flesh should tremble thus; and his
voice failed him, so that he could not bring forth a word. And the Cid said that
he was welcome, and went towards him to embrace him; but the Moor made him no
reply, being amazed. And when he had somewhat recovered and could speak, he
would have kissed the Cid's hand, but the Cid would not give it him: and he
thought this was done for haughtiness, but they made him understand that it was
to do him honour; then was he greatly rejoiced, and he said, I humble myself
before thee, O Cid, who art the fortunate, the best Christian, and the most
honourable that hath girded on sword or bestrode horse these thousand years. The
Great Soldan of Persia, my Lord, hearing of thy great fame and renown, and of
the great virtue which is in thee, hath sent me to salute thee and receive thee
as his friend, even as his best friend, the one whom he loveth and prizeth best.
And he hath sent a present by me who am of his lineage, and beseecheth thee to
receive it as from a friend. And the Cid made answer that he thanked him
greatly.
X
Then the Cid bade his people make way that the sumpter beasts which carried the
present might pass, and also the strange animals which the Soldan had sent, the
like whereof were not in that land. And when they were passed he and his company
returned towards the town, and the messenger with him. And whensoever the
messenger spake to the Cid, it came into his mind how his voice had failed and
his flesh trembled when he beheld him; and he marvelled thereat, and would fain
have asked the Cid why it should be. And when they entered Valencia, great was
the crowd which assembled to see the sumpter beasts, and the strange animals,
for they had never seen such before, and they marvelled at them. And the Cid
gave order that the beasts should be taken care of, and he went to the Alcazar
and took the Moor with him; and when they came to Dona Ximena the Moor humbled
himself before her and her daughters, and would have kissed her hand, but she
would not give it him. Then he commanded that the camels and other beasts of
burthen should be unloaded in their presence, and he began to open the packages
and display the noble things which were contained therein. And he laid before
them great store of gold and of money, which came in leathern bags, each having
its lock; and of wrought silver in dishes and trenchers and basons, and pots for
preparing food; all these of fine silver and full cunningly wrought, the weight
whereof was ten thousand marks. Then he brought out five cups of gold, in each
of which were ten marks of gold, with many precious stones set therein, and
three silver barrels, which were full of pearls and of precious stones. Moreover
he presented unto him many pieces of cloth of gold, and of silk, of those which
are made in Tartary, and in the land of Calabria. And moreover, a pound of myrrh
and of balsam, in little caskets of gold; this was a precious thing, for with
this ointment they were wont to anoint the bodies of the Kings when they
departed, to the end that they might not corrupt, neither the earth consume
them: and with this was the body of the Cid embalmed after his death. Moreover
he presented unto him a chess board, which was one of the noble ones in the
world; it was of ivory riveted with gold, and with many precious stones round
about it; and the men were of gold and silver, and the squares also were richly
wrought with stones of many virtues. This was a full rich, and great and noble
present, so that no man could tell the price thereof.
XI
When the Moor had produced all these things before the Cid, he said unto him,
All this, Sir, with the animals which thou hast seen, my Lord the Soldan of
Persia hath sent unto thee, because of the great fame which he hath heard of thy
goodness and loyalty; and, Sir, he beseecheth thee to accept it for the love of
him. And the Cid thanked him, taking great pleasure therein, and said that he
would fain do him greater honour than he had ever yet done to any one. And then
he embraced him in the name of the Soldan, and said, that if he were a Christian
he would give him the kiss of peace; and he asked whether among those things
there was aught which had belonged to the person of the Soldan, that if so he
might kiss it in his honour, and in token that if he were there present, he
would kiss him on the shoulder, according to the custom of the Moors, for he
knew that his Lord was one of the noblest men in all Pagandom. When the kinsman
of the Soldan heard this he was greatly rejoiced because of the great courtesy
with which the Cid had spoken, and he perceived how noble a man he was. And he
said unto him, Sir Cid, if you were present before my Lord the Soldan, he would
do you full great honour, and would give you the head of his horse to eat,
according to the custom of our country; but seeing that this is not the custom
of this country, I give you my living horse, which is one of the best horses of
Syria; and do you give order that he be taken in honour of my Lord the Soldan,
and he will be better than his head would be boiled. And I kiss your hand, Sir
Ruydiez, and hold myself more honoured and a happier man than ever I have been
heretofore. And the Cid accepted the horse, and gave consent to the Moor that he
should kiss his hand. And then he called for his Almoxarife, and bade him take
with him this kinsman of the Soldan, and lodge him in the Garden of Villa Nueva,
and do him even such honour and service as he would to himself. XII
XII
Great was the honour which the Almoxarife of the Cid Ruydiez did unto the
kinsman of the Soldan, and he served him even as he would have served his Lord
the Cid. And when they had disported and taken solace together, the kinsman of
the Soldan asked him concerning the Cid, what manner of man he was. And the
Almoxarife answered that he was the man in the world who had the bravest heart,
and the best knight at arms, and the man who best maintained his law; and in the
word which he hath promised he never fails; and he is the man in the world who
is the best friend to his friend, and to his enemy he is the mortallest foe
among all Christians; and to the vanquished he is full of mercy and compassion;
and full thoughtful and wise in whatsoever thing he doeth; and his countenance
is such that no man seeth him for the first time without conceiving great fear.
And this, said the Almoxarife, I have many times witnessed, for when any
messengers of the Moors come before him, they are so abashed that they know not
where they are. When the messenger of the Soldan heard this he called to mind
how it had been with him, and he said unto the Almoxarife, that as they were
both of one law he besought him to keep secret what he should say, and he would
tell him what had befallen him himself. And the Almoxarife said that he would do
as he desired. And with that he began to say, that he marvelled greatly at what
he had heard, for even as he had now told him that it happened unto other
messengers, even so had he himself found it the first time that he had seen the
Cid; for so great was the fear which he conceived at the sight of his
countenance, that for long time he had no power of speech; and according to his
thinking, this could only proceed from the grace of God towards the Cid, that
none of his enemies might ever behold his face without fear. When the kinsman of
the Soldan had said this, the Almoxarife perceived that he was a wary man, and
one of good understanding; and he began to talk with him, and asked him whether
he would tell him what he should ask, and the messenger replied that he would.
Then the Almoxarife asked of him if he knew what was the reason which had moved
his Lord the Soldan to send so great a present to the Cid Campeador, and why he
desired to have his love when he was so far away, beyond sea. Now the messenger
of the Soldan conceived that the Almoxarife sought to know the state of the
lands beyond sea, and he feared that this had been asked of him by command of
the Cid; and he made answer, that so great was the renown of the Cid, and the
report which they had heard in the lands beyond sea of his great feats in arms,
that it had moved the Soldan to send him that present and desire his love. But
when the Almoxarife heard this, he said that he could not believe that this had
been the reason, but that some other intention had moved him. And when the
messenger perceived that the Almoxarife understood him, and that he desired to
know the whole of the matter, he said that he would tell him, but he besought
him to keep it secret. And the Almoxarife promised to do this. Then he told him
that the land beyond sea was in such state that they weened it would be lost,
and that the Christians would win it, so great a Crusade had gone forth against
it from Germany, and from France, and from Lombardy, and Sicily, and Calabria,
and Ireland, and England, which had won the city of Antioch, and now lay before
Jerusalem. And my Lord the Great Soldan of Persia, hearing of the great
nobleness of the Cid, and thinking that he would pass over also, was moved to
send him this present to gain his love, that if peradventure he should pass
there he might be his friend. And when the Almoxarife of the Cid heard this, he
said that of a truth he believed it. XIII
XIII
While yet that messenger of the Soldan of Persia abode in Valencia, tidings came
to the Cid that the Infantes of Aragon and Navarre were coming to celebrate
their marriage with his daughters, according as it had been appointed at the
Cortes of Toledo. He of Navarre hight Don Ramiro, and he was the son of King Don
Sancho, him who was slain at Rueda; and he married with Dona Elvira, the elder:
and the Infante of Aragon who married Dona Sol, the younger, hight Don Sancho,
and was the son of King Don Pedro. This King Don Pedro was he whom the Cid
Ruydiez conquered and made prisoner, as the history hath related; but calling to
mind the great courtesy which the Cid had shown in releasing him from prison,
and how he had ordered all his own to be restored unto him, and moreover the
great worth and the great goodness of the Cid, and the great feats which he had
performed, he held it good that his son should match with his daughter, to the
end that the race of so good a man might be preserved in Aragon. Howbeit it was
not his fortune to have a son by Dona Sol, for he died before he came to the
throne, and left no issue. When the Cid knew that the Infantes were coming, he
and all his people went out six leagues to meet them, all gallantly attired both
for court and for war; and he ordered his tents to be pitched in a fair meadow,
and there he awaited till they came up. And the first day the Infante Don Sancho
of Aragon came up, and they waited for the Infante Don Ramiro; and when they
were all met they proceeded to Valencia. And the Bishop Don Hieronymo came out
to meet them with a procession, full honourably. Great were the rejoicings which
were made in Valencia because of the coming of the Infantes, for eight days
before the marriage began. And the Cid gave order that they should be lodged in
the Garden of Villa Nueva, and supplied with all things in abundance. XIV
XIV
When eight days were overpast the Bishop Don Hieronymo married the Infantes of
Aragon and Navarre to the daughters of the Cid in this manner: the Infante Don
Ramiro of Navarre to Dona Elvira, and the Infante Don Sancho of Aragon to Dona
Sol. And on the day after they had been espoused they received the blessing in
the great Church of St. Peter, as is commanded by the law of Jesus Christ, and
the Bishop said mass. Who can tell the great rejoicings which were made at those
marriages, and the great nobleness thereof? Certes there would be much to tell;
for during eight days that they lasted, there was feasting every day, full
honourably and plentifully, where all persons did eat out of silver; and many
bulls were killed every day, and many of those wild beasts which the Soldan
sent; and many sports were devised, and many garments and saddles and noble
trappings were given to the joculars. And the Moors also exhibited their sports
and rejoicings, after such divers manners, that men knew not which to go to
first. So great was the multitude which was there assembled, that they were
counted at eight thousand hidalgos. And when the marriage was concluded, the Cid
took his sons-in-law and led them by the hand to Dona Ximena, and showed them
all the noble things which the Soldan had sent him; and they when they beheld
such great treasures and such noble things were greatly astonished, and said
that they did not think there had been a man in Spain so rich as the Cid, nor
who possessed such things. And as they were marvelling from whence such riches
could have come, both of gold and silver, and of precious stones and pearls, the
Cid embraced them and said, My sons, this and all that I have is for you and for
your wives, and I will give unto you the noblest and most precious things that
ever were given with women for their dowry: for I will give you the half of all
that you see here, and the other half I and Dona Ximena will keep so long as we
live, and after our death all shall be yours; and my days are now well nigh
full. Then the Infantes made answer, that they prayed God to grant him life for
many and happy years yet, and that they thanked him greatly, and held him as
their father; and that they would ever have respect to his honour and be at his
service, holding themselves honoured by the tie that there was between them.
Three months these Infantes abode with the Cid in Valencia, in great pleasure.
And then they dispeeded themselves of the Cid and of their mother-in-law Dona
Ximena, and took each his wife and returned into their own lands with great
riches and honour. And the Cid gave them great treasure, even as he had
promised, and gave them certain of those strange beasts which the Soldan had
sent. And he rode out with them twelve leagues. And when they took leave of each
other there was not a knight of all those who came with the Infantes to whom the
Cid did not give something, horse, or mule, or garments, or money, so that all
were well pleased; and he gave his daughters his blessing, and commended them to
God, and then he returned to Valencia, and they went to their own country.
XV
After the Cid had seen his sons-in-law depart, he sent for the messenger of the
Soldan, and gave him many of the rare things of his country to carry unto his
Lord. And he gave him a sword which had the device of the Soldan wrought in
gold, and a coat of mail and sleeve armour, and a noble gipon which was wrought
of knots; and his letters of reply, which were full of great assurances of
friendship. Much was the messenger of the Soldan pleased with the Cid for the
great honour which he had shown him, and much was he pleased also at seeing how
honourably the marriage of his daughters had been celebrated. So he departed and
went to the port, and embarked on board his ship, and went to his Lord the
Soldan. XVI
XVI
After this the Cid abode in Valencia, and he laboured a full year in settling
all the Castles of the Moors who were subject unto him in peace, and in settling
the Moors of Valencia well with the Christians; and this he did so that their
tribute was well paid from this time till his death. And all the land from
Tortoso to Origuela was under his command. And from this time he abode in peace
in Valencia; and laboured always to serve God and to increase the Catholic
faith, and to make amends for the faults he had committed towards God, for he
weened that his days now would be but few. And it came to pass one day, the Cid
having risen from sleep and being in his Alcazar, there came before him an
Alfaqui whom he had made Alcalde of the Moors; his name was Alfaraxi, and he it
was who made the lamentation for Valencia, as is recorded in this history. This
Alfaqui had served the Cid well in his office of Alcalde over the Moors of
Valencia: for he kept them in peace, and made them pay their tribute well, being
a discreet man and of great prudence, so that for this and for his speech he
might have been taken for a Christian; and for this reason the Cid loved him and
put great trust in him. And when the Cid saw him he asked him what he would
have; and he like a prudent man bent his knees before him, and began to kiss his
hand, and said, Sir Cid Ruydiez, blessed be the name of Jesus Christ who hath
brought you to this state that you are Lord of Valencia, one of the best and
noblest cities in Spain. What I would have is this. Sir, my forefathers were of
this city, and I am a native hereof; and when I was a little lad the Christians
took me captive, and I learnt their tongue among them, and then my will was to
be a Christian, and to abide there in the land of the Christians; but my father
and mother, being rich persons, released me. And God showed me such favour, and
gave me such understanding and so subtle, that I learnt all the learning of the
Moors, and was one of the most honourable and best Alfaquis that ever was in
Valencia till this time, and of the richest, as you know, Sir; and you in your
bounty made me Alcalde, and gave me your authority over the Moors, of which
peradventure I was not worthy. And now, Sir, thinking in my heart concerning the
law in which I have lived, I find that I have led a life of great error, and
that all which Mahommed the great deceiver gave to the Moors for their law, is
deceit: and therefore, Sir, I turn me to the faith of Jesus Christ, and will be
a Christian and believe in the Catholic faith. And I beseech you of your bounty
give order that I may be baptized in the name of the Holy Trinity, and give me
what name you will. And from this time forward I will live the life of a
Christian, and fulfil what is written in the Gospel, and forsake wife and
children and kin, and all that there is in the world, and serve God, and believe
in his faith and holy law, as far as the weakness of my body can bear. When the
Cid Ruydiez heard this he began to smile for very pleasure; and he rose up and
took Alfaraxi with him to Dona Ximena, and said, Here is our Alcalde, who will
be a Christian, and our brother in the faith of Jesus Christ: I beseech you
therefore give order to provide all things that may be needful. When Dona Ximena
heard this she rejoiced greatly, and gave order that all things should be full
nobly prepared. And on the morrow the Bishop Don Hieronymo baptized him, and
they gave him the name of Gil Diaz: and his godfathers were Don Alvar Fanez, and
Pero Bermudez, and Martin Antolinez of Burgos; and Dona Ximena, with other
honourable dames, were his godmothers. And from that time forward Gil Diaz was
in such favour with the Cid, that he trusted all his affairs to his hands, and
he knew so well how to demean himself, both towards him and all those of his
company, that they aR heartily loved him.
BOOK ELEVEN
I
It is written in the history which Abenalfarax, the nephew of Gil Diaz, composed
in Valencia, that for five years the Cid Ruydiez remained Lord thereof in peace,
and in all that time he sought to do nothing but to serve God, and to keep the
Moors quiet who were under his dominion; so that Moors and Christians dwelt
together in such accord, that it seemed as if they had always been united; and
they all loved and served the Cid with such good will that it was marvellous.
And when these five years were over tidings were spread far and near, which
reached Valencia, that King Bucar the Miramamolin of Morocco, holding himself
disgraced because the Cid Campeador had conquered him in the field of Quarto
near unto Valencia, where he had slain or made prisoners all his people, and
driven him into the sea, and made spoil of all the treasures which he had
brought with him;... King Bucar calling these things to mind, had gone himself
and stirred up the whole Paganism of Barbary, even as far as Montes Claros, to
cross the sea again, and avenge himself if he could; and he had assembled so
great a power that no man could devise their numbers. When the Cid heard these
tidings he was troubled at heart; howbeit he dissembled this, so that no person
knew what he was minded to do; and thus the matter remained for some days. And
when he saw that the news came thicker and faster, and that it was altogether
certain that King Bucar was coming over sea against him, he sent and bade all
the Moors of Valencia assemble together in his presence, and when they were all
assembled he said unto them, Good men of the Aljama, ye well know that from the
day wherein I became Lord of Valencia, ye have always been protected and
defended, and have past your time well and peaceably in your houses and
heritages, none troubling you nor doing you wrong; neither have I who am your
Lord ever done aught unto you that was against right. And now true tidings are
come to me that King Bucar of Morocco is arrived from beyond sea, with a mighty
power of Moors, and that he is coming against me to take from me this city which
I won with so great labour. Now therefore, seeing it is so, I hold it good and
command that ye quit the town, both ye and your sons and your women, and go into
the suburb of Alcudia and the other suburbs, to dwell there with the other
Moors, till we shall see the end of this business between me and King Bucar.
Then the Moors, albeit they were loth, obeyed his command; and when they were
all gone out of the city, so that none remained, he held himself safer than he
had done before.
II
Now after the Moors were all gone out of the city, it came to pass in the middle
of the night that the Cid was lying in his bed, devising how he might withstand
this coming of King Bucar, for Abenalfarax saith that when he was alone in his
palace his thoughts were of nothing else. And when it was midnight there came a
great light into the palace, and a great odour, marvellous sweet. And as he was
marvelling what it might be, there appeared before him a man as white as snow;
he was in the likeness of an old man, with grey hair and crisp, and he carried
certain keys in his hand; and before the Cid could speak to him he said,
Sleepest thou, Rodrigo, or what are thou doing? And the Cid made answer, What
man art thou who askest me? And he said, I am St. Peter, the Prince of the
Apostles, who come unto thee with more urgent tidings than those for which thou
art taking thought concerning King Bucar, and it is, that thou art to leave this
world, and go to that which hath no end; and this will be in thirty days. But
God will show favour unto thee, so that thy people shall discomfit King Bucar,
and thou, being dead, shalt win this battle for the honour of thy body: this
will be with the help of Santiago, whom God will send to the business: but do
thou strive to make atonement for thy sins, and so thou shalt be saved. All this
Jesus Christ vouchsafest thee for the love of me, and for the reverence which
thou hast always shown to my Church in the Monastery of Cardena. When the Cid
Campeador heard this he had great pleasure at heart, and he let himself fall out
of bed upon the earth, that he might kiss the feet of the Apostle St. Peter; but
the Apostle said, Strive not to do this, for thou canst not touch me; but be
sure that all this which I have told thee will come to pass. And when the
blessed Apostle had said this he disappeared, and the palace remained full of a
sweeter and more delightful odour than heart of man can conceive. And the Cid
Ruydiez remained greatly comforted by what St. Peter had said to him, and as
certain that all this would come to pass, as if it were already over. III
III
Early on the morrow he sent to call all his honourable men to the Alcazar; and
when they were all assembled before him, he began to say unto them, weeping the
while, Friends and kinsmen and true vassals and honourable men, many of ye must
well remember when King Don Alfonso our Lord twice banished me from his land,
and most of ye for the love which ye bore me followed me into banishment, and
have guarded me ever since. And God hath shown such mercy to you and to me, that
we have won many battles against Moors and Christians; those which were against
Christians, God knows, were more through their fault than my will, for they
strove to set themselves against the good fortune which God had given me, and to
oppose his service, helping the enemies of the faith. Moreover we won this city
in which we dwell, which is not under the dominion of any man in the world, save
only of my Lord the King Don Alfonso, and that rather by reason of our natural
allegiance than of anything else. And now I would have ye know the state in
which this body of mine now is; for be ye certain that I am in the latter days
of my life, and that thirty days hence will be my last. Of this I am well
assured; for for these seven nights past I have seen visions. I have seen my
father Diego Laynez, and Diego Rodriguez my son; and every time they say to me,
You have tarried long here, let us go now among the people who endure for ever.
Now notwithstanding that man ought not to put his trust in these things, nor in
such visions, I know this by other means to be certain, for Sir St. Peter hath
appeared to me this night, when I was awake and not sleeping, and he told me
that when these thirty days were over, I should pass away from this world. Now
ye know for certain that King Bucar is coming against us, and they say that
thirty and six Moorish Kings are coming with him; and since he bringeth so great
a power of Moors, and I have to depart so soon, how can ye defend Valencia! But
be ye certain, that by the mercy of God I shall counsel ye so, that ye shall
conquer King Bucar in the field, and win great praise and honour from him, and
Dona Ximena, and ye and all that ye have, go hence in safety; how ye are to do
all this I will tell ye hereafter, before I depart.
IV
After the Cid had said this he sickened of the malady of which he died. And the
day before his weakness waxed great, he ordered the gates of the town to be
shut, and went to the Church of St. Peter; and there the Bishop Don Hieronymo
being present, and all the clergy who were in Valencia, and the knights and
honourable men and honourable dames, as many as the Church could hold, the Cid
Ruydiez stood up, and made a full noble preaching, showing that no man
whatsoever, however honourable or fortunate they may be in this world, can
escape death; to which, said he, I am now full near; and since ye know that this
body of mine hath never yet been conquered, nor put to shame, I beseech ye let
not this befall it at the end, for the good fortune of man is only accomplished
at his end. How this is be done, and what ye all have to do, I will leave in the
hands of the Bishop Don Hieronymo, and Alvar Fanez, and Pero Bermudez. And when
he had said this he placed himself at the feet of the Bishop, and there before
all the people made a general confession of all his sins, and all the faults
which he had committed against our Lord Jesus Christ. And the Bishop appointed
him his penance, and assoyled him of his sins. Then he arose and took leave of
the people, weeping plenteously, and returned to the Alcazar, and betook himself
to his bed, and never rose from it again; and every day he waxed weaker and
weaker, till seven days only remained of the time appointed. Then he called for
the caskets of gold in which was the balsam and the myrrh which the Soldan of
Persia had sent him; and when these were put before him he bade them bring him
the golden cup, of which he was wont to drink; and he took of that balsam and of
that myrrh as much as a little spoon-full, and mingled it in the cup with
rose-water, and drank of it; and for the seven days which he lived he neither
ate nor drank aught else than a little of that myrrh and balsam mingled with
water. And every day after he did this, his body and his countenance appeared
fairer and fresher than before, and his voice clearer, though he waxed weaker
and weaker daily, so that he could not move in his bed.
V
On the twenty-ninth day, being the day before he departed, he called for Dona
Ximena, and for the Bishop Don Hieronymo, and Don Alvar Fanez Minaya, and Pero
Bermudez, and his trusty Gil Diaz; and when they were all five before him, he
began to direct them what they should do after his death; and he said to them,
Ye know that King Bucar will presently be here to besiege this city, with seven
and thirty Kings whom he bringeth with him, and with a mighty power of Moors.
Now therefore the first thing which ye do after I have departed, wash my body
with rose-water many times and well, as blessed be the name of God it is washed
within and made pure of all uncleanness to receive his holy body tomorrow, which
will be my last day. And when it has been well washed and made clean, ye shall
dry it well, and anoint it with this myrrh and balsam, from these golden
caskets, from head to foot, so that every part shall be anointed, till none be
left. And you my Sister Dona Ximena, and your women, see that ye utter no cries,
neither make any lamentation for me, that the Moors may not know of my death.
And when the day shall come in which King Bucar arrives, order all the people of
Valencia to go upon the walls, and sound your trumpets and tambours, and make
the greatest rejoicings that ye can. And when ye would set out for Castille, let
all the people know in secret, that they make themselves ready, and take with
them all that they have, so that none of the Moors in the suburb may know
thereof; for certes ye cannot keep the city, neither abide therein after my
death. And see ye that sumpter beasts be laden with all that there is in
Valencia, so that nothing which can profit may be left. And this I leave
especially to your charge, Gil Diaz. Then saddle ye my horse Bavieca, and arm
him well; and ye shall apparel my body full seemlily, and place me upon the
horse, and fasten and tie me thereon so that it cannot fall: and fasten my sword
Tizona in my hand. And let the Bishop Don Hieronymo go on one side of me, and my
trusty Gil Diaz on the other, and he shall lead my horse. You, Pero Bermudez,
shall bear my banner, as you were wont to bear it; and you, Alvar Fanez, my
cousin, gather your company together, and put the host in order as you are wont
to do. And go ye forth and fight with King Bucar: for be ye certain and doubt
not that ye shall win this battle; God hath granted me this. And when ye have
won the fight, and the Moors are discomfited, ye may spoil the field at
pleasure. Ye will find great riches. What ye are afterwards to do I will tell ye
to-morrow, when I make my testament.
VI
Early on the morrow the Bishop Don Hieronymo, and Alvar Fanez, and Pero
Bermudez, and Martin Antolinez, came to the Cid. Gil Diaz and Dona Ximena were
always with him; and the Cid began to make his testament. And the first thing
which he directed, after commending his soul to God, was, that his body should
be buried in the Church of St. Pedro de Cardena, where it now lies; and he
bequeathed unto that Monastery many good inheritances, so that that place is at
this day the richer and more honourable. Then he left to all his company and
household according to the desert of every one. To all the knights who had
served him since he went out of his own country, he gave great wealth in
abundance. And to the other knights who had not served him so long, to some a
thousand marks of silver, to others two, and some there were to whom he
bequeathed three, according who they were. Moreover, to the squires who were
hidalgos, to some five hundred, and others there were who had a thousand and
five hundred. And he bade them, when they arrived at St. Pedro de Cardena, give
clothing to four thousand poor, to each a skirt of escanforte and a mantle. And
he bequeathed to Dona Ximena all that he had in the world, that she might live
honourably for the remainder of her days in the Monastery of St. Pedro de
Cardena; and he commanded Gil Diaz to remain with her and serve her well all the
days of her life. And he left it in charge to the Bishop Don Hieronymo, and Dona
Ximena his wife, and Don Alvar Fanez, and Pero Bermudez, and Felez Munoz, his
nephews, that they should see all this fulfilled. And he commanded Alvar Fanez
and Pero Bermudez, when they had conquered King Bucar, to proceed forthwith into
Castille and fulfil all that he had enjoined. This was at the hour of sexts.
Then the Cid Ruydiez, the Campeador of Bivar, bade the Bishop Don Hieronymo give
him the body of our Lord and Saviour Jesus Christ, and he received it with great
devotion, on his knees, and weeping before them all. Then he sate up in his bed
and called upon God and St. Peter, and began to pray, saying, Lord Jesus Christ,
thine is the power and the kingdom, and thou art above all Kings and all
nations, and all Kings are at thy command. I beseech thee therefore pardon me my
sins, and let my soul enter into the light which hath no end. And when the Cid
Ruydiez had said this, this noble Baron yielded up his soul, which was pure and
without spot, to God, on that Sunday which is called Quinquagesima, being the
twenty and ninth of May, in the year of our Lord one thousand and ninety and
nine, and in the seventy and third year of his life. After he had thus made his
end they washed his body twice with warm water, and a third time with
rose-water, and then they anointed and embalmed it as he had commanded. And then
all the honourable men, and all the clergy who were in Valencia, assembled and
carried it to the Church of St. Mary of the Virtues, which is near the Alcazar,
and there they kept their vigil, and said prayer and performed masses, as was
meet for so honourable a man. VII
VII
Three days after the Cid had departed King Bucar came into the port of Valencia,
and landed with all his power, which was so great that there is not a man in the
world who could give account of the Moors whom he brought. And there came with
him thirty and six Kings, and one Moorish Queen, who was a Negress, and she
brought with her two hundred horsewomen, all Negresses like herself, all having
their hair shorn save a tuft on the top, and this was in token that they came as
if upon a pilgrimage, and to obtain the remission of their sins; and they were
all armed in coats of mail and with Turkish bows. King Bucar ordered his tents
to be pitched round about Valencia, and Abenalfarax who wrote this history in
Arabic, saith, that there were full fifteen thousand tents; and he bade that
Moorish Negress with her archers to take their station near the city. And on the
morrow they began to attack the city, and they fought against it three days
strenuously; and the Moors received great loss, for they came blindly up to the
walls and were slain there. And the Christians defended themselves right well,
and every time that they went upon the walls, they sounded trumpets and
tambours, and made great rejoicings, as the Cid had commanded. This continued
for eight days or nine, till the companions of the Cid had made ready every
thing for their departure, as he had commanded. And King Bucar and his people
thought that the Cid dared not come out against them, and they were the more
encouraged, and began to think of making bastilles and engines wherewith to
combat the city, for certes they weened that the Cid Ruydiez dared not come out
against them, seeing that he tarried so long. VIII
VIII
All this while the company of the Cid were preparing all things to go into
Castille, as he had commanded before his death; and his trusty Gil Diaz did
nothing else but labour at this. And the body of the Cid was prepared after this
manner: first it was embalmed and anointed as the history hath already
recounted, and the virtue of the balsam and myrrh was such that the flesh
remained firm and fair, having its natural colour, and his countenance as it was
wont to be, and the eyes open, and his long beard in order, so that there was
not a man who would have thought him dead if he had seen him and not known it.
And on the second day after he had departed, Gil Diaz placed the body upon a
right noble saddle, and this saddle with the body upon, it he put upon a frame;
and he dressed the body in a gambax of fine sendal, next the skin. And he took
two boards and fitted them to the body, one to the breast and the other to the
shoulders; these were so hollowed out and fitted that they met at the sides and
under the arms, and the hind one came up to the pole, and the other up to the
beard; and these boards were fastened into the saddle, so that the body could
not move. All this was done by the morning of the twelfth day; and all that day
the people of the Cid were busied in making ready their arms, and in loading
beasts with all that they had, so that they left nothing of any price in the
whole city of Valencia, save only the empty houses. When it was midnight they
took the body of the Cid, fastened to the saddle as it was, and placed it upon
his horse Bavieca, and fastened the saddle well: and the body sate so upright
and well that it seemed as if he was alive. And it had on painted hose of black
and white, so cunningly painted that no man who saw them would have thought but
that they were grieves and cuishes, unless he had laid his hand upon them; and
they put on it a surcoat of green sendal, having his arms blazoned thereon, and
a helmet of parchment, which was cunningly painted that every one might have
believed it to be iron; and his shield was hung round his neck, and they placed
the sword Tizona in his hand, and they raised his arm, and fastened it up so
subtilly that it was a marvel to see how upright he held the sword. And the
Bishop Don Hieronymo went on one side of him, and the trusty Gil Diaz on the
other, and he led the horse Bavieca, as the Cid had commanded him. And when all
this had been made ready, they went out from Valencia at midnight, through the
gate of Roseros, which is towards Castille. Pero Bermudez went first with the
banner of the Cid, and with him five hundred knights who guarded it, all well
appointed. And after these came all the baggage. Then came the body of the Cid
with a hundred knights, all chosen men, and behind them Dona Ximena with all her
company, and six hundred knights in the rear. All these went out so silently,
and with such a measured pace, that it seemed as if there were only a score. And
by the time that they had all gone out it was broad day.
IX
Now Alvar Fanez Minaya had set the host in order, and while the Bishop Don
Hieronymo and Gil Diaz led away the body of the Cid, and Dona Ximena, and the
baggage, he fell upon the Moors. First he attacked the tents of that Moorish
Queen the Negress, who lay nearest to the city; and this onset was so sudden,
that they killed full a hundred and fifty before they had time to take arms or
go to horse. But that Moorish Negress was so skilful in drawing the Turkish bow,
that it was held for a marvel, and it is said that they called her in Arabic
Nugueymat Turya, which is to say, the Star of the Archers. And she was the first
that got on horseback, and with some fifty that were with her, did some hurt to
the company of the Cid; but in fine they slew her, and her people fled to the
camp. And so great was the uproar and confusion, that few there were who took
arms, but instead thereof they turned their backs and fled towards the sea. And
when King Bucar and his Kings saw this they were astonished. And it seemed to
them that there came against them on the part of the Christians full seventy
thousand knights, all as white as snow: and before them a knight of great
stature upon a white horse with a bloody cross, who bore in one hand a white
banner, and in the other a sword which seemed to be of fire, and he made a great
mortality among the Moors who were flying. And King Bucar and the other Kings
were so greatly dismayed that they never checked the reins till they had ridden
into the sea; and the company of the Cid rode after them, smiting and slaying
and giving them no respite; and they smote down so many that it was marvellous,
for the Moors did not turn their heads to defend themselves. And when they came
to the sea, so great was the press among them to get to the ships, that more
than ten thousand died in the water. And of the six and thirty Kings, twenty and
two were slain. And King Bucar and they who escaped with him hoisted sails and
went their way, and never more turned their heads. Then Alvar Fanez and his
people, when they had discomfited the Moors, spoiled the field, and the spoil
thereof was so great that they could not carry it away. And they loaded camels
and horses with the noblest things which they found, and went after the Bishop
Don Hieronymo and Gil Diaz, who, with the body of the Cid, and Dona Ximena, and
the baggage, had gone on till they were clear of the host, and then waited for
those who were gone against the Moors. And so great was the spoil of that day,
that there was no end to it: and they took up gold, and silver, and other
precious things as they rode through the camp, so that the poorest man among the
Christians, horseman or on foot, became rich with what he won that day. And when
they were all met together, they took the road towards Castille; and they halted
that night in a village which is called Siete Aguas, that is to say, the Seven
Waters, which is nine leagues from Valencia.
X
Abenalfarax, he who wrote this history in Arabic, saith, that the day when the
company of the Cid went out from Valencia, and discomfited King Bucar and the
six and thirty Kings who were with him, the Moors of Alcudia and of the suburbs
thought that he went out alive, because they saw him on horseback, sword in
hand; but when they saw that he went towards Castille, and that none of his
company returned into the town, they were astonished. And all that day they
remained in such amaze, that they neither dared go into the tents which King
Bucar's host had left, nor enter into the town, thinking that the Cid did this
for some device; and all night they remained in the same doubt, so that they
dared not go out from the suburbs. When it was morning they looked towards the
town, and heard no noise there; and Abenalfarax then took horse, and taking a
man with him, went towards the town, and found all the gates thereof shut, till
he came to that through which the company of the Cid had gone forth; and he went
into the city and traversed the greater part thereof, and found no man therein,
and he was greatly amazed. Then he went out and called aloud to the Moors of the
suburbs, and told them that the city was deserted by the Christians; and they
were more amazed than before: nevertheless they did not yet dare either to go
out to the camp or to enter into the town, and in this doubt they remained till
it was mid-day. And when they saw that no person appeared on any side,
Abenalfarax returned again into the town, and there went with him a great
company of the best Moors; and they went into the Alcazar, and looked through
all the halls and chambers, and they found neither man nor living thing; but
they saw written upon a wall in Arabic characters by Gil Diaz, how the Cid
Ruydiez was dead, and that they had carried him away in that manner to conquer
King Bucar, and also to the end that none might oppose their going. And when the
Moors saw this they rejoiced and were exceeding glad, and they opened the gates
of the town, and sent to tell these tidings to those in the suburbs. And they
came with their wives and children into the town, each to the house which had
been his before the Cid won it. And from that day Valencia remained in the power
of the Moors till it was won by King Don Jayme of Aragon, he who is called the
Conqueror, which was a hundred and seventy years. But though King Jayme won it,
it is always called Valencia del Cid. On the morrow they went into the tents of
King Bucar, and found there many arms; but the tents were deserted, save only
that they found certain women who had hid themselves, and who told them of the
defeat of King Bucar. And the dead were so many that they could scarcely make
way among them. And they went on through this great mortality to the port, and
there they saw no ships, but so many Moors lying dead that tongue of man cannot
tell their numbers; and they began to gather up the spoils of the field, which
were tents, and horses, and camels, and buffaloes, and flocks, and gold and
silver, and garments, and store of provisions, out of all number, so that they
had wherewith to suffice the city of Valencia for two years, and to sell to
their neighbours also; and they were full rich from that time.
XI
When the company of the Cid departed from the Siete Aguas, they held their way
by short journies to Salvacanete. And the Cid went always upon his horse Bavieca,
as they had brought him out from Valencia, save only that he wore no arms, but
was clad in right noble garments; and all who saw him upon the way would have
thought that he was alive, if they had not heard the truth. And whenever they
halted they took the body off, fastened to the saddle as it was, and set it upon
that frame which Gil Diaz had made, and when they went forward again, they
placed it in like manner upon the horse Bavieca. And when they reached
Salvacanete, the Bishop Don Hieronymo, and Dona Ximena, and Alvar Fanez, and the
other honourable men, sent their letters to all the kinsmen and friends of the
Cid Ruydiez, bidding them come and do honour to his funeral; and they sent
letters also to his sons-in- law, the Infantes of Aragon and Navarre, and to
King Don Alfonso. And they moved on from Salvacanete and came to Osma, and then
Alvar Fanez asked of Dona Ximena if they should not put the body of the Cid into
a Coffin covered with purple and with nails of gold; but she would not, for she
said that while his countenance remained so fresh and comely, and his eyes so
fair, his body should never be placed in a coffin, and that her children should
see the face of their father; and they thought that she said well, so the body
was left as it was. And at the end of fifteen days the Infante of Aragon
arrived, with Dona Sol his wife, and they brought with them a hundred armed
knights, all having their shields reversed hanging from the saddle bow, and all
in grey cloaks, with the hoods rent. And Dona Sol came clad in linsey-woolsey,
she and all her women, for they thought that mourning was to be made for the
Cid. But when they came within half a league of Osma, they saw the banner of the
Cid coming on, and all his company full featly apparelled. And when they drew
nigh they perceived that they were weeping, but they made no wailing; and when
they saw him upon his horse Bavieca, according as ye have heard, they were
greatly amazed. But so great was the sorrow of the Infante that he and all his
company began to lament aloud. And Dona Sol when she beheld her father, took off
her tire, and threw it upon the ground and began to tear her hair, which was
like threads of gold. But Dona Ximena held her hand and said, Daughter, you do
ill, in that you break the command of your father, who laid his curse upon all
who should make lamentation for him. Then Dona Sol kissed the hand of the Cid
and of her mother, and put on her tire again, saying, Lady mother, I have
committed no fault in this, forasmuch as I knew not the command of my father.
And then they turned back to Osma, and great was the multitude whom they found
there assembled from all parts to see the Cid, having heard in what manner he
was brought, for they held it to be a strange thing; and in truth it was, for in
no history do we find that with the body of a dead man hath there been done a
thing so noble and strange as this. Then they moved on from Osma, and came to
Santesteban de Gormaz. And there after few days the King of Navarre came with
the Queen Dona Elvira his wife; and they brought with them two hundred knights;
howbeit their shields were not reversed, for they had heard that no mourning was
to be made for the Cid. And when they were within half a league of Santesteban,
the company of the Cid went out to meet them, as they had the Infante of Aragon;
and they made no other lamentation, save that they wept with Dona Elvira; and
when she came up to the body of her father she kissed his hand, and the hand of
Dona Ximena her mother. And greatly did they marvel when they saw the body of
the Cid Ruydiez how fair it was, for he seemed rather alive than dead. And they
moved on from Santesteban, towards San Pedro de Cardena. Great was the concourse
of people to see the Cid Ruydiez coming in that guise. They came from Rioja, and
from all Castille, and from all the country round about, and when they saw him
their wonder was the greater, and hardly could they be persuaded that he was
dead. XII
XII
At this time King Don Alfonso abode in Toledo, and when the letters came unto
him saying how the Cid Campeador was departed, and after what manner he had
discomfited King Bucar, and how they brought him in this goodly manner upon his
horse Bavieca, he set out from Toledo, taking long journies till he came to San
Pedro de Cardena to do honour to the Cid at his funeral. The day when he drew
nigh the Infante of Aragon and the King of Navarre went out to meet him, and
they took the body of the Cid with them on horseback, as far as the Monastery of
San Christoval de Ybeas, which is a league from Cardena; and they went, the King
of Navarre on one side of the body, and the Infante of Aragon on the other. And
when King Don Alfonso saw so great a company and in such goodly array, and the
Cid Ruydiez so nobly clad and upon his horse Bavieca, he was greatly astonished.
Then Alvar Fanez and the other good men kissed his hand in the name of the Cid.
And the King beheld his countenance, and seeing it so fresh and comely, and his
eyes so bright and fair, and so even and open that he seemed alive, he marvelled
greatly. But when they told him that for seven days he had drank of the myrrh
and balsam, and had neither ate nor drank of aught else, and how he had
afterwards been anointed and embalmed, he did not then hold it for so great a
wonder, for he had heard that in the land of Egypt they were wont to do thus
with their Kings. When they had all returned to the Monastery they took the Cid
from off his horse, and set the body upon the frame, as they were wont to do,
and Placed it before the altar. Many were the honours which King Don Alfonso did
to the Cid in masses and vigils, and other holy services, such as are fitting
for the body and soul of one who is departed. Moreover he did great honour to
the King of Navarre, and to the Infante of Aragon, ordering that all things
which were needful should be given to them and their companies. XIII
XIII
On the third day after the coming of King Don Alfonso, they would have interred
the body of the Cid, but when the King heard what Dona Ximena had said, that
while it was so fair and comely it should not be laid in a coffin, he held that
what she said was good. And he sent for the ivory chair which had been carried
to the Cortes of Toledo, and gave order that it should be placed on the right of
the altar of St. Peter; and he laid a cloth of gold upon it, and upon that
placed a cushion covered with a right noble tartari, and he ordered a graven
tabernacle to be made over the chair, richly wrought with azure and gold, having
thereon the blazonry of the Kings of Castille and Leon, and the King of Navarre,
and the Infante of Aragon, and of the Cid Ruydiez the Campeador. And he himself,
and the King of Navarre and the Infante of Aragon, and the Bishop Don Hieronymo,
to do honour to the Cid, helped to take his body from between the two boards, in
which it had been fastened at Valencia. And when they had taken it out, the body
was so firm that it bent not on either side, and the flesh so firm and comely,
that it seemed as if he were yet alive. And the King thought that what they
purported to do and had thus begun, might full well be effected. And they clad
the body in a full noble tartari, and in cloth of purple, which the Soldan of
Persia had sent him, and put him on hose of the same, and set him in his ivory
chair; and in his left hand they placed his sword Tizona in its scabbard, and
the strings of his mantle in his right. And in this fashion the body of the Cid
remained there ten years and more, till it was taken thence, as the history will
relate anon. And when his garments waxed old, other good ones were put on. XIV
XIV
King Don Alfonso, and the sons-in-law of the Cid, King Don Ramiro of Navarre,
and the Infante Don Sancho of Aragon, with all their companies, and all the
other honourable men, abode three weeks in St. Pedro de Cardena, doing honour to
the Cid. And the Bishop Don Hieronymo, and the other Bishops who came with King
Don Alfonso, said every day their masses, and accompanied the body of the Cid
there where it was placed, and sprinkled holy water upon it, and incensed it, as
is the custom to do over a grave. And after three weeks they who were there
assembled began to break up, and depart to their own houses. And of the company
of the Cid, some went with the King of Navarre, and other some with the Infante
of Aragon; but the greater number, and the most honourable among them, betook
themselves to King Don Alfonso, whose natural subjects they were. And Dona
Ximena and her companions abode in San Pedro de Cardena, and Gil Diaz with her,
as the Cid had commanded in his testament. And the Bishop Don Hieronymo, and
Alvar Fanez Minaya, and Pero Bermudez, remained there also till they had
fulfilled all that the Cid Ruydiez had commanded in his testament to be done.
XV
Gil Diaz did his best endeavour to fulfil all that his Lord the Cid Ruydiez had
commanded him, and to serve Dona Ximena and her companions truly and faithfully;
and this he did so well, that she was well pleased with his faithfulness. And
Dona Ximena fulfilled all that the Cid had commanded her; and every day she had
masses performed for his soul, and appointed many vigils, and gave great alms
for the soul of the Cid and of his family. And this was the life which she led,
doing good wherever it was needful for the love of God; and she was always by
the body of the Cid, save only at meal times and at night, for then they would
not permit her to tarry there, save only when vigils were kept in honour of him.
Moreover Gil Diaz took great delight in tending the horse Bavieca, so that there
were few days in which he did not lead him to water, and bring him back with his
own hand. And from the day in which the dead body of the Cid was taken off his
back, never man was suffered to bestride that horse, but he was always led when
they took him to water, and when they brought him back. And Gil Diaz thought it
fitting that the race of that good horse should be continued, and he bought two
mares for him, the goodliest that could be found, and when they were with foal,
he saw that they were well taken care of, and they brought forth the one a male
colt and the other a female; and from these the race of this good horse was kept
up in Castille, so that there were afterwards many good and precious horses of
his race, and peradventure are at this day. And this good horse lived two years
and a half after the death of his master the Cid, and then he died also, having
lived, according to the history, full forty years. And Gil Diaz buried him
before the gate of the Monastery, in the public place, on the right hand; and he
planted two elms upon the grave, the one at his head and the other at his feet,
and these elms grew and became great trees, and are yet to be seen before the
gate of the Monastery. And Gil Diaz gave order that when he died they should
bury him by that good horse Bavieca, whom he had loved so well. XVI
XVI
Four years after the Cid had departed that noble lady Dona Ximena departed also,
she who had been the wife of that noble baron the Cid Ruydiez, the Campeador. At
that time Don Garcia Tellez was Abbot of the Monastery, a right noble monk, and
a great hidalgo. And the Abbot and Gil Diaz sent for the daughters of the Cid
and Dona Ximena to come and honour their mother at her funeral, and to inherit
what she had left. Dona Sol, who was the younger, came first, because Aragon is
nearer than Navarre, and also because she was a widow; for the Infante Don
Sancho, her husband, had departed three years after the death of the Cid, and
had left no child. King Don Ramiro soon arrived with the other dame, Queen Dona
Elvira his wife, and he brought with him a great company in honour of his wife's
mother, and also the Bishop of Pamplona, to do honour to her funeral; and the
Infante Don Garcia Ramirez, their son, came with them, being a child of four
years old. Moreover there came friends and kinsmen from all parts. And when they
were all assembled they buried the body of Dona Ximena at the feet of the ivory
chair on which the Cid was seated; and the Bishop of Pamplona said mass, and the
Abbot Don Garcia Tellez officiated. And they tarried there seven days, singing
many masses, and doing much good for her soul's sake. And in that time the
Bishop Don Hieronymo arrived, who abode with King Don Alfonso, and he came to do
honour to the body of Dona Ximena; for so soon as he heard that she was
departed, he set off taking long journies every day. And when the seven days
were over, King Don Ramiro and Queen Dona Elvira his wife, and her sister, Dona
Sol, set apart rents for the soul of Dona Ximena, and they appointed that Gil
Diaz should have them for his life, and that then they should go to the
Monastery for ever: and they ordained certain anniversaries for the souls of the
Cid and Of Dona Ximena. After this was done they divided between them what Dona
Ximena had left, which was a great treasure in gold and in silver, and in costly
garments;... the one half Queen Dona Elvira took, and Dona Sol the other. And
when they had thus divided it, Dona Sol said that all which she had in the world
should be for her nephew the Infante Don Garcia Ramirez, and with the good will
of Queen Elvira his mother, she adopted him then to be her son, and she took him
with her to Aragon, to the lands which had been given her in dower, and bred him
up till he became a young man; and after the death of his father he was made
King of Navarre, as may be seen in the book of the Chronicles of the Kings of
Spain.
And when all these things were done they departed each
to his own home, and Gil Diaz remained, serving and doing honour to the bodies
of his master the Cid and Dona Ximena his mistress. XVII
XVII
After the body of the Cid had been there ten years in all, the Abbot Don Garcia
Tellez and Gil Diaz weened that it was no longer fitting for the body to remain
in that manner. And three Bishops from the neighbouring provinces met there, and
with many masses and vigils, and great honour, they interred the body after this
manner. They dug a vault before the altar, beside the grave of Dona Ximena, and
vaulted it over with a high arch, and there they placed the body of the Cid
seated as it was in the ivory chair, and in his garments, and with the sword in
his hand, and they hung up his shield and his banner upon the walls. XVIII
XVIII
After of the noble Cid Campeador had been honourably interred, Gil Diaz his
trusty servant abode still in the Monastery of St. Pedro de Cardena, doing
service to the graves of the Cid and Dona Ximena, and making their
anniversaries, and celebrating masses, and giving great alms to the poor both in
food and clothing, for the good of their souls; and in this manner he lived
while Don Garcia Tellez was Abbot, and two others after him, and then he died.
And his deportment had always been such in that Monastery, that all there were
his friends, and lamented greatly at his death, because he had led so devout and
good a life, and served so trustily at the graves of his master and mistress.
And at the time of his death he gave order that they should lay his body beside
the good horse Bavieca whom he had loved so well, in the grave which he had made
there for himself while he was living.
XIX
There is no doubt that the soul of the blessed Cid resteth and reigneth with the
blessed in Heaven. And men of all nations and at all times have come from all
parts to see and reverence his holy body and tomb, being led by the odour of his
fame, especially knights and soldiers, who when they have fallen upon their
knees to kiss his tomb, and scraped a little of the stone thereof to bear away
with them as a relick, and commended themselves to him, have felt their hearts
strengthened, and gone away in full trust that they should speed the better in
all battles into which they should enter from that time with a good cause. By
reason of this great devotion, and the great virtues of my Cid, and the miracles
which were wrought by him, King Philip the Second gave order to his ambassador
Don Diego Hurtado de Mendoza, to deal with the Court of Rome concerning the
canonization of this venerable knight Rodrigo Diaz. Now Don Diego was a person
of great learning, and moreover, one of the descendants of the Cid; and being
greatly desirous that this thing should be effected, he sent to the Monastery of
St. Pedro de Cardena, and had papers and depositions sent from thence, and made
a memorial of the virtues and miracles of the Campeador, showing cause why this
blessed knight should be canonized. But before the matter could be proceeded in,
the loss of Siena took place, whereupon he was fain to leave Rome; and thus this
pious design could not be brought about. Nevertheless the Cid hath always been
regarded with great reverence as an especial servant of God: and he is called
the Blessed Cid, and the Venerable Rodrigo Diaz. Certes, his soul resteth and
reigneth with the blessed in Heaven. Amen